Plato On Pleasure and The Good Life
Plato On Pleasure and The Good Life
DANIEL C. RUSSELL
CLARENDON PRESS O X FO R D
AC
Great Clarendon Street, Oxford ox2 6dp
Oxford University Press is a department of the University of Oxford.
It furthers the University’s objective of excellence in research, scholarship,
and education by publishing worldwide in
Oxford New York
Auckland Cape Town Dar es Salaam Hong Kong Karachi
Kuala Lumpur Madrid Melbourne Mexico City Nairobi
New Delhi Shanghai Taipei Toronto
With offices in
Argentina Austria Brazil Chile Czech Republic France Greece
Guatemala Hungary Italy Japan Poland Portugal Singapore
South Korea Switzerland Thailand Turkey Ukraine Vietnam
Oxford is a registered trade mark of Oxford University Press
in the UK and in certain other countries
Published in the United States
by Oxford University Press Inc., New York
# Daniel C. Russell 2005
The moral rights of the author have been asserted
Database right Oxford University Press (maker)
First published 2005
All rights reserved. No part of this publication may be reproduced,
stored in a retrieval system, or transmitted, in any form or by any means,
without the prior permission in writing of Oxford University Press,
or as expressly permitted by law, or under terms agreed with the appropriate
reprographics rights organization. Enquiries concerning reproduction
outside the scope of the above should be sent to the Rights Department,
Oxford University Press, at the address above
You must not circulate this book in any other binding or cover
and you must impose the same condition on any acquirer
British Library Cataloguing in Publication Data
Data available
Library of Congress Cataloging in Publication Data
Data available
Typeset by Newgen Imaging Systems (P) Ltd., Chennai, India
Printed in Great Britain
on acid-free paper by
Biddles Ltd., King’s Lynn, Norfolk
ISBN 0–19–928284–6 978–0–19–928284–5
1 3 5 7 9 10 8 6 4 2
This is for Gina,
Jocelyn, Grace,
and Julia,
who made it worth doing
I propose that we now examine the core of philosophy,
namely the question of the supreme good.
Cicero, de Finibus Bonorum
et Malorum IV, 14, trans. Woolf.
ACKNOWLEDGMENTS
Generous support for research came from summer research stipends from
Wichita State University (WSU) and from the Fairmount College of Liberal Arts
and Sciences, WSU, both in 2001. For continued support of my research at WSU
I am indebted to Deans David Glenn-Lewin and Bill Bischoff of the Fairmount
College, and to my excellent colleagues in Philosophy, especially David Soles and
Debby Soles.
This project took many years to complete, and I have received invaluable help
from many wonderful people in that time. Most notable among these are John
Armstrong, Hugh Benson, Dan Farnham, Avery Kolers, Scott LaBarge, Mark
McPherran, George Rudebusch, David Schmidtz, Nicholas Smith, Rhonda Smith,
Bill Stephens, and Tom Worthen. My deepest gratitude goes to Julia Annas and
Mark LeBar. In Julia I have a wonderful advisor and a dear friend. In Mark I have
constant encouragement, and conversations that usually lead to the ideas I like
best. The present work is among the many things I would not have been able to do
without them. But of course all of its shortcomings are mine alone.
The initial work for this book began during my time at the University of
Arizona. For their immeasurable contributions to my training and development
I am forever indebted to the faculty at Arizona, especially Julia Annas, Tom
Christiano, Jean Hampton, Chris Maloney, David Schmidtz, and Tom Worthen,
as well as to George Rudebusch of Northern Arizona University. These are some
of the best people I have ever known.
My greatest debt of all, of course, is to my family, and especially my wife,
Gina, as well as Dan and Eileen Russell and Roger and Joyce Butz. None of them
could have given more, and I thank them for the love and support that makes
my efforts both possible and rewarding.
Portions of this book, in various stages of development, have been presented
in various places over the past few years. I am greatly indebted to audiences at
the University of Arizona, the Arizona Colloquium in Ancient Philosophy,
Northern Arizona University, Creighton University, Wichita State University,
the University of Oklahoma, the Society for the Contemporary Assessment of
Platonism, and the Society for Ancient Greek Philosophy. Some portions of this
book have also appeared in print, and I wish to thank the referees and editors
of these journals, which have extended their generous permission to use the
following material:
For Chapter 3: ‘Pleasure as a Conditional Good in Plato’s Phaedo’, Archiv für
Geschichte der Philosophie, forthcoming. For Chapter 5: ‘Virtue as ‘‘Likeness
viii Acknowledgments
to God’’ in Plato and Seneca’, The Journal of the History of Philosophy, 42 (2004),
241–60. For the Epilogue: ‘Protagoras and Socrates on Courage and Pleasure:
Protagoras 349d ad finem’, Ancient Philosophy, 20 (2000), 311–38.
D.C.R.
Wichita, Kansas
October 2004
CONTENTS
Bibliography 249
Index Locorum 257
General Index 266
This page intentionally left blank
INTRODUCTION: PLEASURE AND
THE GOOD LIFE
new custom of always using ‘she’, which can even become anachronistic in discussing Greek philo-
sophers, who often take their audience to consist mainly of men), in the rest of this book I shall simply
alternate between masculine and feminine pronouns haphazardly.
2
Aristotle, Nicomachean Ethics X.5, seems to agree.
3
See esp. Nicomachean Ethics IX.3, 1165b23–31. Note that making the sharing of pleasures a
crucial part of friendship is not thereby to base the friendship on pleasure.
Introduction: Pleasure and the Good Life 3
things. This shows us how difficult it is to pry our pleasures apart from our
values. Pleasures ‘reflect’ our values not simply because they provide informa-
tion about what we value, but indeed because taking pleasure in something is
often part of the very act of valuing it and finding it important.
This fact about pleasure also explains why our perception of the pleasure with
(or without) which a person acts colors our assessment of what he does, and of
what sort of person he is. We’re disappointed if our friends give us gifts but find
it a nuisance to do so, however much we may enjoy the gift itself, and even if we
appreciate their willingness to endure what they found a nuisance (we have all
known some who observe gift-giving occasions only when the fancy strikes them
to do so); we still wonder why our friend didn’t take any pleasure in doing
something nice for a friend—is he really a friend, after all? Is he really the
generous person we thought he was? Pleasure tells us a lot about a relationship—
and about virtues of character: it makes sense, I think, to say that to practice a
virtue is not simply to do certain things, but to do them with certain attitudes
and placing certain values upon doing them. A charitable or generous person,
for instance, is not just someone who gives, but someone who also ‘resonates’
with the giving, and this involves taking pleasure in giving. This is more than
having a fleeting inclination to give, but to be a person with a firm and stable
character that takes pleasure in acts of giving, because one’s pleasures have so
matured and developed as to endorse what reason finds best.4 We do find it a
real shortcoming in a person to be cold, insensitive, cheerless, or boorish.5
These are only some of the reasons that pleasure is important to us, and
although I have tried to flesh them out, they still give a rather bare picture of
how pleasure works in our lives. None the less, they do make it quite likely that
pleasure will be an important part of any good life, at least in so far as living a
good life will involve having deep commitments and values. And this brings us
round to asking what sort of good pleasure might be. But that question is
difficult to answer, due in no small part to the fact that we often speak of very
different kinds of phenomena when we speak of ‘pleasure’.6 On the one hand, we
often speak of pleasure as a kind of sensation, such as the feeling I have when
someone rubs my sore, tired shoulders. Pleasure of this sort is a kind of feeling,
a qualitative or phenomenal state (as philosophers of mind often call it), of
which a ‘tickle’, a ‘rush’, or an ‘ahh’ feeling would be a standard example. So we
4
Hursthouse (1999), chs. 5 and 6 brings out this point nicely. It is important to note that not even
Kant disagrees, although he is often misunderstood on this point. What Kant claims (in Grounding for
the Metaphysics of Morals, orig. 398) is that among cases of doing the right thing (a) for some ulterior
motive, (b) because one feels like doing something that happens to coincide with what one ought to
do, and (c) because doing so is the right thing to do, even if one does not feel like doing it, moral
worth emerges only in case (c). This seems true enough, but of course that is not to deny that an even
better case would be one of doing the right thing because it is right, and with a cheerful heart because
it is right. See also Sherman (1997: 125 f.).
5
See, e.g., Aristotle, Nicomachean Ethics II.3, 1104a22–5, II.7, 1108a23–30; as well as the Stoics,
at Diogenes Laertius, Lives VII.117.
6
Here I have benefited greatly from Rudebusch (1999), although my distinction between types of
pleasure will depart from his in some important ways.
4 Introduction: Pleasure and the Good Life
might say that to enjoy something or take pleasure in it is to feel a certain way, to
have a feeling that is occasioned by some thing or activity. On the other hand, we
also speak of pleasure as a kind of emotion, an affective attitude that one takes
toward things, such as the joy one has at the birth of one’s child, or the satis-
faction one finds in one’s work. We might even go so far as to classify our various
emotions—gratitude, reluctance, pride, envy, and so on—as different forms of
pleasure and pain.7
Pleasures that are sensations are importantly different from pleasures that are
emotions. Perhaps the most important difference is that an emotion is a kind of
attitude, while sensations do not seem to be attitudes. The tingling sensation in
my rubbed shoulders, for instance, does not have a content. It is caused or
occasioned by something, but it is not about anything. A pleasure that is an
emotion, on the other hand, is about something, and is the pleasure that such-
and-such is the case. When my child is born, for instance, I am pleased because
there is a certain importance that I attach to this event, and thus I am pleased that
this event is taking place. Pleasures such as these seem to be intentional states
(again to use the language of philosophers of mind), rather than qualitative ones.
Sensational and emotional pleasures also differ with respect to commensur-
ability. The pleasure I feel in the relief of sore shoulder muscles does not seem to
be a different kind of thing from the pleasure I feel in the relief of sore leg
muscles. By contrast, the pleasure I take in reflecting on a great personal
achievement is not the same kind of thing as the pleasure I take in reflecting on a
friend’s great personal achievement—I could not get the first kind of pleasure
from the second kind of source, or vice versa. In these sorts of cases, ‘pleasure’ is
a generic description for different kinds of emotions—here, pride and
admiration—and not only are these different from each other, but the same
kinds of pleasant emotions are also importantly different depending on their
objects, as the pride I take in my own achievements is something I can take only
in my own achievements. Perhaps I may take pride in a friend’s achievements,
but this is not to say that in both cases there is just one thing, pride, that I am
getting from two different sources. So whereas sensations are caused by their
objects, emotions are about their objects, and consequently sensations can often
be compared to each other with an indifference to their respective objects in a
way that emotions cannot.
In that case, moreover, it seems that pleasures understood as emotions tell us
much more about a person’s character and personality than pleasures as sen-
sations do. One of the reasons that pleasure is so important to us is the fact, as we
have seen, that our pleasures are very intimately connected to the sorts of values
and attitudes that we have. That is why we want to know what sorts of things
new or potential friends take pleasure in, why changes in what friends take
pleasure in can change and even end friendships, why we take pleasure in
7
And doing so, moreover, would put us in a very ancient tradition; see, e.g., Plato, Philebus 47e ff.;
Aristotle, Rhetoric II.1; Diogenes Laertius, Lives VII.111–14; Stobaeus, Anthology II.10b.
Introduction: Pleasure and the Good Life 5
different things as we develop in our attitudes and priorities, and why it matters
to us whether someone who gives does so reluctantly or with pleasure. In these
kinds of cases our interest must be in pleasures as emotions, since it is very hard
to see how a feeling or qualitative state, with its relatively loose connection to the
things that occasion it, could play this sort of role in our inner lives and our
relationships with other people. If I tell you, ‘When I go skiing, I get a certain
kind of feeling’, what do I really tell you about myself ? Not very much, and so
usually what someone means, and what other people understand, when he says
‘I take pleasure in skiing’ is that skiing is the sort of thing that he finds worth
spending his time on, that he is slow to become bored with skiing, that he finds
that he can easily become immersed in skiing, that he would take success at
skiing as a reason for pride, and so on, perhaps because he thinks it worth while
to be in the outdoors, to get physical exercise, to engage in competition, or what
have you. It makes sense, then, for us to ask as a follow-up question, ‘What is it
about skiing that pleases you so much?’ Pleasures that are emotions, then, tell us
far more about a person than pleasures that are sensations do.
Such pleasures tell us a lot about a person, we should notice, both for better and
for worse. This reveals a further difference between these kinds of pleasures:
pleasant sensations may be dangerous and, in some cases, perilous, but pleasant
emotions can also be mistaken or even confused. The pleasures of fattening foods,
for example, may be dangerous if they entice one to forget about one’s health;
the pleasures of sexual acts may be dangerous if they tempt one to indulge (or
develop) perverse desires; but pleasures such as pride, quite apart from any such
dangers, can also be mistaken or unfounded, as when one takes pride in something
that is not worth being proud of. When we find that someone is proud of
his crimes, for instance, we are even further disturbed that his criminal behavior
is paired with so deep a corruption of his emotions. We do not think that his
pleasure is itself morally neutral and that only its source is bad, but that his
pleasure is itself a deep and morally significant mistake, a mistake of placing value
where value does not belong. We do not want pride, or joy, or satisfaction, or calm
full stop, whatever we say about their objects; we want to have those pleasures in
the right kinds of ways, about the right sorts of things. Reflection shows us that we
need to have reasons for the emotions we have, and thus for our pleasures.
Notice also that if it is important to be proud in the right ways and about the
right things, it is no less important to be ashamed or regretful in the right ways
and about the right things. And so while no one would suppose that painful
sensations have any value for their own sake, we do think that painful emotions
can have such value. Our lives would be poorer if we were unable to take
pleasure in our accomplishments, and they would be poorer if we were unable to
find our failures painful.8 We would be better off without toothache, but we
8
Indeed, as Strawson (1974: 6–25) has famously argued, we cherish even painful emotions,
not because they are painful, but because it is in our very nature to have such emotional reactions to
certain kinds of things.
6 Introduction: Pleasure and the Good Life
9
I shall explore the (often misunderstood) notion of intrinsic goodness in the first chapter.
10
Bentham famously argued that the pleasures of ‘push-pin’ are every bit as good as those of music
and poetry (Rationale of Reward, bk. III, ch. 1), his point being that distinctions in value between
Introduction: Pleasure and the Good Life 7
treatment of such pleasures as the same thing found in different sources reduces
the emotional engagement one may have in bowling or poetry to something like a
sensation, exhibiting only quantitative differences. And even if we think that not
all pleasures are the same but fall into different classes—perhaps the pleasures of
bowling and the pleasures of poetry belong to different classes, such as ‘lower’ and
‘higher’ pleasures, and no comparison can be made across those classes11—we
may still think that pleasures remain commensurable within their classes, so that
the pleasure of poetry is the same sort of thing as one might have gotten from
chess or opera, even if one of them gives a person ‘more’ of that thing than the
others do. This too does not do justice to the fact that such pleasures are not just
sensations, but part of one’s emotional life.12
Of course, the view that pleasures are qualitative states distinct from their
causes and which can be compared, at least to some extent, as qualitative states
has been a historically influential one, because it has held the promise of a
method of evaluating things, choices, activities, and institutions in terms of
some good that persons desire as much of as possible and which these things
cause. And that method is, after all, ingenious: to evaluate a choice, locate
something that we know is desired by the persons affected by the choice, and
determine how this choice would fare in the promotion of that desired thing in
relation to the alternatives. None the less, upon reflection on pleasure as an
emotion, as part of one’s character, and as something with an important role to
play in one’s life as a whole, such a method seems simply inadequate to capture
the ways in which pleasure actually seems to matter to reflective, deliberating
agents the most. Such an approach requires the goods and evils in question to be
quantifiable and commensurable, so that they can be measured and compared,
and pleasures understood as the workings of one’s emotional life cannot be
made to fit that mold, without compromising our understanding of them and
obscuring their real importance.
Taking a sensation or feeling, then, as the place to begin trying to understand
what pleasure is, leaves us in a very poor position to make sense of the roles
that pleasure actually seems to play for us. Although the relation between one’s
pleasures and one’s values is as yet far from clear, it does seem clear that some
pleasures—and surely the ones with the most importance in the context of
reflecting on our lives as wholes—have far more to do with the sorts of values we
have, and thus the sorts of persons we are, than they do with just feelings. When
a person stops to think about what she should do with her life, what she wants to
know is just how all the various parts of her life might fit together to make a
kinds of pleasures are moot. For a purely quantitative analysis of pleasure, the locus classicus is
Bentham, An Introduction to the Principles of Morals and Legislation, ch. 4.
11
For incommensurable classes of pleasures, see esp. John Stuart Mill, Utilitarianism, ch. 2.
12
Notice that quite generally the view that an attraction to pleasure and a repulsion from pain are
the fundamental reasons for all of our choices, actions, and preferences, does not sit comfortably with
an analysis of pleasure and pain as emotions. For we recognize that we need reasons for having the
emotional responses we have, beyond the mere fact that we just do have them.
8 Introduction: Pleasure and the Good Life
happy life—a life in which she might flourish, and succeed as a human being.
Ancient philosophers have never been surpassed for the acuteness with which
they perceive the importance of this question; it was because he recognized how
vital this question is that Socrates, for instance, engaged in conversation so
tenaciously with other people who sincerely believed they had the answer.13 It is
the need to answer questions about what to make of our lives that brings us to
the notion of some direction and order for our lives. This is the notion of the
final end, or some purpose or meaning in life—what the classical Greek
philosophers call a tlov or ‘final end’—and so we can see the kind of reflection
I have sketched above as part of a search for a final end. However, it is unclear
how a person would construct a good whole life out of something so localized
and episodic as a certain kind of feeling. More generally, if it is from the per-
spective of my life as a whole that I begin to think about what things are good, it
is not at all obvious that a certain kind of feeling could play the sort of role in my
life—a role we shall need to explore at length—that would lead me to count it a
good, belonging to those things that make my life a good life. If pleasure is to
have any relevance to how we plan our lives, considered as wholes—and it seems
it must—we need a more sophisticated account of what place pleasure has in a
good life, and thus also a more sophisticated account of what sort of thing
pleasure is.14
What we need, then, is an alternative account of what pleasure is that is subtle
and sophisticated enough to explain why a person’s pleasures tell so much about
her, in the ways that we have been discussing. I do not pretend that an
alternative conception of pleasure is yet clear, and much of what follows in this
book is aimed at arriving at a clearer alternative. However, if we can imagine
pleasure—the pleasure of skiing, or teaching, or bringing one’s child into the
world, say—not as a feeling occasioned by its object but rather as an intentional
state by which we attach a certain significance to its object, we shall come to have
less confidence in the idea that pleasure so understood is always and obviously
good just for what it is. That idea is easier to have about a feeling, because in a
feeling there is nothing really ‘at stake’. The same is not true, of course, of our
attaching significance to something—that just is to take a stake in it, and there
are clearly good and bad, correct and mistaken, ways of taking stakes. And this
feature of pleasure makes it all the more important to understand, since it seems
that one can take such a stake in the goodness and meaningfulness in the
direction that one’s life as a whole is taking, and at that level the mistakes we
might make are not merely unfortunate, but potentially tragic. To the extent that
13
As he says to Callicles (Gorgias 492d3–5), ‘Please, I beg you, do all you can to sustain
the momentum [of our conversation], until there’s really no chance of our mistaking the right way
to live.’
14
Perhaps it is no accident that Bentham, who treated pleasures as rather psychologically thin
experiences to be quantified and compared merely in terms of intensity, duration, etc., was also very
pessimistic about the usefulness of the idea of a person’s character as a whole, or indeed of her life
considered as a whole. Here I have benefited from the work of Mark Kanaga.
Introduction: Pleasure and the Good Life 9
it is worth while thinking philosophically about living well, about the sort of
person that one is becoming, and about our values and indeed the nature of our
minds, it is worth while thinking philosophically about pleasure. And the place
to begin is in thinking about pleasure in the context of the happiness of one’s life
as a whole, which is exactly where Plato begins.
15
For a defense of hedonism as an account of happiness in Plato, see, e.g., Gosling and Taylor
(1982: 71–7); for a discussion of this view see also Berman (1991b : 130–9), and Rudebusch (1989:
28 ff.). For desire satisfaction, see Irwin (1992: 205 ff.), (1995: 117 ff.); cf. (1979: 194, 223); cp. Tenkku
(1956: 73), who attributes to Socrates the view that ‘he who has least desires may be satisfied and
consequently happy’.
10 Introduction: Pleasure and the Good Life
intelligent direction that all the areas of one’s life take together as a whole, as
directed by practical reason and intelligent agency. These two distinctions are
related in so far as the additive conception makes happiness depend on various
conditional goods, whereas the directive conception makes happiness depend on
the unconditional good that is intelligent agency. In the Euthydemus, I argue,
Plato means to distinguish conditional from unconditional goods, and espouses
the directive conception of happiness and rejects the additive, making happi-
ness depend on the unconditionally good, which he identifies as wisdom. I then
make a number of remarks about the significance of treating pleasure as a
conditional good, and of the rather special relation that might be possible
between practical intelligence and pleasure on this way of understanding
pleasure. I also suggest some shortcomings of the account in the Euthydemus of
the directive conception, which I address in subsequent chapters.
In Chapter 2, I argue that in the Gorgias we find a fuller discussion and
defense of the idea that happiness depends on the unconditional good that is
intelligent agency, and thus of the directive conception of happiness. This is
especially important for understanding Plato’s analysis of pleasure. As we shall
see, the additive conception posits a gap between intelligent agency and hap-
piness to be filled by something else—pleasure, say, or desire-satisfaction—that
intelligent agency brings and which is what determines happiness,16 while the
directive conception maintains that there is no such gap to be filled. Con-
sequently, the directive conception both explains why Socrates argues in the
Gorgias that virtue ‘brings fulfillment and happiness’ (507c), and reveals that
hedonism is, in its very theoretical structure, in tension with Plato’s conception
of the nature of happiness and of value in the Gorgias at the most fundamental
level. Consequently, the directive conception of happiness which best explains
Plato’s defense of virtue’s power to make one happy, also explains his rejection
of the idea that pleasure determines happiness.
It is very difficult, therefore, to avoid the conclusion that debates in recent
years over the consistency of the refutation of a rather specific form of hedonism
in the Gorgias with the hedonism that Socrates discusses in the Protagoras, have
not arrived at the heart of the matter, which is that in the Gorgias the search for
what makes a person happy is a search for what is unconditionally good. Since
pleasure is an conditional good, hedonism is a form of the additive conception
of happiness, which Plato rejects in the Gorgias and elsewhere. I thus postpone
16
Notice, then, that on one version of the additive conception a hedonist might hold that while all
virtuous persons are happy, still virtue has no value of its own, but is valuable only for producing as
trouble-free a life as possible, allowing the agent to live in the great pleasures of a mind as untroubled
as possible. In fact, this is the view of Epicurus; see esp. Letter to Menoeceus 132; Principle Doctrines V,
XXV; Cicero, de Finibus II.42 ff.; Athenaeus, Deipnosophists 12, 547a (512 U). Perhaps more subtly, on
another version a hedonist might hold that pleasure is best understood as identical to a certain form
of activity—and indeed to virtuous activity, so that the life of virtue is happy because that life is
identical to the life of greatest pleasure. Rudebusch (1991: 37–40), (1994: 165–9), (1999) attributes
this view to Plato, at least in the ‘Socratic’ (or ‘early’) dialogues. We shall explore Rudebusch’s view in
Ch. 2 (see also, Russell 2000b).
Introduction: Pleasure and the Good Life 11
discussion of the Protagoras until the epilogue. There I argue, on the one hand,
that proponents of the view that Plato espouses the hedonism discussed in the
Protagoras have not appreciated how fundamental a shift in conception of
happiness and value this view would require Plato to have made. And I argue, on
the other, that the Protagoras does not depend for its argumentative success on
Plato’s endorsement of hedonism anyway.17
In Chapter 3 I explore further the analysis of pleasure as a conditional good,
arguing that it is only by understanding pleasure as a conditional good that we can
make complete sense of all that Plato says about pleasure in the Phaedo. As many
commentators have noticed, in the Phaedo Plato seems to denigrate any sort of
power with respect to happiness that we might take pleasure to have, and at the
same time celebrates the philosopher’s life—brought into sharp relief on the day
of Socrates’ death—as satisfying and joyful. Consequently, some of Plato’s
commentators have concluded confidently that he is an ascetic, and others with
equal confidence that he is a hedonist. I argue instead that Plato makes pleasure a
conditional good, that is, a good with no goodness of its own, but depending on
the goodness with which intelligent agency gives pleasure the right kind of place
within one’s life. In its own right, then, pleasure is neither good nor bad; what is
good or bad is the way in which one incorporates pleasure into one’s life and
concerns, so that pleasure is at once a part of the life lived well, and itself powerless
to make one happy, since it does not determine its own place in one’s life, and
even potentially dangerous, should one fail to give it the right place. In the Phaedo,
I argue, pleasure is neither a good nor an evil, full stop, but is a conditional good,
becoming either good or evil depending on the role it plays in one’s life.
In Chapter 4 I explore further just what it means to give pleasure a role to
play in one’s life. The distinction between the additive and directive conceptions
of happiness, we should observe, is also a distinction between conceptions of
happiness that make happiness depend on one’s flourishing in some aspect or
other of one’s life, on the one hand, and those that make happiness depend
on the flourishing in all aspects of one’s life, under the direction of intelligent
agency. On the directive conception, then, happiness is holistic, consisting in the
flourishing of all of those dimensions of a person that make her a human
being—complete with passions, emotions, desires, pleasures, and pains. Here
I focus on the Republic, especially books IV and IX, arguing that on Plato’s view
pleasure is part of the good life not as a supplement to intelligent agency, but as
a part of our nature that intelligent agency transforms and causes to flourish.
This reconstruction of Plato’s view, I argue, makes the best sense of the
importance Plato assigns to pleasure in demonstrating the happiness of the
virtuous life: the virtuous are happy because they live the life of integrated and
flourishing human beings, which are among other things affective beings; virtue,
then, is the psychic health of a human being as a whole human being.
17
None the less, readers who would prefer to begin an investigation of pleasure in Plato with the
Protagoras should feel free to read the epilogue first.
12 Introduction: Pleasure and the Good Life
18
For a discussion of processes of cultivating emotions in an Aristotelian context, see Sherman
(1997: 83–93).
Introduction: Pleasure and the Good Life 13
trouble. Although Plato does speak of the relation between these natures in
terms of the agreement model, he also speaks of them in terms of the control
model, the view that our affective nature lacks such subtlety and thus will
conform to reason only by being restrained and curbed, but not internally
transformed. I discuss these two models as they appear in various forms in
Plato’s Republic, Laws, and Timaeus, in Chapter 7, exploring the tension between
these models, as well as Plato’s motivation for speaking in the terms of both. The
problem, however, is that Plato does not seem to have chosen one over the other
as an account of psychic conformity, nor to have found a theory that unifies the
perspectives on our psychology that each represents. And without a unified
psychological account of the harmony that rational incorporation posits
between pleasure and intelligent agency, Plato’s ethical analysis of pleasure lacks
a supporting psychological analysis of pleasure. Now I shall argue that the
control model, which is in tension with Plato’s account of rational incorpora-
tion, is also more independently problematic than the agreement model which
supports his account of rational incorporation. None the less, in the end Plato
still falls short of the unified psychological account he needs, in ways that are
both interesting and instructive for us now. Plato, it seems, has much to offer us
that is new, both for understanding fresh possibilities for thinking of pleasure as
part of the good life, and for appreciating the implications that these possibilities
have for—and the demands they place on—other areas of moral philosophy and
psychology.
Plato was, at one time, a hedonist, and that he later threw this position over for
another. For different reasons, J. C. B. Gosling and C. C. W. Taylor (The Greeks
on Pleasure, Oxford, 1982) argue that Plato moves from one view of the good to
another, and at least at some point his view is a hedonist one.19 George
Rudebusch’s more recent Socrates, Pleasure, and Value (Oxford, 1999) presents a
unified account of Plato’s view, at least in the so-called Socratic dialogues, but
argues that that account is a hedonist one.20 And while Julia Annas argues in
Platonic Ethics, Old and New (Oxford, 1999) that Plato’s view is largely unified
and non-hedonist, none the less it falls outside the scope of that work to offer a
full-length discussion of the matter.21
There is, then, a rather startling lacuna in the literature on this very important
area of Plato’s ethics. It is this lacuna that I shall try to fill with this book. More
than that, however, I have also tried to situate the issue of pleasure within the
broader context of Plato’s thought about value in general, and his treatment of
non-moral goods in particular, and thus also within the conception of virtue
and happiness that I think Plato both needs and strives to articulate. Deep
sensitivity to such larger issues is not wholly absent in the current literature on
pleasure in Plato’s ethics (Irwin is especially sensitive to these issues, I think), but
is still less common than one might reasonably expect, and so I shall try to fill
that part of the lacuna as well.
19
According to Irwin, Plato shifts from the view that the good is pleasure, to the view that the good is
desire satisfaction. Gosling and Taylor also depict a shift in Plato away from the view that the good is
pleasure; however, it is not entirely clear to me precisely what Plato shifts toward, on their view.
20
It must be noted, however, that the hedonism of Rudebusch’s account is strikingly subtle and
sophisticated, and represents in my opinion a significant advance over all previous hedonist accounts
of so-called Socratic philosophy.
21
The same unavoidable scope limitations apply also to Irwin (1995). There is also the pioneering
work of Jussi Tenkku (1956) to consider. However, it is rarely possible to situate Tenkku’s view in this
debate, which of course post-dates him, and so throughout I shall refer only to particular observations
of his as they seem salient.
Introduction: Pleasure and the Good Life 15
Plato makes it clear that thinking about the value that something—pleasure, or
anything else—should have in your life begins naturally with reflection on what
it makes sense for a person to want to get out of life in the first place. This is, at
any rate, where Plato’s reflections on the nature of value begin, most notably in
the Euthydemus. It is important to see that Plato’s reflections begin where they
do because that, Plato holds, is where reflective people usually begin when they
think about what really matters to them in life. Everyone, he notes, wants to be
happy, or fare well (e prttein), and no one disagrees about whether a good life
is what he wants to live (278e3–279a1). But that is only where reflection about
value begins, and it is quite another matter to determine just what a good life
amounts to (279a1 ff.). Philosophical theorizing, then, is not supposed to replace
ordinary reflection, but to extend it and give it a focus that we may fail to
recognize without more rigorous thought. In fact, it may even turn out that
many of our pre-theoretical notions must actually be given up.
For that reason, I shall begin our reflections on the nature of value with Plato
in the Euthydemus. Doing so, I believe, will afford insight into the different sorts
of roles that different goods play in our life, and thus with a crucial choice
between ways of thinking about what happiness is, a choice we may not have
realized we had: in particular, a choice between the idea that happiness depends
on the things in our life in regard to which we act and choose (our health, our
wealth, our projects, and so on) and the idea that happiness depends on the
wisdom with which we act and choose in regard to those things. As we shall see
in the first section of this chapter, Plato defends the latter idea in the Euthydemus,
as he argues that happiness depends on how we give each part of our life the
right sort of place in our life considered as a whole. The idea of giving things
the right place in our life I shall call, in the second section, the ‘rational
incorporation’ of them, and I shall explore what it could mean for pleasure, in
particular, to be rationally incorporated into a person’s life on this model of
practical rationality.
Goodness and the Good Life: The Euthydemus 17
assuming either that that cause ‘achieves’ happiness as a distinct goal or that that cause is itself
constitutive of happiness (although I shall argue for the latter). Of course, I do not pretend that the
locution ‘determines’ is at this point pellucid, but the discussion that follows can be seen as an attempt
to cash it out much more precisely.
5
On the radical nature of Plato’s shift in notions of happiness, cf. Annas (1999: 39 f.); see also
6
Chance (1992: 69). Translations of Euthydemus are my own.
Goodness and the Good Life: The Euthydemus 19
‘So, Cleinias, this would be enough to make someone happy: both to possess good things
and to put them to use?’
‘That’s how it seems to me.’ (280b8–c3, d7–e3)
The idea here is straightforward enough: things like these, the ways that they
increase our opportunities for undertaking projects, the projects they make
possible, and even the projects themselves have their own sort of power with
respect to happiness. On this view, what makes me happy is the fact that I have
these things, that I am accomplishing things of this sort, and so on. This, of
course, is the view I earlier called the additive conception of happiness, and here
Plato recognizes its immediate attractiveness.
But Socrates does not stop there. He notes that when we think about these
ingredients, we see that their direction matters. Socrates had also listed wisdom as
a good,7 and it now turns out to be a very special good. This is because even using
good things might do us no more good than simply having them but leaving them
alone does (280b7–8). Rather, it depends on what we make of them:
‘So, Cleinias, would this be enough to make someone happy: both to possess good things
and to put them to use?’
‘That’s how it seems to me.’
‘In what way?’ I said. ‘If someone should put them to good use, or even if he didn’t?’
‘If he puts them to good use.’
‘Well said!’ I said. ‘I think it will be more the opposite [of happiness] if someone were to
put something to bad use, than if he were to leave it alone; the former is bad, while the
latter is neither good nor bad. Or isn’t this what we say?’
He agreed. (280d7–281a1)
However, Socrates notes that this thought tends to shift the responsibility for
our happiness away from ingredients in one’s life, and onto the intelligent agency
that gives them direction in one’s life—that is, onto what Socrates calls know-
ledge, a form of practical wisdom:8
‘So,’ I said, ‘when it comes to using the things we said earlier were the good things—
wealth, health, beauty—the correct use of all these sorts of things is knowledge, which
leads and directs our behavior; or is it something else?’
‘It’s knowledge,’ he said.
‘So knowledge, it seems, provides for people not only good fortune but also good action,
in all their possessing and doing.’
He agreed.
‘My God!’ I said. ‘Then do any of our other possessions do us any good without intel-
ligence and wisdom (frnhsiv ka› sof‹a)? . . . The upshot of all this, Cleinias,’ I said, ‘is
presumably that all of the things we said at first were goods—well, the account of them is
7
See 279c1–280b6; we shall return to this passage below. It is also important to note that in what
follows I shall take ‘wisdom’ and ‘virtue’ to be more or less interchangeable, as it is generally
acknowledged among scholars that Plato intends no real distinction between them in this passage.
8
Annas (1993: 59) notes that Socrates’ gloss of ‘knowledge’ in this passage—so foundational in
Socratic ethics—as practical wisdom poses a serious challenge to the traditional view that Socrates
is an ‘intellectualist’, reducing moral virtue to a knowledge that consists in the ability to give
definitions, etc.
20 Goodness and the Good Life: The Euthydemus
not about how they themselves, in their own right, are good by their very nature (ut ge
kaq$ a˛t pfuken gaq), but rather it seems to be this: if ignorance should lead them,
they’re greater evils than their opposites, to whatever degree they are able to encourage the
bad person who is leading them; but when intelligence and wisdom lead them, they are
greater goods—although neither of them themselves, considered in their own right, are of
any value at all (a˝t d kaq$ a˛t o˝dtera a˝tØn o˝den¿v xia e nai).’
‘Apparently,’ he said, ‘and as seems plausible, it is just as you say.’ (281a6–b6, d2–e2)
This is a most interesting development: things and projects that we initially take
the good life to consist in turn out not to have any value of their own after all,
because none of them brings the direction that makes for a happy life. The value of
these things, then, depends entirely on the direction that a wise agent gives them.
So Plato contrasts things besides wisdom that need direction, with the wisdom
which is the source of direction that our lives need. That is why Socrates says
wisdom is good without qualification, and is what determines happiness:
‘So what follows from what we’ve said? Isn’t it this, that of the other things none is either
good or bad, and that of these two, wisdom is good, and ignorance bad?’
He agreed.
‘Well, then let’s have a look at what’s left,’ I said. ‘Since all of us desire to be happy, and
since we evidently become so on account of our use—that is, our good use—of other
things, and since knowledge is what provides this goodness of use and also good fortune,9
every man must, as seems plausible, prepare himself by every means for this: to be as wise
as possible. Right?’
‘Yes,’ he said. (281e2–282a7)
Here Plato makes it clear that the key to happiness is found not in the goods or
even the projects that form the ‘ingredients’ of a person’s life, but in the agency
of the person herself that gives her whole life direction and focus, and which
therefore determines her happiness.
Notice that Socrates says in one breath that things besides wisdom are greater
goods if wisdom directs them (281d6–8), and in the next breath that nothing is
good except wisdom (281e3–5). This raises two very serious questions. The first,
of course, is why we should think that nothing is good except wisdom. Although
we shall see that the argument in the Euthydemus for this claim is importantly
incomplete, none the less some of Plato’s reasons for holding this view will
emerge as we proceed more carefully through the passage, as will the value
theory it appears to embody. And so for now I wish to draw our attention to the
second question, which is how something can be a greater good than something
else if it is not a good in the first place.10 Clearly, Plato’s point is to distinguish a
strict or proper sense of ‘good’ from a qualified or secondary sense, and to say
that only wisdom is good in the strict sense, since only wisdom is good ‘by its
very nature’ (see 281d8–e1). Consequently, Plato takes wisdom to have a radically
different kind of value than anything else has: wisdom has not only a superior
9
The claim that knowledge provides good fortune is controversial, as Plato seems to recognize.
I shall return to this issue below.
10
For comment, see Irwin (1992: 202–4); see also (1995: 74 f., 117–20); and Annas (1999: 44).
Goodness and the Good Life: The Euthydemus 21
value but also a unique value that is built into its very fabric—it alone is good
itself, by its very nature, and considered in its own right. But what exactly does
that mean, and what exactly is this difference in goodness?
must be brought about in one’s career, and therefore careers are extrinsic goods.
Of course, to give your career the right place in your life is to differentiate it as
a good, and in this sense we can say that such an extrinsic good has become
differentiated;16 still, an extrinsic good is never differentiated in its own right,
since something else must differentiate it. In this way extrinsic goods are unlike
intrinsic goods, which are not merely differentiated, but differentiated in their
own right, by their very nature.17
The distinction between intrinsic and extrinsic goods can be made even clearer if
we distinguish them from final and instrumental goods, with which they are often
conflated.18 In particular, extrinsic goods can be final goods:19 Many things that need
something else to make them good can still be valued for their own sake once
they have been made good. So while a career that has been given the right place in
one’s life is an extrinsic good, this is not to say that it can be only an instrumental
good, rather than an end or final good, as careers sometimes are.20 Something is
extrinsically good because of where its goodness comes from, and it is an end because
of how we value it as having the goodness that it does, wherever that goodness
comes from. Clearly, very many extrinsic goods will be final goods; moreover, since
some extrinsic goods are final goods, not all final goods are intrinsic goods.
Therefore, the distinction between intrinsic and extrinsic goods, and that between
final and instrumental goods, are importantly different distinctions.21
One reason why people are often apt to conflate these distinctions, I think, is
the mistaken assumption that when something depends on something else for its
goodness (is extrinsically good), the thing it depends on must always be some
16
As Korsgaard (1983: 179) says, conditional goods whose conditions are met must be understood
as ‘real particulars: this woman’s knowledge, this man’s happiness [i.e. in Kant’s sense of ‘happiness’],
and so on’.
17
Notice that intrinsic goods will all be final goods. More precisely, we should say that intrinsic
goods will be final rather than instrumental goods, in the first instance. There is nothing to prevent
an intrinsic good, such as virtue itself, from being valuable both finally and instrumentally
(cf. Republic II, 357c–358a); still, intrinsic goods are to be valued primarily as final goods, and never
as instrumental goods only (this is also, of course, the force of Kant’s claim that persons are to be
regarded as ends, and not as means only, Grounding 428 ff.). However, as we shall see, although all
intrinsic goods are final goods, not all final goods are intrinsic goods. This is an important point, since
these distinctions are very often run together.
18
Of course, one might identify intrinsic with final goods and extrinsic with instrumental goods on
the basis of some theory about their equivalence, but in most cases this is due to mere carelessness; see
Korsgaard (1983: 169–73).
19
See Korsgaard (1983: 172 ff., 180); see also Lesses (2000: 351). This is an important point to
recognize, as readers sometimes mistakenly assume that since Plato (Republic II, 357b–d) says that
pleasure is a final good (that we do not pursue it for the sake of something else), he must therefore
think that it is an intrinsic good (that it must be good by its very nature).
20
The relations between these categories of goods are complex and interesting. For example,
although choosing a career is an instrumental good—we need to make the choice not for its own sake,
but for the sake of surviving, etc.—it does not follow that the career we choose must therefore be an
instrumental good; see Schmidtz (1994).
21
What would be a case of an intrinsic good? Interestingly, fewer examples of intrinsic goods—
properly understood—present themselves than in the case of extrinsic goods. In fact, this is perhaps
the most interesting fact about intrinsic goods; as I shall argue below, there is really only one thing
that is intrinsically good, or could be, and that is wisdom.
Goodness and the Good Life: The Euthydemus 23
further end that makes it valuable as a means.22 But there is more than one way
of construing the dependence of one thing on another for its goodness. A meal,
for instance, may be said to depend for its goodness on the skillful chef who
made it, or it may be said to depend for its goodness on my hunger which it will
satisfy. If one thing’s dependence on another for its goodness were always of the
latter sort, then all extrinsic goods would be instrumental goods, since the
dependence relation must be understood solely in terms of means and ends. But
that cannot be quite right: surely the fact that it takes good people to make careers
good, and good chefs to make meals good, does not mean that good careers, or
good meals, must be only instrumental goods; by keeping these distinctions
separate, we can avoid that awkward conclusion, and avoid the mistaken con-
clusion that good careers or meals must therefore be intrinsic goods, when what
we mean is that they are (or can be) final goods. So there must also be forms of
dependence other than those that concern means and ends, and finding some
other form of dependence would shed more light on the precise nature of intrinsic
goods and their difference from extrinsic goods. And our discussion of the third
issue will reveal exactly that further form of dependence.23
The third question asks about a thing’s active or passive role in the production
of value: some things have the power to bring about goodness in other things;
while some things must have goodness brought about in them by something
else. A career, to continue our example, must have goodness brought about in it,
whereas the practical intelligence of the one pursuing it brings about its good-
ness, as she gives it the right place in her life. We can capture this difference by
saying that practical intelligence is differentiating : it is what brings about the
goodness in other things, like careers, which are not differentiating, since they do
not direct themselves. Goods of the former type are unconditional goods: their
goodness is not conditioned by something else’s bringing goodness about in
them, but they are responsible for bringing about goodness in other things.
Goods of the latter type are conditional goods, which have goodness brought
about in them by unconditional goods.24 Conditional goods are good depending
entirely on how one behaves in relation to them, and unconditional goods are
those by which one behaves well in relation to other things.
This distinction is clearly connected to the distinction between intrinsic and
extrinsic goods.25 But before discussing that connection, notice that the dis-
tinction between conditional and unconditional goods is apparent in Plato’s
distinction between wisdom and all other goods, which he construes as the
difference between what directs well and what must be directed. Accordingly,
some scholars have cast the distinction between wisdom and all other goods in
22 23
See also Korsgaard (1983: 171 f.). Ibid., (182 f.).
24
This distinction is familiar from Kant’s claim (Grounding, 393 f.) that only the ‘good will’ is
unconditionally good, because its goodness is not conditioned on anything else, while the goodness of
everything else is conditioned on it, as the good will is what brings about goodness in everything else.
Here we find the idea that it is one’s rational agency that is the source of goodness in all things, since it
is what gives other things good or bad direction.
25
In fact, they are coextensive; see Korsgaard (1983: 178 f.).
24 Goodness and the Good Life: The Euthydemus
26
See esp. Vlastos (1991: 230 f.); Annas (1993: 57); and Lesses (2000), who suggests (352) that the
unconditional goodness of wisdom may be the point of Socrates’ saying that wisdom is good in itself
at 281e1. See also Reshotko (2001).
27
Kant makes a similar point in the opening lines of the Grounding (orig. 393): ‘Intelligence, wit,
judgment, and whatever talents of the mind one might want to name are doubtless in many respects
good and desirable, as are such qualities of temperament as courage, resolution, perseverance. But
they can also become extremely bad and harmful if the will, which is to make use of these gifts of
nature and which in its special constitution is called character, is not good. The same holds with gifts
of fortune; power, riches, honor, even health, and that complete well-being and contentment with
one’s condition which is called happiness make for pride and often hereby even arrogance, unless
there is a good will to correct their influence on the mind and herewith also to rectify the whole
principle of action and make it universally conformable to its end.’ (Grounding, trans. Ellington 1993.)
Although Kant’s understanding of such things as ‘courage’ and ‘happiness’ in this passage raises
familiar complications, especially in the context of ancient eudaimonism and virtue theory, we can
easily note the root idea of a vast difference between the sorts of things that need to receive direction
in order to be goods on the one hand and what gives those things their direction on the other.
28
See Lesses (2000); Reshotko (2001).
29
See Reshotko (2001), who claims that virtue is an instrumental good which is unique in
always being instrumental with respect to our ultimate goal, and therefore an ‘unconditional’
good. On the surface, it may appear that Reshotko is claiming that some things can be both
unconditionally good, and extrinsically and instrumentally good; but her usage of ‘unconditional’
is heterodox, and what she is in fact claiming is that there is never any circumstance in which virtue
will fail to be instrumentally good. That instrumental goods should differ in this sort of way is, of
course, most interesting, but we should note that it is not a point about unconditional goods, strictly
speaking.
30
See Korsgaard (1983: 193), who considers and rejects the view that conditional goods can become
unconditional goods by being good in all contexts; the problem with this view, she says, is that it
obscures the important differences in ‘internal relations’ between conditional and unconditional goods
within the agent. Rather, a conditional good whose conditions are met is still a conditional good,
because its goodness consists in ‘its having been decently pursued’.
Goodness and the Good Life: The Euthydemus 25
good is so not because of the ubiquity or frequency of its goodness, but because of
its active role in the production of goodness in other things.31
This is why unconditional goods are differentiating. We may be able to speak
of various ‘conditions’ under which all kinds of things may (fail to) be good, but
when we speak of goodness full stop the fundamental distinction is that between
what flows from the source of all goodness, on the one hand, and what is that
source on the other.32 This is especially clear in the context of eudaimonism,
where we must distinguish between the good things that one incorporates into
one’s life in a rational way, and what it is that so incorporates them. At present
we are speaking of conditional goods not in just any context, but in the special
context of determining what makes something good as part of a person’s happy
life. In this context, the conditions on something’s goodness are of a specific
kind: since no thing or even project could ever make itself the right part of your
life, just by itself, the condition on the goodness of things in your life is your
31
Lesses (2000: 356), for instance, says that ‘ideal friendship’—friendship between virtuous
persons—is an unconditional good, since there is nothing to keep such a friendship from always being
a good. However, even such friendship is still a conditional good, since it must become differentiated
by the virtue of the friends, who make the friendship good. In fact, notice that such a friendship will
also be an extrinsic good, since friendships require direction in order to be good; this does not, of
course, keep such a friendship from being a final good, or end. This is an important mistake to avoid;
indeed, on this line of reasoning Lesses argues that many goods besides wisdom are unconditional
goods, and therefore that the ‘goods’ that Socrates concludes are not really good at all, must be only
those goods he had specifically mentioned earlier in the passage, in order to leave room for other
goods (such as ideal friendship) that are goods in the way that wisdom is (see Lesses 2000: 352). This
reading lacks textual support, however, and flies in the face of Plato’s manifest intent in this passage
to show that wisdom is a unique kind of good.
32
As Korsgaard (1983: 181) puts it, the unconditional good (for Kant, the ‘good will’) acts as ‘the
source and condition of all goodness in the world; goodness, as it were, flows into the world from the
good will, and there would be none without it’. This ‘flow’, she argues, transpires as the rationality
with which one chooses with respect to a thing ‘confers’ value up on it, ‘as the object of a rational and
fully justified choice. Value in this case does not travel from an end to a means but from a fully
rational choice to its object. Value is, as I have put it, ‘‘conferred’’ by choice.’ (Korsgaard 1983: 182 f.)
The unconditional good, then, is strictly speaking defined in terms of its role as an active, productive
force in bringing goodness about in other things that have no goodness of their own (cf. Korsgaard
1983: 179 f., 183 f.).
Two caveats are in order. For one, it should be clear that appealing to this distinction between
conditional and unconditional goods in the context of Platonic ethics does not commit one to the
view that Platonic ‘wisdom’ is identical to Kantian ‘good will’. I shall claim only that they occupy
broadly the same conceptual space in a specific context, namely that of the producer of goodness in
other things through the rationality with which one acts. (For Kant, good will is, we might say, the
flourishing of the rational self, whereas Platonic wisdom or virtue is the flourishing of the whole self,
including what Kant calls the ‘empirical’ human nature. See also Sherman 1997: 15–20.) And, for
another, although Korsgaard sometimes speaks of conditional goods (e.g. paintings) as things that are
good only if certain conditions are met (e.g. only if the paintings can be viewed; see 186 f.), and
unconditional goods as good in all circumstances (see, e.g., 178), this is not definitive of the basic
distinction, but an application of it to extended sorts of test-cases (see 184). On the contrary, when
she speaks of things as having value as part of one’s life, the condition that makes them good is their
having been chosen, desired, and pursued in rational ways, the latter being unconditionally good. In
such cases, the condition under which a conditional good is good, is in fact the unconditional good—
choice and pursuit in accordance with right reason—that gives them their value in the first place
(e.g. 180, 182 f., 190). This is a feature of the distinction that eudaimonists should certainly take
advantage of.
26 Goodness and the Good Life: The Euthydemus
giving them the right place in your life, that is, your desiring, choosing, and
pursuing them in a rational way. In this context, then, the most fundamental
distinction between unconditional and conditional goods is that between the
wisdom of the agent who acts, and the things in regard to which the agent acts
wisely—just as Plato says it is. This is because happiness is both a matter of what
you do with your life, and a matter of what you do with your life.33
Second, a proper understanding of conditional and unconditional goods further
explains how extrinsic goods can be final goods. Some extrinsic goods will depend
for their value on ends that they serve as means, but not all will. A wisely pursued
career is an extrinsic good, since it depends on something else to make it good, but
it can still be an end, since its goodness need not depend (or depend entirely) on
some further end that it serves; it can depend instead on the wisdom with which it
is pursued as an end. Conditional goods are extrinsic goods, and they can be ends,
rather than means. In fact, the vast majority of ends in a person’s life will be
conditional, extrinsic goods; after all, everything in a person’s life needs to be given
direction by wisdom, and the dependence of these things on wisdom for their
goodness does nothing to keep them from being valued for their own sake.34
And third, conditional goods have no power with respect to happiness. This is
in fact the point of making such things conditional goods, properly understood:
they do not have any power with respect to happiness to be unleashed, by virtue
or by anything else. Understanding goodness as a function of something’s role
with respect to one’s life and character, as opposed to a quality that something
can simply have, just like that, shows that it is a mistake to think that conditional
goods, however worth while they may be, somehow make one happy by virtue of
what they are. Moreover, this fact also reveals the significance—and indeed the
necessity—of making virtue the unconditional good: virtue is the intelligent
agency that rationally incorporates all the dimensions of a life into a harmonious
and integrated whole. Virtue is the unconditional good because it is the only
thing that could be—it is agency, active and directive, and it directs in accord-
ance with right reason; that is why virtue can play the appropriate productive
role that unconditional goodness requires, and why it is on virtue that everything
else depends for its goodness. It is not the case that virtue is part of a happy
life only if it is made the right kind of part of one’s life, since there is no way to
make being the right kind of person the wrong part of your life.35 A moment’s
thought shows why virtue—understood as the proper working of one’s soul as
33
Notice, then, that in the context of eudaimonism it is not enough to say merely that virtue is the
condition on which other things can be good, but why virtue should be that condition—why, that is,
virtue plays the special role that that condition plays. This point is very often overlooked, because,
I suspect, the special nature of the conditional/unconditional distinction within the context of
eudaimonism is insufficiently appreciated.
34
It is therefore important to note that I do not share Vlastos’s view that the only things valuable
for their own sake are those that make a contribution of their own to happiness (Vlastos 1991: 207 f.,
224 f.; cf., e.g. Brickhouse and Smith 1994: 103); I shall return to this below.
35
As Aristotle puts the point, there is no need to bring a virtue into a mean, as it just is the mean
(Nicomachean Ethics II.6, 1107a22–7). Notice, however, that we cannot say the same for ‘virtuous
projects’, such as feeding the hungry; I shall return to this below.
Goodness and the Good Life: The Euthydemus 27
a whole—must be this kind of good: virtue is not one thing among many to be
incorporated into one’s life, well or badly, but the thing that does the job of
incorporating other things into one’s life well.
These observations about conditional and unconditional goods have some
important consequences. One is that conditional goods are coextensive with
extrinsic goods. They are in fact two sides of one coin: extrinsic goods rely on
something else to bring about goodness in them, and thus are conditional goods;
and conditional goods are not differentiated in their own right, and thus are
extrinsic goods, requiring differentiation from some other source. Another is
that unconditional goods are coextensive with intrinsic goods. With respect to
happiness, no thing, state of affairs, or project is good by its own nature, except
for one’s wise behavior in relation to all other things. Consequently, the only
thing that could be good in its own right is the agency that directs our behavior
according to right reason. Likewise, as we have seen such agency is the only thing
that could be unconditionally good: agency is active and directive, and so is the
only thing that could bring about the right kind of direction in all areas of a
person’s life, the only thing that could play the active, differentiating role of an
unconditional good.36
We can now understand the difference between the directive and the additive
conceptions of happiness as follows. On the directive conception of happiness,
the unconditionally good is what determines happiness: happiness depends
on the wise agency with which one directs all the aspects of one’s life, since it is
on this agency that goodness in one’s life ultimately depends. On the additive
conception, however, conditional goods are what determine happiness: it may
take wisdom in order for one’s pleasures, desires, or projects to be good, but
once they are good, they assume or reveal—somehow—their own power to
make a person’s life a happy one.37 Moreover, we can also see how wisdom, on
the directive conception, makes other things good: it does so by changing our
attitudes, priorities, and actions so that we give other goods the right place in
our life, in accordance with right reason.
36
This, of course, is why Kant says that only the ‘good will’ is unconditionally good (Grounding
393 f.); and the details of Kant’s thesis aside, we can surely appreciate the motivation behind the
idea that the unconditionally good must be the kind of thing that the good will is, namely a form of
wise agency.
37
In a recent article, Dimas (2002) evidently tries to have it both ways: on the one hand, goods
besides wisdom ‘boost’ happiness when directed by wisdom (the additive conception; see esp. 3 f.),
and, on the other, success is internal to the very exercise of wisdom, which is constitutive of happiness
rather than productive of some other benefit (the directive conception; 13 f.). Consequently, he is
committed to the view that, somehow, both wisdom and other goods are involved in producing value,
and that those other goods have no value themselves (10 f.); he reconciles this by claiming that, whilst
wise behavior constitutes happiness, other goods do not merely provide opportunities, but oppor-
tunities that their recipients certainly will take—opportunities that those goods will ‘induce’ their
recipients to take (16 ff.). This rather convoluted view is the result of trying both to make wisdom
constitutive of happiness, and to give other goods some power of their own with respect to happiness.
By contrast, Chance (1992: 69) notices and calls attention to the important shift in the Euthydemus
from happiness as depending on things, to happiness as depending on the wise use of things. We
cannot have it both ways.
28 Goodness and the Good Life: The Euthydemus
and directs (goumnh ka› katorqosa) our behavior’ (281a8–b1), and Plato
continues to speak of ‘leading’ when he describes the difference between wisdom
and ignorance in handling the things in our life (281d6–e1). Plato gives this gloss
on ‘use’ because wisdom ‘leads and directs’ not other goods themselves, but our
behavior or activity (t
n prxin) with respect to them (281b1). Unlike carpentry,
which literally uses tools and materials, wisdom is a skill that directs us as we go
about our lives; the ‘materials’ of this skill are not in the first instance money,
health, or beauty, but how we behave with respect to money, health, and
beauty.40 Wisdom makes money good for its possessor, not by bringing about
any change in the money, or even by pursuing or accomplishing some particular
project with the money, but by bringing about a change in the agent where
money is concerned. Wisdom is not one skill among many, but a skill of living,
which puts every part of one’s life together in a rational way.41
Wisdom makes other things good, then, by giving them the right place in
one’s life, a place that they cannot give themselves. For example, if Jack is
especially good looking, his good looks may turn out good or bad for him; if he
becomes vain, or manipulative, gets by with fewer talents, exploits sexual
partners, and so on, he will be worse off than if he had been plain but sensible,
honest, talented, and loving. So when Jack incorporates his looks into his vicious
way of life, his looks are part of the wrong direction of his life. Now, we cannot
say that Jack’s good looks have made him worse off; rather, Jack has made himself
worse off by giving his appearance the wrong place in his life.42 Consequently,
the value of things like good looks, Plato says, is fluid (281b–d): value is not in
the ingredients of one’s life, but in how one puts together one’s life as a whole;
and so Plato says of such goods, ‘if ignorance should lead them, they’re greater
evils than their opposites, to whatever degree they are able to encourage the bad
person who is leading them’ (281d6–7). Conversely, wisdom makes such things
good by rationally incorporating them into one’s life. My career, friends, and
family do not determine or augment my happiness, if I am wise; I determine my
happiness, by giving my career, my friends, and my family the right place in my
life, so that my life becomes well lived where these things are concerned. That is
why Plato says of such things ‘when intelligence and wisdom lead them, they are
greater goods’ (281d8). Wisdom makes other things good, then, by making our
behavior rational with respect to them. The right use of other goods, Plato says,
is the rational control of ourselves.
40
It is, of course, simpler (if less precise) to make this point by saying that wisdom directs a
person’s wealth, etc., as Plato does at 281d.
41
Cf. F. White (1990: 126). Con. Brickhouse and Smith (1994: 109), (2000a: 143), (2000b: 84–7),
who argue that wisdom deals with other goods by using them as instrumental goods for the pursuit of
virtuous projects (e.g. feeding the hungry), and by arranging one’s circumstances so that such
instrumental goods will be available. The wise person will surely make such uses of other goods, but
this cannot be the whole story, as by itself it does not account for the fact that wisdom is in the first
instance a skill that directs one’s self with respect to other goods.
42
And notice that a person can make that sort of mistake with anything: possessions, a career, even
friends and family, and even ‘good deeds’ like feeding the hungry or sheltering the homeless—one can
give any of these things the wrong place in her life.
30 Goodness and the Good Life: The Euthydemus
view, success is determined not by the completion of some action, but by how
one engages in all action with wisdom and intelligence. Success, then, is not so
much a ‘what’ as it is a ‘how’—it depends on how one does whatever one does,
because success at acting wisely must always be available to a wise person, who
has no need of further good luck.
This view of success is possible only on the directive conception of happiness.
If our success in life is always available, so long as we act wisely, then happiness
must depend not on the things that we secure and accomplish, but on the
wisdom with which we behave where they are concerned.46 And it is for this
reason that for Plato there is only one unconditional good: intelligent agency, or
what Plato calls wisdom. Wisdom is the only thing differentiated as good just in
its own right, and the only thing differentiating with respect to other things.
Plato’s argument, then, is that wisdom is the only unconditionally good thing,
because only wisdom could have the power of intelligently directing one’s life as
a whole, so that wisdom alone has the power to determine happiness.
It seems clear, then, that in the Euthydemus Plato is defending the directive
conception of happiness against the additive conception, since he makes happi-
ness depend on what is good in its own right and productive of all other goodness,
which he says is wisdom, or intelligent agency. The directive conception of
happiness explains why Plato says in the Euthydemus that only wisdom is good by
its nature, and not made good by something else. It explains why wisdom is a skill,
since wisdom brings about goodness in other things. It explains why things besides
wisdom are not good in their own right, since they are conditional goods relying
on wisdom to bring goodness about in them. It explains why things besides
wisdom, even when they have been made good, are none the less powerless with
respect to happiness, since they are conditional goods that have no such power. It
explains how wisdom directs, in the first instance, not the circumstances of our
lives, but our behavior and our attitudes in response to those circumstances.
And it explains why wisdom is successful in its very exercise, since happiness
depends on the rationality with which one acts.47
Euthydemus is that there is a form of good luck that wisdom itself lacks, he certainly is doing all that
he can to conceal it, as he says merely that with wisdom there is no further need of good luck,
simpliciter.
46
Recently, however, Brickhouse and Smith (2000b: 85–7) have argued that success is always
available to the wise, and that success consists in accomplishment rather than mere exercise, by
arguing that wisdom judges what accomplishments are possible given the resources at hand. Fair
enough, but the more we take this line seriously, the more we are pushed toward seeing the key to
happiness as the rationality with which one acts, rather than in accomplishing specific types of action,
such as exhorting one’s neighbors to righteousness, or giving to the needy (what they call, in general,
‘beneficent activity’, (1994: 109), cf. (2000a: 143), (2000b: 86). I discuss this view in the next section.
47
At Laws I, 631b–d Plato again seems to suggest an account of goods similar to that in the
Euthydemus when he distinguishes ‘human’ benefits like health, beauty, physical strength, and wealth
from ‘divine’ benefits like good judgment, rational self-control, justice, and courage. For he claims that
the former depend on and look toward the latter, and that the latter include and thus ensure the former.
This suggests the view, as in the Euthydemus, that human ‘benefits’ are not good in themselves, but serve
as ‘matter’ for proper use, where it is that use itself that is good. We see this again at Laws II, 661a–d, in
the Athenian’s argument that conventional goods (health, beauty, wealth, etc.) are not good simpliciter,
32 Goodness and the Good Life: The Euthydemus
but are valuable to just and pious people, and a curse to unjust people. However, he also claims there
that conventional evils are evil for just people, and conventional goods are good for just people. But we
need not suppose this to mean that conventional goods and evil are good and evil in their own right (see
also Annas 1999: 42), but only that things like health and strength are helpful for the just, but not for
the unjust (and likewise, mutatis mutandis, for things like sickness and weakness). For things like
sickness hold back the just in a way that they do not hold back the unjust, since being held back is a
hindrance to be avoided only if one is held back from good action. Nor is this to maintain that things
like health are necessary for happiness, since what is necessary for happiness are not such goods
themselves, but the place one gives them (or their opposites) in one’s life. Con. Bobonich (1995: 138),
who suggests that health may be part of what contributes to the happiness of the wise and part of what
contributes to the unhappiness of the unwise (say, by facilitating more unwise behavior).
48
Brickhouse and Smith (1994: 109), (2000b: 86), cf. (2000a: 143). Irwin (1992: 205–13), (1995:
117 f.) also makes goods besides virtue (and even virtue itself ) instrumental goods, but says that they
are instrumentally valuable inasmuch as they are useful for desire-satisfaction, which on his view
constitutes happiness. We shall turn to Irwin’s view below.
49
Actually, Brickhouse and Smith capture this value-theoretical distinction as a distinction
between what they call ‘dependent goods’ and ‘independent goods’ (see esp. 1994: 103 et passim).
Goodness and the Good Life: The Euthydemus 33
Note that this view would explain both why virtue has a different kind of
value from other things, and what it means for virtue to ‘make’ other things
good by ‘using’ them. And surely there is no denying that many goods besides
wisdom will be good because of their instrumental value for virtuous purposes;
money is a ready example. But why should we think that this is the difference—
or even the main difference—between wisdom and other goods? After all, it is
difficult to see how things like pleasure might be instrumentally valuable at all,
and it is extremely difficult to see how things like health, friends, and family
are to be only instrumental goods that one uses to further virtuous projects
(would it be virtuous in the first place to treat them as such?).50 Glossing the
difference between virtue and other goods as the difference between final and
instrumental goods cannot capture all the ways that a skill of living constructs
a good life.
But, aside from this problem, this view also presses the notion of ‘use’ too far,
effectively ignoring Plato’s gloss on ‘use’ in the case of wisdom as ‘leading and
directing our behavior’ (goumnh ka› katorqosa t
n prxin, 281b1). Plato’s
point is that whereas a carpenter’s tool is a hammer, say, the wise person’s
‘tool’—what he ‘uses’ or directs—is actually himself. In that case, the things that
the wise person acts in regard to can be either instrumental or final goods. The
central issue is not how he uses them to accomplish some other goal, but how he
puts his life together with respect to them.
Finally, and perhaps most importantly, notice that this view conflates the
thesis that virtue consists in virtuous activity with the thesis that virtue consists
in virtuous projects. As Brickhouse and Smith correctly note, Plato holds that
one is to be called happy because of what he does, and not merely because of
some inert but admirable state of his soul.51 In this sense, ‘virtuous activity’ is
used synonymously with ‘virtue’, the addition of ‘activity’ serving only to clarify
that by virtue we understand a specific psychic constitution which is essentially
However, it is not entirely clear exactly what the latter distinction is, since it often seems to straddle
both the extrinsic/intrinsic distinction and the instrumental/final distinction. Consider their defini-
tion of an independent good as ‘a good in virtue of nothing other than itself ’, and of a dependent good
as ‘a good in virtue of its contribution to or employment by some good other than itself ’ (1994: 103).
Consider also such statements as ‘anything other than wisdom that is good has its goodness
dependent on the agent’s wisdom’ (2000a: 138); this may be saying that such things are good for the
sake of wisdom, or that they have their goodness instilled in them by wisdom (and their treatment of
the dependence relation seems to go both ways). This ambiguity is especially unfortunate since
extrinsic goods can be final goods; note also that ‘intrinsic’ is treated as the opposite of ‘instrumental’,
at (1994: 104). Their distinction between ‘dependent’ and ‘independent’ goods, then, is not
adequately sensitive to the value-theoretical categories that we need to distinguish. However, their
comment (2000b: 84 f.) that on their view things like good looks, when not required for virtuous
action, have no value at all strongly suggests that their concern is the distinction between instrumental
and final goods.
50
See also Republic II, 357b–c, Gorgias 467c. See also Bobonich (1995: 112–16) for criticism of such
a narrow conception of use.
51
Brickhouse and Smith (1994: 114), citing Gorgias 507b5–c5. See also Aristotle, Nicomachean
Ethics I.5, 1095b30–1096a4, who also rejects a ‘static’ conception of virtue as an account of
happiness.
34 Goodness and the Good Life: The Euthydemus
practical and active.52 However, from this observation about virtue they
conclude that
Socrates drives home his point, not by arguing merely that the soul of the good person is
more orderly than that of the intemperate person, but by showing that the good person
always does well. What qualifies the good person as being ‘blessed and happy’ is the fact
that he or she succeeds in his or her actions.53
But from the fact that happiness is active rather than static, it does not follow
that happiness must consist in specific types of projects—‘beneficent activity’—
that must come off successfully in order for one to be happy.54 So although the
wisdom that Plato has in mind in the Euthydemus is clearly a form of practical
wisdom—it is not a state which might act, but a skill with which we do act—
none the less Plato nowhere suggests in the Euthydemus that that activity must
be some special type of project to be completed, as opposed to the activity at a
more general level of living one’s life in a rational way. Plato seems to think of
‘doing well’ not as completing some noble project but as behaving in a rational
way, whatever one is doing, and however uncooperative external circumstances
may turn out to be.
In fact, in order to take seriously Plato’s account in the Euthydemus of wisdom
and success, we have to think of wisdom in terms of how one behaves in acting,
rather than in terms of what one accomplishes in acting.55 Recall Socrates’ claim
that wisdom itself is not only a form of success (279d6), but is also all the success
one could ever need: ‘when there is wisdom, the one who has it has no further
need of good luck’ (mhdn prosde·sqai e˝tuc‹av, 280b2–3, emphasis added). But
of course the outcome of every project depends on external circumstances,56
52
It is also important to note that it is in this sense that I shall intend the phrase ‘virtuous activity’
when it appears in this book. It is especially important to keep in mind that I do not intend by this
phrase to speak of the activity characteristically associated with a virtue (e.g. as running into a burning
building is often associated with courage), as if one could engage in ‘virtuous activity’ by doing what a
virtuous person does, but not on the basis of the kind of internal states from which the virtuous
person does it (see also Aristotle, Nicomachean Ethics II.4). To engage in virtuous activity, then, is to
53
act from a virtuous character. Brickhouse and Smith (1994: 114), emphasis in original.
54
Again, Carneades’ distinction between views placing the greatest good in the right kind of
aiming, and views placing the greatest good in the right kind of outcome, is instructive here; Cicero,
de Finibus V.16–22.
55
It is worth noting that these two ways of construing virtue as activity correspond to two readings
of a notorious passage of the Apology (30a7–b4), as saying either that virtue makes good things like
wealth, or that virtue makes things like wealth good. Brickhouse and Smith (2000b) defend the former
reading, which is in line with their view that virtue needs to produce such goods in order to carry out
its characteristic projects. Plato’s account of wisdom as identical to success in the Euthydemus,
however, clearly seems to favor the view that virtue makes things good, since the account of wisdom
and success requires that success be a matter of how one acts, rather than what one accomplishes with
the cooperation of circumstances beyond one’s control. (On the latter reading of the Apology passage,
see Annas (1999: 49 and n. 58).)
56
Brickhouse and Smith (1994: 114–17) consider and reject the idea that virtue may be a skill of
adapting to the circumstances at hand, on the grounds of Republic I, 335b2–e6, which says that virtue
must always benefit and never harm others, and on the grounds of Apology 38a1–8, which depicts
Socrates’ divine commission to improve his neighbors. However, the point of the Republic passage is
not that the virtue consists in constant beneficent projects; the point is rather a modal one, that virtue
Goodness and the Good Life: The Euthydemus 35
even in the case of a wise person who exercises what control he has in arranging
for those circumstances that make his projects possible, and even if he under-
takes only those projects that seem possible given his present circumstances.57
It is important to remember at this point that all projects—even beneficent
projects—are conditional goods, since all projects can take the wrong place in
one’s life. I do not do well to feed the hungry, or exhort my neighbors to
righteousness, if in doing so I deprive my own children of the time, attention,
and guidance they need from me as a parent, say, and which I am obliged as a
parent to give them.58 Projects require direction from a holistic skill of living
that grasps all of one’s priorities and values and puts them together in the right
sort of way. Projects, then, are undifferentiated; and while they become differ-
entiated as good when one engages in them in the right way, they are still
conditional goods. Conditional goods never become unconditional goods, even
when they have been differentiated, for to be a conditional good is to be
dependent for goodness on an unconditional good. Wisdom, on the other hand,
is unconditionally good, because it is a holistic skill that puts projects together
so that they can be virtuous projects. And this is why it is so important to
distinguish the projects we engage in wisely from the wisdom with which we
engage in them: the directive conception of happiness makes happiness depend
on the wisdom with which we engage in projects, while this version of the
additive conception makes happiness depend on the projects themselves—and
for that reason cannot take seriously what Plato says about wisdom and success.
Neither can the view that virtue is instrumentally valuable for, but distinct
from, happiness. Terence Irwin defends one such view: since our common-sense59
conception of happiness requires that one have no frustrated desires, but since one
is such as to benefit, and never such as to harm (cp. the analogous Stoic claim at Diogenes Laertius,
Lives VII.103; Stobaeus, Anthology II.5d). Moreover, from the fact that Socrates (or anyone) has a
special commission, and even ought to take great trouble to make sure that he can fulfill it, it does not
follow that he cannot be happy if circumstances prevent him from carrying it out; nor do Brickhouse
and Smith demonstrate that it does. This is to say that Socrates has something to aim at, not that his
happiness requires a certain outcome from his aiming.
57
See Brickhouse and Smith (2000b: 83 f.). Brickhouse and Smith claim, for instance, that ‘even
when it is an exotic disease that must be diagnosed and treated, virtue results in health’ (2000b: 84);
and also, ‘if one is in a position to get the best use possible from the resources one has, one will also be
in a good position to use one’s resources in such a way as to produce other resources one needs’
(2000b: 86 f.). But, of course, this raises many questions: What if there is no doctor available for the
virtuous person to bring in for diagnosis and treatment? What if the disease is too rare to be
diagnosed? What if no treatment exists? And so on. Accordingly, they qualify their thesis that virtue
guarantees a high level of control over one’s circumstances with the caveat that ‘what action con-
stitutes noble action is crucially dependent upon the circumstances the agent finds herself in, which
are, in turn, dependent upon the agent’s assessment of what can be put in the service of noble action’
(2000b: 85 f.). They try to retain the success of wisdom, then, by arguing that if one makes the best use
of available resources, then one will be able to use them to get the resources one needs for success
(2000b: 86 f.). Even so, they surely cannot maintain that wisdom is a guarantee of success in their
sense (see 2000b: 87), as man is yet to discover how to make circumstances cooperate with his
endeavors, however modest those endeavors may be.
58
Nor do I see how even a divine commission to do so would change this fact.
59
For the special emphasis that Irwin places on such considerations, see Irwin (1992: 208 f.,
esp. 213); see also (1995: 68, 106).
36 Goodness and the Good Life: The Euthydemus
cannot always control the circumstances necessary to satisfy the desires one may
happen to have, Socrates must base his belief that wisdom suffices for success on
the thesis that the wise person adapts her desires to the circumstances at hand, so
that she is always guaranteed of having only those desires that she actually can
satisfy.60 On Irwin’s view, wisdom is a special kind of good because only wisdom
can guarantee satisfaction of desires; all other goods are good only in so far as they
are generally useful, but not strictly necessary, for desire-satisfaction.61
On this view, wisdom is instrumentally valuable for desire-satisfaction,62 just
as all other goods are, but is of greater instrumental value than any other good.
Of course, the view that all goods besides happiness (or desire-satisfaction) are
only instrumentally valuable will inherit all of the difficulties that plague the
view that all goods besides wisdom are only instrumentally valuable, which we
discussed above. It also faces a number of special problems. For one thing, on
this view wisdom has the same kind of value—instrumental value—as all other
goods, and this thesis is most pallid in comparison to the clearly radical dif-
ference that Plato says holds between wisdom and all other goods.
More important, this view also fails to take seriously Plato’s point about
wisdom and success. As Irwin concedes, while this view enables Socrates to
defend the sufficiency of wisdom for success, a serious complication arises on
this view for the claim that wisdom is necessary for success, since there could in
principle be a vicious set of desires that it is feasible enough to satisfy.
Accordingly, Irwin concludes that Socrates must have overlooked this fact about
his thesis.63 He must have overlooked it indeed, as in the Euthydemus he claims
not only that wisdom is both sufficient and necessary for success but also that
wisdom is success, and all the success one needs. In fact, on Irwin’s view,
Socrates’ claim that wisdom is success must be not merely over-ambitious but
patently false, since desire-satisfaction is success, while wisdom is distinct from
and (at best) sufficient for desire-satisfaction.
Irwin’s view illustrates how the additive conception places a gap between a
person’s wisdom and a person’s success, which must be filled by some further
good that wisdom secures, such as noble accomplishments or, as in this case,
desire-satisfaction. But Plato perceives no such gap in the Euthydemus. Now
Plato clearly realizes that he needs to say more about how wisdom could be the
same thing as success—he does, after all, go out of his way to have Socrates
concede that he does not know exactly how he arrived at that conclusion
60
See Irwin (1992: 205 ff.), (1995: 117 ff.), cf. (1979: 194, 223). Cp. Tenkku (1956: 73), who
attributes to Socrates the view that ‘he who has least desires may be satisfied and consequently happy’.
61
Irwin (1992: 205–13), (1995: 117 f.).
62
See Irwin (1992: 211 f.), (1995: 67 ff.). Irwin (e.g. 1995: 67, cf. 1979: 141) often bases the
instrumentality of virtue on the fact that Socrates believes both that we do all for the sake of happiness
(Euthydemus 279a ff.), and that if we choose something for the sake of something else, then we do not
choose it for its own sake (Lysis 220a–b). However, as Lesses (1985: 172) rightly notes, the latter claim
in the Lysis covers only distinct objects of pursuit, and thus implies nothing about objects which
are pursued for the sake of objects which they constitute. Nor, of course, does Euthydemus 279a ff. give
any support to the idea that happiness is the only final good.
63
Irwin (1992: 214 f.), (1995: 76 f.). See also Gosling and Taylor (1982: 74 f.).
Goodness and the Good Life: The Euthydemus 37
(280b1)—but what is clear is that he does believe that wisdom is success, and we
should be able to take that thesis seriously, even if we find that it stands in need
of further articulation and defense. However, the additive conception of hap-
piness is formally incapable of taking such a claim seriously, since it makes
happiness depend on something besides wisdom itself that wisdom brings about.
If Plato holds any version of the additive conception, then his silence about the
gap between wisdom and success is not merely odd, but simply inexcusable and
indeed disingenuous, since it is his declared aim in the Euthydemus to investigate
what happiness really consists in.
But perhaps this is too hasty. Perhaps there is a way to take Plato’s claim
about success seriously while maintaining the additive conception after all.
Gregory Vlastos argues that wisdom makes other things good because, if one is a
wise (virtuous) person, then one will be happy, although goods besides wisdom
can increase the wise person’s happiness. On this view, virtue may be able to
bring about happiness, but such happiness will still admit of further increases
when other sorts of goods are added in. Virtue, then, unleashes the power of
other goods to make you happier, if only in small ways, so that with them one
might achieve not merely happiness, but complete happiness.64
On Vlastos’s view, conditional goods are like salt in one’s soup: both have to be
added in the right sort of way, but once they’re added in properly one improves
your soup and the other your life, entirely by its own power and nature (after all,
I don’t make my soup saltier, the salt does), and they fail to do so only if one makes
some positive mistake about them. Thus wealth, or physical beauty, or prestige, we
might say, has a life-improving power of its own, although its power is unleashed
only when certain other conditions are met. On this view, a virtuous person’s
life becomes happier as wealth, or beauty, or prestige is added; they themselves
improve one’s life, even if some people bungle things so badly that these goods are
no longer able to do for them what it is otherwise in their natural power to do.65 In
a word, on this view the meeting of the conditions on a conditional good do not
64
It is therefore important to note that while Vlastos sometimes speaks of virtue as the ‘condition’
under which other goods are good, he does not mean that virtue is an unconditional good in the strict
sense. Rather, he means that other goods have just the sort of life-improving value that conventional
thought takes them to have, but only if one is a virtuous person. For a discussion of this aspect of
Vlastos’s view, see Annas (1999: 44), who argues persuasively that Plato’s aim in the Euthydemus is to
deny of such goods precisely this sort of conventional value: ‘if conventional goods add to the
happiness of the virtuous person in a conventional way—add to her happiness in their own right—
then Plato would be switching around between radically different ways in which conventional goods
and evils can play a role in virtuous and vicious lives.’
65
It might be possible to read Aristotle as defending this account of conditional goods—which, in
J. Solomon’s translation (1984), he calls ‘natural goods’—at Eudemian Ethics VII.15: ‘A good man,
then, is one for whom the natural goods are good. For the goods men fight for and think the
greatest—honour, wealth, bodily excellences, good fortune, and power—are naturally good, but may
be to some hurtful because of their dispositions.’ This might suggest that natural goods are good in
their own right, in a completely conventional sense, if only something (such as vice) does not obstruct
them; in that case, they would not need to be given any special, positive direction in order for them
to be goods, although certain kinds of direction may be able to thwart their goodness. I am not
persuaded that this is in fact Aristotle’s view, but I raise the possibility of such a reading only to clarify
the sort of view in question. I thank Mark LeBar for bringing this passage to my attention.
38 Goodness and the Good Life: The Euthydemus
make the agent good where that thing is concerned, but unleash the goodness that
that thing naturally has, its natural power to add to one’s happiness.
One advantage of this view, it seems, is that it makes the difference between
wisdom and other things a radical one, since only wisdom can determine
happiness. Happiness has many ingredients, and among them is wisdom, but
wisdom still is not one ingredient among many. Another is that it explains how
one might make choices among things, none of which can determine happiness:
although health, for instance, cannot make one happy itself, it can make a wise
person happier than if he were wise but ill, and thus is worth choosing. And this
view also seems to have the great merit of positing no gap between wisdom
and happiness, which preserves the spirit of Plato’s claim about the identity of
wisdom and success. On Vlastos’s view, wisdom suffices for happiness, although
other goods may be able to increase that happiness.
However, on closer inspection Vlastos’s view turns out to have none of these
advantages. For one thing, on Vlastos’s view it turns out that all good things—not
only wisdom—have some power of their own with respect to happiness. But in the
Euthydemus Plato goes to great length to show that the value of things conven-
tionally called ‘good’ is actually fluid—they can actually be bad things for a vicious
person to have—and that they do not have the power with respect to happiness
that conventional thought attributes to them. By contrast, on Vlastos’s view, while
conventional thought about value is mistaken in the case of vicious people, it must
have been right all along when it comes to the virtuous; consequently, goods
besides wisdom have no power with respect to happiness for vicious people, and
yet have a straightforward power with respect to happiness for virtuous people—
the power to increase their happiness.66 This view seems convoluted in the
extreme: somehow, things Plato says have no power with respect to happiness turn
out to have some such power after all, since it is there for wisdom to unleash.
Interestingly, Vlastos does not say how wisdom unleashes that power. He does
not see the difference between conditional and unconditional goods as a difference
in how goodness is brought about. Rather, on his view, if the possession of
wisdom is a materially necessary condition for the goodness of health, say, while
there are no such necessary conditions on the goodness of wisdom, then health is
a conditional good, and wisdom an unconditional one. The difference, then, is
simply a difference in when wisdom and health are good, and not in why wisdom
and health are good in different ways. But, in that case, it is not clear why wisdom
should have a special role with respect to happiness, nor why it should be
necessary for the goodness of other things. Those other things turn out to have
conventional value, after all; why then should they not make some improvement
to the unhappy lot of vicious, foolish people? And if we do not account for
wisdom’s power with respect to happiness in terms of its active role in producing
goodness, why should wisdom be the determining condition for other goods, and
why should it be unconditionally good itself ? Yet as soon as we understand the
66
See Annas (1999: 44).
Goodness and the Good Life: The Euthydemus 39
Vlastos’s view that a thing’s goodness must be explained in terms of its own
contribution to happiness is motivated by his belief that eudaimonism entails
that all goods are good in virtue of conducing to happiness.70 Vlastos appeals
first to Symposium 205a2–3: ‘Of one who wants to be happy there is no longer
any point in asking, ‘‘For what reason does he want to be happy?’’ This answer is
already final.’71 Vlastos concludes that all things that are desirable for their own
sake, that is all final goods, ‘must be components of happiness, for this is the
only way in which they could be desired both for their own sake (as they are
said to be) and for the sake of happiness (as they must be, for [according to
Symposium 205a2–3] happiness is ‘‘the question-stopper’’—the final reason why
anything is desired . . . )’. Of course, from the fact that there is nothing beyond
happiness for the sake of which one could desire happiness, it does not follow
that everything we desire for its own sake must be a component of happiness.
The missing premise, according to Vlastos, comes at Gorgias 499e7–8: ‘The good
[ ¼ happiness] is the final end (tlov) of all our actions; everything must be done
for its sake.’72 And so Vlastos argues that if (1) happiness is the only end beyond
which nothing can be desired—the only thing that is all that we want—and if
(2) everything else we desire we desire for the sake of that end, then (3) everything
besides happiness that we desire must make some contribution to our happiness.
But Plato is not committed to premise (2); all that he says in Gorgias 499e7–8 is
that our actions with respect to instrumental goods must in the end be explained
in terms of some final good we intend to achieve by them, in other words, that the
instrumental value of one thing entails the final value of some other thing.
Here again the directive conception of happiness does better: money, say,
and physical comfort cannot do anything to make a person happy, under any
conditions, but one’s attitude toward money and physical comfort can make a
tremendous difference in one’s happiness. And, on this account, there is nothing
to keep a person with the right sort of attitude toward money and physical
comfort from preferring plenty to poverty, or a clean bed to a filthy one, for its
own sake. Eudaimonism requires that our particular ends be unified by our final
end of living a happy life. It does not prevent those particular ends from being
ends in the first place.73
70
See Vlastos (1991: 207 f., 224 f.). See also, e.g. Brickhouse and Smith (1994: 103).
71
Trans. Vlastos (1991: 203). 72
Ibid., 224 f. The insertion of ‘[ ¼ happiness]’ is Vlastos’s.
73
Indeed, consider the view of Seneca: ‘ ‘‘Well, then,’’ says the opposition, ‘‘if virtue is not impeded
by good health and repose and freedom from pain, will you not seek these things?’’ Of course I shall,
not, however, because they are goods but because they are in accordance with nature and because I
shall avail myself of them judiciously. And what good will they involve? Simply this: proper choice.
When I put on clothing that is appropriate, when I walk as I should, when I dine as becomes me, it is
not the dinner or the walk or the clothing that are good but my own program of observing in every act
a measure which conforms to reason. I must add that choice of becoming clothing is a desideratum,
for man is by nature a tidy and well-groomed animal. Becoming clothing is therefore not a good per se,
but the choice of becoming clothing is; the good lies not in the thing but in the quality of selection.
Our modes of action, not the things we do, are honorable’ (Letter to Lucilius 92.11–12, trans. Hadas
1958). On Seneca’s view, it makes sense to prefer presentable clothing to shabby clothing (ceteris paribus)
not because presentable clothing has any value of its own, but because it is better for beings like us
Goodness and the Good Life: The Euthydemus 41
Perhaps the greatest problem for Vlastos’s view, however, lies in his
assumption that happiness can be incomplete, and can be improved and
increased by degrees, if only small ones. But happiness is what we predicate of
a life when it is a success, and when nothing is missing;74 indeed, that is the
point of Plato’s making it a truism that happiness is always the final answer to
questions about what we want: happiness is the final thing we want, because
there is nothing beyond it that we could want—that is what happiness stands for.
If beyond happiness there is something further—‘complete’ happiness, say—
then happiness cannot be the ‘question-stopper’ that Plato says it is, after all.
Consequently, by specifying that by ‘happiness’ he means that beyond which
nothing more could be wanted, Plato has misled us, just as Socrates has misled
Cleinias by holding out virtue as the key to our complete and final end of
happiness.75 As Cicero said, happiness is by its nature complete: ‘What can be
less commendable’, he asks, ‘than [the view] that someone should be happy, but
not happy enough? Whatever is added to something that is enough, is too much;
but no one is too happy, so no one is happier than happy.’76
to choose things that suit our dignity; it makes sense, then, to prefer presentable clothes to shabby
clothes, even though the clothes have no value of their own, because the choice of the presentable
clothes is good, and is in accordance with right reason. See Russell (2004: 250 ff.); con. N. White (1990),
who, in my opinion, is not sufficiently sensitive to this line of thought in Stoicism. We shall return to
this line of thought in Ch. 5; for further discussion of the idea that happiness as the final end is
consistent with pursuing other final goods that do not conduce to happiness, see Russell (2003).
74
See also Aristotle, Nicomachean Ethics I.7, 1097a24–b24.
75
Likewise, Reshotko (2001: 333 and n. 19) claims that, for Socrates, virtue suffices not for
happiness, but for the greatest degree of happiness possible given one’s circumstances, or what she
calls ‘maxhap’. This view replaces talk of happiness as potentially incomplete with talk of happiness-
like states that do not, in fact, qualify as happiness on account of their incompleteness. But this is no
solution of the problem; again, Socrates claims that wisdom is success, and not something success-like,
but not in fact success, which on this view turns out to require the cooperation of external cir-
cumstances after all—precisely the thesis Socrates is at such pains to reject in the Euthydemus.
Reshotko’s view, we should notice, seems to be motivated by the assumption that happiness is a goal
to be reached by virtuous action in much the same way that a finish line is a goal to be reached by
running; in both cases, the goal is something that one may be said to approach by degrees. But it is not
at all clear to me how happiness could be an independent goal that one might achieve by means of a
certain kind of living, as opposed to a goal that consists in a certain kind of living.
76
My translation; see Cicero, de Finibus V.81–3. Cicero is responding to Antiochus’ defense of the
view that while virtue is sufficient for happiness, it is not sufficient for complete happiness, which
requires other goods in addition. Likewise, Vlastos (1991: 216 n. 64) argues that since one unhappy
person can be unhappier than another (citing Gorgias 479d, Euthydemus 281c2), it must follow that
happiness can admit of degrees as well. But, while Vlastos is aware of the similarity of his view to the
one Antiochus discusses (n. 63), he shows utterly no concern over Cicero’s objection. Modern critics
have been no more convinced than Cicero was; see Annas (1999: 43 f.); Bobonich (1995: 108–11); and
Irwin (1979: 248 f.).
This fact explains, I think, why Brickhouse and Smith go to so much trouble to make all goods
besides virtue instrumental goods. As we have seen, they hold the additive conception of happiness
inasmuch as they make happiness dependent on wise activity rather than on the practical wisdom
with which one acts, and on the additive conception goods are to be understood as good in virtue of
their contribution to happiness; but since they also hold that happiness is complete, the only con-
tributions to happiness that goods besides wisdom could make would have to be instrumental, and
not constitutive.
42 Goodness and the Good Life: The Euthydemus
Consequently, notice that on Vlastos’s view the gap between wisdom and
success resurfaces. At first sight, Vlastos appears to avoid that gap, since he
allows wisdom to determine happiness. But the gap has merely been moved:
instead of a gap between wisdom and happiness, we now have a gap between
wisdom and complete happiness, to be filled by various ‘mini-goods’ and their
curious power to make happiness complete. And so Vlastos’s version of the
additive conception inherits the same fatal problem as all the others: it requires a
gap between wisdom and success that Plato insists is not there.
Thus our choice between an additive and a directive conception of happiness
comes down to a choice between happiness as depending on what wise agency
secures through activity—the ability to engage in certain kinds of activity, or the
ability to satisfy desire, or the availability of goods besides virtue, or indeed
pleasure—and happiness as depending on the wise agency with which we engage
in activity. Plato’s view that wisdom is success clearly declares for the latter, and
only the directive conception of happiness can tell us exactly why that should be
so: wisdom is success because happiness depends on the practical intelligence
that puts one’s life together.
79
I thank Bill Artz for pressing this point in an earlier version of this chapter.
80
However, in the final chapter I shall discuss Plato’s failure at developing a unified philosophical
psychology to account for the holism of wisdom that his account of the good life requires.
44 Goodness and the Good Life: The Euthydemus
such affective states as emotions, desires, pains, and pleasures. These are
important, since they turn out to have a rather special relationship to virtue.
For our purposes, there is a most notable difference between psychic goods
and other kinds of goods: whereas rational incorporation—what Plato calls
‘good use’, or ‘leading and directing’—of external and bodily goods is giving our
behavior the direction it needs with respect to those goods, psychic goods will
often be constituents of our behavior itself. Directing my behavior with respect
to wealth, for instance, will be a matter of how I act and prioritize with respect to
wealth, as well as how I formulate desires for wealth, how my emotions change
with gains or losses in wealth, ways in which I enjoy gains in wealth and am
pained at losses, and so on. Bodily and external goods, then, are the kinds of
things that you can direct in this way or that, but your pleasures and your
emotions are always parts of the you who does the directing.81
It is therefore important to understand how psychic goods such as pleasure are
rationally incorporated into a good life—especially because such goods are
conditional goods, and thus depend for their goodness on the direction they take
in one’s life. Many philosophers have said that although we reject certain
pleasures, we never reject them as the pleasures that they are, but only on
account of the consequences that might follow them.82 But this cannot be quite
right, because pleasures require a direction, and without the right kind of dir-
ection certain pleasures can become evils. Our estimation of a shoplifter or her
actions, for example, surely does not improve if we learn that the shoplifter takes
enormous pleasure in her shoplifting, is proud of it, finds other people’s losses
amusing, or what have you; on the contrary, such pleasures only make the
shoplifter worse. This is because, as we saw in the introduction to this book, a
person’s pleasures tell us a great deal about what type of person she is—for
better or worse. If pleasure were always good, and forgone only when it would
prove a bad bargain, we should be less troubled by the pleased shoplifter than by
an indifferent one, and much less than by a regretful one: if pleasure were
intrinsically good, then the world should be a better place, if only by a little, for
the pleasure that the shoplifter experiences in shoplifting, even if the world
would be better off, all things considered, if she stopped shoplifting altogether.
But of course just the opposite is true: the fact that she enjoys shoplifting as
worth while makes her behavior only that much worse.83 Here, pleasure
understood as an affective capacity for finding value in things around us has
81
We would also need to distinguish from these goods the goods of having people that we love in
our lives; for such people, it seems, also become ‘part’ of us in a way that wealth cannot—however
much I come to love money, it can never become a ‘second self ’ for me (see Aristotle, Nicomachean
Ethics IX.4, 1166a31–2)—but then again they are not literally the sorts of ‘parts’ of us that the parts or
dimensions of our psyche are. And there are yet more distinctions between conditional goods that a
complete account would need to draw. But I am unable to pursue the point here.
82
A locus classicus of this view is Bentham’s discussion of the ‘four sanctions’ in the first chapter of
An Introduction to the Principles of Morals and Legislation.
83
Cp. Aristotle’s remarks on the ‘self-indulgent’ person, who does what she sees is wrong, but does
so by choice and without regret, and is therefore worse and less corrigible than the incontinent person
(Nicomachean Ethics VII.4, 1148a13–7, VII.7, 1150a16–32, VII.8).
Goodness and the Good Life: The Euthydemus 45
been incorporated into a person’s life in the wrong way, since this person is
finding value in the wrong sorts of things, and that is a serious strike against the
quality of her life considered as a whole. The oft-heard refrain that no pleasure is
rejected for its own sake seems plausible only as long as we restrict our thinking
to pleasures as sensations (does it always seem plausible, even then?), but of
course that restricted way of thinking does not take us very far in thinking about
pleasure in our life as a whole.84 But if we think of pleasure as a kind of affective
attitude that ascribes value to the object of the pleasure—an attitude that has
real ethical significance—then it seems quite clear that we do reject certain
pleasures as the pleasures that they are, and even praise some pains as the pains
that they are.85
Notice also that the direction that pleasures need is a direction that must be
brought to them by something else. They do not direct themselves. For this
reason, it is also particularly implausible to think of psychic conditional goods as
having their own life-improving power, even if only in certain kinds of lives; for
saying so suggests that there is some direction that they take on their own. But
although our pleasures and our emotions always go in some direction or other,
they do not take any particular direction under their own power. They do so
only as part of the character of which they have become part. Since it is the
direction within one’s character that determines whether such goods actually do
us any good or not, we cannot say that they do us either any bad or good under
their own power. It takes vice to make them bad, and it takes virtue to make them
good;86 there is no such direction that they have by default. Such pleasures, then,
will be good or evil depending on the direction the agent gives them in her life.
Consequently, such pleasures are conditional goods, and require rational
incorporation—and rational incorporation of a rather special type, since such
pleasures are themselves kinds of attitudes and behaviors, rather than merely
things in relation to which we behave and form attitudes.
How, then, does virtue give good direction to a psychic good? If rationally
incorporating something like wealth means directing my behavior with respect
to wealth, how do I rationally incorporate my pleasures, which are part of my
behavior? Virtue directs a psychic good, I suggest, by making that good a part of
virtue itself. While a person has a virtue with respect to wealth when wealth is
Of course, we might defend the view that pleasures can be ‘bad’ only in the sense of having painful
consequences by claiming that our repulsion by the shoplifter’s pleasure is due to the fact that such
behaviors tend to lead to more painful consequences later on. And, as far as I am concerned, anyone
who is satisfied with such a just-so story is welcome to it.
84
We shall further explore the inadequacy of this conception of pleasure for eudaimonism in
Ch. 2, as we examine Socrates’ refutations of Callicles’ hedonism in the Gorgias.
85
e.g. consider Aristotle’s claim that a feeling of shame or remorse is an admirable thing in a
young person who has erred; Nicomachean Ethics IV.9.
86
And I think that a good case can be made for reading Aristotle in this way too, even in the
passage of the Eudemian Ethics I mentioned above: we identify things that are good by nature for
human beings by determining what things are part of the life of a person whose nature has been
fulfilled and actualized, for only in such a person do these goods take on the right sort of direction in a
human life.
46 Goodness and the Good Life: The Euthydemus
given the right sort of place in his or her life, wealth itself cannot become part of
his or virtue itself—it is not part of the psyche at all, and thus not part of the
good order of one’s psyche. But, as we have seen, other dimensions of our lives
are not like that. When pity or fear is given the right sort of place in a person’s
life, not only does that person have a virtue with respect to pity or fear, but she
also has a virtue of pity, or a virtue of fear. In other words, to give your emotion
of pity the right place in your life is not to develop the right attitude toward
something distinct from the ‘you’ that deliberates about such things, but rather
to develop a sense of pity that is itself virtuous, pitying the right people, for the
right reasons. This is, moreover, why we say that wisdom is neither static, nor a
matter of accomplishing noble projects. Wisdom is active, but its function in the
first instance is to unite all the dimensions of one’s life by rationally incorpor-
ating them; this is why the ‘good use’ of these things is wisdom ‘leading and
directing our behavior’. Some dimensions of our life wisdom incorporates by
transforming our attitudes with respect to them, and others it incorporates,
I argue, in so far as they are the very attitudes that it transforms.
This is, I think, an especially plausible model for understanding how wisdom
rationally incorporates pleasure into a good life. Pleasure is a good within the
self, and when transformed by reason, it becomes not merely directed by virtue,
but a part of one’s virtue. My capacity for finding enjoyment and fulfillment in
the things that I do needs to be given direction by right reason if I am to live
well, and reason directs this dimension of myself when I take pleasure in the
sorts of things that it is good that I take pleasure in. In that case, my pleasure
becomes one of the ways in which I find value in things, people, and activities
around me, taking joy in the value and importance that it is reasonable for me to
place in them. So understood, we can see that pleasure is always a part of a
person’s character, for better or worse; and this seems plausible, since, as we
have seen, few things tell us more about people’s characters and who they are
than the sorts of things that they find rewarding and enjoyable. In a virtuous
person, pleasure is part of good character. Good character is one that is directed
by reason, but here the ‘directing’ is a matter of reason’s suffusing all the
practical dimensions of the self—emotions, desires, pleasures, pains, attitudes,
priorities, and so on—with intelligence and harmony, so that they are not so
much ‘controlled’ by reason, as they are harmonized, transformed, and indeed
‘informed’ by reason.
The details of this account of pleasure and the good life are still far from clear,
but it is this account that I shall develop and articulate in the following chapters,
as we find it unfolding in a number of Plato’s dialogues. For that reason, I turn
now to the Gorgias, where Plato develops the directive conception of happiness
in just those respects in which the Euthydemus is incomplete. In the Gorgias
Plato shows, for one thing, how virtue can be both productive and valued for its
own sake, by showing how virtue can be its own product, and, for another, how
virtue, so understood, can be the same as success, or happiness. This is an
especially important result, as it seems to settle recent debates over whether Plato
Goodness and the Good Life: The Euthydemus 47
in the Gorgias allows for happiness to consist in the pleasure that virtue brings.
For to affirm that he does is to assume a gap between virtue and happiness to be
filled by pleasure, and, as we shall see, this is precisely the sort of gap that Plato
in the Gorgias argues is not there. After the Gorgias I shall turn to Plato’s Phaedo,
where I argue that the idea of a conditional good does real work. In particular, it
is only by understanding pleasure as a conditional good that we can make
complete sense of all that Plato says about pleasure in the Phaedo. And in the
chapters that follow (Chapters 4–7), we shall look more closely at the rational
incorporation of pleasure, the relation of pleasure and virtue to each other and
to happiness, and the shape of the psychological model that Plato needs in order
to sustain his account of pleasure and its place in the good life.
2
Pleasure, Virtue, and Happiness
in the Gorgias
Plato believes that wisdom, or virtue, is successful in its very exercise. We see this
in the Euthydemus :
‘Wisdom,’ I said, ‘surely is good luck (<H sof‹a dpou, n d* g, e˝tuc‹a st‹n)—even a
child would know that !’ . . . We ended up agreeing (I don’t know how) that, in summary,
the matter is this: when there is wisdom, the one who has it has no further need of good
luck. (279d6–7, 280b1–3)
Wisdom is good luck, and it is all the good luck one could ever need for success.
Successful exercise of the skill that wisdom is, then, must be completely internal
to the exercise of it. Plato explains this idea by pointing out that whereas other
skills use tools and materials, wisdom ‘uses’ other things by directing the agent’s
behavior with respect to them: ‘the correct use of all these sorts of things is
knowledge, which leads and directs our behavior’ (281a8–b1). The correct use of
other things is the rational incorporation of them into one’s life, which is, in fact,
the transformation of one’s attitudes, values, priorities, and choices with respect
to them—it is a matter, that is, of what sort of place one gives such things in
one’s life. Consequently, such things have no goodness of their own; where they
are concerned, goodness or badness comes into being as such things are given
either a good or bad part of one’s life, rationally or irrationally incorporated into
one’s whole life. And to incorporate all of the dimensions of one’s life into a
rational, integrated whole is to live a successful, flourishing, happy life, which is,
after all, what we all want. Agents become good in relation to things, and in
doing so flourish as agents.
This position rests on a number of theses, none of which is beyond question.
For one thing, Plato supposes that we can speak of one’s life as a whole and the
quality of it, and that people can, and do, and should think about their character
in terms of their life as a whole. He also supposes that a life so considered has a
goal—a single goal—which should be characterized as the happiness of one’s life
as a whole. Of course, these ideas are commonplace in ancient virtue ethics, and
their articulation and defense in ancient virtue ethics has received considerable
Pleasure, Virtue, and Happiness: the Gorgias 49
attention.1 But certain other controversial ideas within Plato’s position demand
our more immediate attention here. Consider Plato’s treatment of wisdom as a
productive skill, an idea that was to prove extremely controversial in the ancient
world. In the Euthydemus Plato construes wisdom as a skill that yields an
outcome, as navigation is for producing safe arrivals, military skill is for pro-
ducing victorious campaigns, and medicine is for producing cured bodies (see
279e–280a). But, as critics have noted, this notion of a skill is in tension with
Plato’s idea that a skill can be successful just in virtue of how one engages in it.
How could it be the case both that wisdom produces something—it is, after all, a
form of practical intelligence—and that its success none the less consists in its
exercise, rather than in its producing a distinct outcome?
This is a deep problem. Recall Plato’s thesis that success, or flourishing, or
happiness, consists in the rational incorporation of all the dimensions of one’s
life—that is, in the wisdom with which one lives one’s life. I have argued that
this is the thesis that emerges when we take seriously the nature of conditional
and unconditional goodness with respect to happiness. But even if we are
convinced that the unconditionally good—wisdom, or intelligent agency—
makes for a good life, why should we think that it is all that a complete and fully
successful life should require? Isn’t this a disturbingly thin conception of human
flourishing? In particular, while this view shows that wisdom is the efficient cause
of happiness—what brings a happy life into being as a happy life—why should
we think that wisdom is also what constitutes the happiness that it creates? This
question is clearly related to the question about skill: if wisdom is what pro-
duces, how can it also constitute what it produces? And, even if we accept this
point about wisdom, it is still another matter to say that the skill analogy could
ever support it. In fact, Plato himself draws attention to this very problem for the
idea that wisdom is a skill in the Euthydemus, only to leave Socrates in aporia.2
And so in the Euthydemus it is left as a puzzle how wisdom could be a skill, and
could be valuable entirely for its own sake, rather than for its distinct product.
Unfortunately, there is no reason to think that Plato ever came to see clearly
how wisdom can be successful in its very exercise from within the skill analogy,
in the Euthydemus or anywhere else. Moreover, even leaving questions of skill
aside, we have seen in the previous chapter that Plato explicitly draws attention
to a lacuna in his very argument (280b1) for the claim that wisdom is successful
1
For a good recent discussion see Annas (1994a), esp. ch. 1. It is also worth pointing out that there
is considerable controversy at present about whether and how character traits have any bearing
on action and explanations of action; but I shall not take that question up here.
2
See 288d–293a, esp. 291d–293a. On this problem, see esp. Annas (1993: 63–6), and also (1994a:
397 ff.), who recognizes that this is in principle a surmountable problem, and one which the Stoics in
particular did later surmount. The product of wisdom, on the Stoic view, is a life lived according to
reason, and that product is no more distinct from wisdom than the products of such skills as dancing
and acting are from the exercise of those skills; see Cicero, de Finibus III.23–5. Moreover, the Stoics
were able to make sense of wisdom as successful in its very exercise from within their conception of
skills generally, which consist primarily in the agent’s grasp of the intellectual structure of the skill,
rather than in the achieving (or the attempt at achieving) some distinct outcome.
50 Pleasure, Virtue, and Happiness: the Gorgias
purely in its exercise. What we do have, then, is an idea that Plato takes very
seriously, and shapes his view of the relation of wisdom to happiness. What we
do not have yet is an articulation and defense of that idea with which Plato
himself is fully satisfied. So what we need is an argument for this conception of
happiness and success that is grounded in our nature as rational human agents.
The Euthydemus offers no such argument. But it is here that the Gorgias
becomes particularly important, for two basic reasons. One, there Plato shows
that since our happiness consists in flourishing according to our distinctive nature
as human beings, and since our nature as human beings consists in our intelligent
agency, our happiness consists entirely in the excellence of that agency. In that
case, doing all things well—being active as intelligent agents—would be the same
thing as happiness, since to live in such a way is the same as flourishing and being
fulfilled as the kind of complete being that a human is by nature (506d–507a, c).
And two, in the Gorgias Plato holds that the ‘product’ of wisdom is, in fact, the
same thing as the exercise of wisdom, since both the product and the exercise
consist in behaving and living well. A person who has the virtues, Socrates says, ‘is
bound to do whatever he does well’, and this means that he will act well with
respect to the gods and to other people, with respect to what he chooses to seek
and to avoid, and with respect to what he turns away from and what he endures
(507a–c)—in short, he will act well in every area of his life. What virtue, or
wisdom, ‘produces’ in such a person, then, is a life in which all of one’s various
concerns and dimensions are integrated into a rational whole. Wisdom produces
a wise way of living, and, of course, this way of living is no different from the very
practice of wisdom itself. This way of understanding the ‘product’ of wisdom also
allows us to see that Plato identifies wisdom and success not by making the notion
of success thin and narrow, but by making the notion of wisdom rich and full.
In the Gorgias, then, we find a more complete articulation of the idea that
happiness depends on the unconditionally good, which is the intelligent agency
that makes all of the dimensions of one’s life take on a goodness that none of
them has in its own right. This articulation comes by way of a more detailed look
at the practice of wisdom and its relation to the life that it produces, and a more
detailed look at the nature of success for human beings as the kinds of beings
that they are by nature. And that is to say that in the Gorgias Plato offers a more
articulated statement and defense of the directive conception of happiness.
However, not only does the Gorgias shed light on Plato’s defense of the
directive conception of happiness, but that conception also sheds light on Plato’s
discussion of pleasure and hedonism in the Gorgias. This is especially significant,
as many discussions of the Gorgias in recent decades have focused on Socrates’
refutation of Callicles’ hedonism in that dialogue, asking whether Socrates’ refuta-
tion is broad enough to count as a refutation of hedonism full stop, or is narrow
enough to be compatible with some form of hedonism that Plato himself
endorses after all, and very many have argued that the latter is the case.3
3
The locus classicus for this view is Gosling and Taylor (1982: 69–77, esp. 76). See also Rudebusch
(1989), (1992: 70), (1994), (1999: ch. 5); N. White (1985: 146, 150 f.); Irwin (1979: 135, 196 f., 199);
Pleasure, Virtue, and Happiness: the Gorgias 51
C. C. W. Taylor (1976: 170); and the more tentative Tarrant (1994: 116–18). Irwin (1995: 111–14),
cf. (1979: 204), argues none the less that the Gorgias does reflect Plato’s misgivings about, and
retraction of, hedonism subsequent to the Protagoras, on the grounds that the argument about pleased
cowards (497d ff.) presents a serious challenge to any form of quantitative hedonism, and that
Socrates denies the priority of pleasure over the good (500a2–4).
52 Pleasure, Virtue, and Happiness: the Gorgias
5
And that would be embarrassing to Gorgias as a professional, especially as a professional who
advertises. See Kahn (1983: 80–4), who claims that Socrates is relying on the professional pressure
upon Gorgias in constructing this ad hominem argument—i.e. an argument designed to show ten-
sions between his interlocutors’ manifest beliefs and commitments. (I shall argue in the epilogue that
Socrates uses a similar strategy against Protagoras.)
The ad hominem nature of Socrates’ argument is important to recognize. While it is not, of course,
our purpose at present to analyze the merits of Socrates’ argument, but only its structure, still I should
point out that most objections (like Polus’, 461b–c) to Socrates’ argument claim that this argument
depends on Gorgias’ agreement to certain claims—that anyone who knows right and wrong must be a
moral person (460b–c), that he will make a student moral (460a), and so on—which Gorgias need
not, and perhaps even does not, really accept; see, e.g., Irwin (1979: 126–9). But it seems clear to me
that Gorgias will be challenged even if these objections hold, and so they are not entirely relevant in the
end. For it may be possible for someone to extricate himself from the problems that Socrates poses for
Gorgias, but it may not be possible for Gorgias himself, given the conception of the good life on which
his position and indeed his career are founded.
54 Pleasure, Virtue, and Happiness: the Gorgias
what determines happiness. The problem that Socrates points out, simply put, is
that when we do what we feel like doing, normally we still do so for a reason—
there is something we take to be good that we want to bring about by doing what
we do (467c–468c).6 However, that means that if someone does what he feels
like doing, but it turns out not to be in his interests to have done so, then,
strictly speaking, he has not done what he really wanted to do (468d–e).7 But, in
that case, the sort of power that Polus has in mind, and thus the rhetorical ability
that gives a person that power (462b–466a), cannot by their own devices give the
right sort of direction to one’s life and projects (467a, 468c–e).8 Rather, it would
need direction from some other source. In his discussions with Gorgias and
Polus, then, Socrates has shown that if rhetoric is conceived as an expertise that
gives direction to one’s life as a whole, then it is difficult to separate it from
moral wisdom, and if rhetoric is anything less than such an expertise, then it is
only conditionally good, and thus not the determinant of happiness.
Moreover, when Polus tries to avoid this conclusion by modifying his con-
ception of power to include not only doing what one feels like doing but also
doing so with impunity (469c–470a, 471a–d), Socrates points out that Polus is
still unable to make power an unconditional good. For Polus agrees that
committing injustice is, after all, a contemptible thing (474c7–8), and is there-
fore9 a bad thing (475c–d).10 And here Polus faces a dilemma: if he does believe
that committing injustice is contemptible, then he needs to rethink his com-
mitment to a life which can be good independent of justice and morality; and if
6
It is a matter of controversy whether this argument deals with apparent goods, i.e. with what
agents take to be good, or whether it deals with the objective good, which is not agent-relative.
I suggest that it deals with both apparent goods and with the objective good: on Polus’ view, power is
the good, and objectively good, although power is the power of obtaining apparent goods. My
interpretation of the argument differs considerably from that of Penner (1991); see also Penner and
Rowe (1994); Brickhouse and Smith (1994: 87 f.). On Penner’s view, the Socratic account of desiring,
wanting, and wishing holds that all desiring is really for the good, and not merely for what agents take
to be good. Likewise, my own view is that Socrates believes that (1) doing what seems best can fail to
achieve the goal one aimed at in doing what seemed best; that (2) it is also an open question whether
actually achieving that goal is consistent with living well, that is with one’s final end of happiness; and
that (3) since everyone really wants to be happy, and only the real good will make one happy, everyone
really wants the real good. (Of course, the sense in which everyone really wants that needs to be
specified; see Brickhouse and Smith (1994: 88–91); cf. Rudebusch (1999: 45 f.).) However, I also
believe that in Socrates’ argument with Polus his focus is limited to (1), which is all that he needs in
order to show that one does not live well by doing what seems best to one.
7
For an excellent discussion of this argument see Rudebusch (1992: 65 f.); Brickhouse and Smith
(1994: 85–7).
8
Con. Weiss (1992: 302–4), who claims that Socrates opts to mock Polus’ conception of power
rather than set about challenging it soberly, even using technically invalid argument.
9
This argument is, of course, very much compressed here, as it takes a number of steps (474d–
475e) for Socrates and Polus to infer ‘bad’ from ‘contemptible’, since Polus denies that they are the
same thing (474c8–d2).
10
It is a much-vexed question whether the evaluative terms employed in the argument are all
indexed to the same point of view, namely that of the agent; I agree with Irwin (1995: 100), who
argues that the point of view in question throughout the discussion is taken by Polus to be the agent’s
(this is, in fact, how Socrates raises the issue, 469c1–2; see also e.g. 474b3–7). See also Berman (1991a:
270 ff.; and esp. Johnson (1989: 200–2). For the contrary view, see, e.g., McKim (1988: 46); Vlastos
(1967); Kahn (1983: 91 f.); Dodds (1959: 249); Irwin (1979: 157–9).
Pleasure, Virtue, and Happiness: the Gorgias 55
he does not believe that such a life is contemptible, then he must rethink his
reliance on the majority of the Athenians as witnesses to his position—and Polus
is quite determined to have popular opinion corroborating on his side.11
Consequently, if a person takes seriously the idea that committing injustice, even
with impunity, is a bad thing—and it seems that Polus does, in the end, take this
idea seriously—then rhetoric and the power it brings are just as capable of
achieving bad things as good things, and thus of making a person even worse off
(476a–481b); consequently, rhetoric and power, as Polus understands them, are
not unconditionally good. And, as he had done with Gorgias, so here Plato
draws to a close the discussion of Polus’ claim that such a good could be what
determines happiness.
When Socrates asks Gorgias and Polus to specify what makes for a happy life,
then, Socrates expects them to tell him what is the unconditional good, which by
its very nature is good for its possessor and is what determines his or her
happiness. This is manifest in the way in which Socrates criticizes Gorgias and
Polus for having failed to specify what makes for happiness, as he points out the
conditional goodness of their candidates, that is, the fact that they are not good
at all without the right sort of direction from some other source. Just as in the
Euthydemus, the search for happiness in good things (here, rhetorical skill and
power) comes up short as soon as those things are shown to need a direction
that they cannot give themselves. It also becomes increasingly clear that, in
Socrates’ view, happiness must consist in the wisdom and intelligence that
accounts for the direction and harmony of the whole of one’s life. For this is the
point of showing that things besides wisdom and virtue require the direction of
wisdom and virtue in order to be good at all; consequently, virtue, and not those
other goods, must have a power all of its own with respect to happiness.
Moreover, not only is it clear that Socrates is working with the directive con-
ception of happiness but also the fact that his companions become increasingly
perturbed with each refutation suggests that they too understand that the search
for what determines happiness is a search for what is unconditionally good. And
this search for the unconditional good gives us the framework we need for
assessing both Socrates’ refutation of Callicles’ hedonism, and Socrates’ own
account of what makes for a happy life.
11
For Polus’ great concern with the backing of popular opinion, see 466a, 470c, 471c–d, 472b,
473e, 474b. Cf. Kahn (1983: 94 f.). I therefore put little stock in Callicles’ objection that Polus’ defeat
was due merely to embarrassment or a sense of shame (482c–483a), understood as reticence to stand
behind what he really thinks; Callicles is followed in this assessment of Polus as ashamed, by Johnson
(1989: 204–6); see also Kahn (1992: 256 f.); and Dodds (1959: 263, 279), who claims that, unlike
Callicles, ‘neither Gorgias nor Polus had the courage of his convictions’.
56 Pleasure, Virtue, and Happiness: the Gorgias
his conception of the good life, he appeals not to popular opinion12 but to
‘nature’. Nature, he says, separates people into two kinds: the naturally superior
and dominant, and the naturally inferior, who can gain dominance only by
restraining the naturally superior people by means of laws and conventions.
Nature smiles upon the man who is able to defend himself against all comers;
this man is fit by nature to dominate inferior persons (483c–e), taking what of
theirs he desires without payment and with impunity, as Heracles drove off
Geryon’s cattle (484a–c). This is why conventional ideas about justice are
wickedly mistaken: the run of common people subvert the natural order and
establish laws and norms which would keep superior men from asserting their
natural right to dominate (483b–e). This natural order, Callicles says, is true
justice, not the sham justice of common lawmakers and moralists. Therefore,
there is no conflict between justice properly understood and the pleonastic
lifestyle of one mighty enough to obtain it.
So Callicles gives us a picture of what the happy life is like, but what exactly is
it about this life that accounts for its happiness? Here again Callicles departs in
an important way from Polus: whereas Polus had conceded that doing whatever
one feels like doing is desirable when it fits into a larger structure of goals in the
right sort of way, Callicles instead thinks of doing whatever one feels like doing
as an end itself. There is not some further goal that doing what one feels like
doing is supposed to achieve in life; the whole point just is to live without
restraint, satisfying one’s every desire—this is what Nature wants for her ideal
person (492e ff.). Hence the ideal person must not restrict or curb these desires,
for to do so would be to succumb to the inauthentic, unnatural values embraced
by common people; rather, he must pursue self-indulgence with impunity, as a
dictator (491d–492c). This removes the need for fitting what one sees fit to do to
what one ‘really’ wants. Doing as one sees fit, in Callicles’ ideal life, can be done
just for the sake of it. The point, then, is indulgence for its own sake.13
Socrates is surprised at this suggestion: doesn’t constant indulgence also
require constant desires to be indulged (493b–494a)? Callicles embraces this
result, since he thinks that the intensity and greatness of the desire determines
the greatness of the pleasure of indulging it; it is by letting desires expand, he
says, and satisfying them that one finds happiness:14
[I]s being hungry, and eating when one’s hungry, an example of the kind of thing you’re
thinking of ?
Yes.
And being thirsty and drinking when one’s thirsty?
Yes, and experiencing desire in all its other forms too, and being able to feel pleasure as
a result of satisfying it and so to live happily (tv llav piqum‹av psav conta ka›
dunmenon plhronta ca‹ronta e˝daimnwv z
n). (494b7–c3)
12
See Irwin (1979: 138 f., cf. 147).
13
For an excellent discussion of Callicles’ conception of the good, see Rudebusch (1992); see also
14
(1989: 33–8). See Irwin (1995: 105).
Pleasure, Virtue, and Happiness: the Gorgias 57
Socrates is surprised again: would someone whose desires were great for, say,
scratching or indecent sexual acts15 live a happy life just by satisfying those
desires (494c–e)? Callicles finds this kind of talk highly distasteful, but
Socrates’ strategy here is clear: it seems that there are people who possess
what Callicles says determines happiness—constant indulgence of intense
desires—but who do not seem thereby to live the sort of life which Callicles
says is the happy one. Rather than deny that intense enjoyment of indulged
appetites determines happiness, however, Callicles bites the bullet and allows
even such persons as these to be examples of living well (495a–d). Why
would Callicles make such an unfortunate concession as that? Actually, it is
not difficult to see why he would do so, if he appreciates Socrates’ approach:
if the pleasure of indulgence makes happy only those who lead a certain
kind of life, then such pleasure would require something else to give it the
right sort of direction after all, and so would not turn out to be uncondi-
tionally good. Consequently, if Callicles says that indulgent pleasures are
unconditionally good, then he must say that all the indulgent are happy. But,
in the end, can Callicles coherently maintain this account of what determines
happiness?
There are two related features of Callicles’ account that, as Socrates’ objec-
tions will reveal, make it highly problematic. One is that on Callicles’ view the
good life is composed of good experiences, namely experiences of great and
intense indulgence. As he says, the good is ‘experiencing desire in all its other
forms too, and being able to feel pleasure as a result of satisfying it and so to live
happily ’. The advantage of this idea, of course, is that it allows him to avoid
questions about the desirable structure of one’s life as a whole, within which
indulgence may not always fit, as Polus learned. But this comes at the cost of
denying the image of the naturally ideal person for whose happiness indulgence
was meant to account in the first place. And this points up the second issue: in
the end, it really does matter to Callicles what type of person one is. Callicles did
not, after all, start out with the thesis that pleasure was the good, and conclude
that the naturally superior person must therefore be happy. Rather, he first
identified that type of person—that sort of life as a whole—as the happy one,
and then offered the pleasantness of such a person’s life as an explanation of his
happiness. Callicles does not, then, really dismiss the relevance for happiness of
the structure of one’s life as a whole, and that threatens his thesis that indul-
gence could determine happiness, because indulgence is not structured.
Reducing happiness to episodes of indulgence, then, is not only desperate but
also futile. Or so Socrates insists in a pair of arguments against Callicles’
hedonism.
15
As Kahn (1983: 105–7) points out, Socrates’ choice of the sexually indecent man (k‹naidov, the
passive adult partner in male homosexual relations) here is especially relevant, since being a k‹naidov
entailed loss of citizen status in Athens; the life of the k‹naidov, then, is particularly out of line with the
kind of public life to which Callicles is committed as the good life.
58 Pleasure, Virtue, and Happiness: the Gorgias
But this is exactly what Socrates and Callicles had agreed we could not say in the
case of living well and living badly:
Well now, according to you it’s impossible to live well and at the same time to live badly.
Yes.
You’ve agreed with me, however, that pleasure and distress can coincide.
Yes, I suppose they do. (496e9–497a3)
Consequently, feeling pleasure cannot be living well, and feeling pain cannot be
living badly, and so pleasure cannot be the good:
It follows that to feel pleasure (t¿ ca‹rein) is not the same as to live well (e˝prttein), and
that to feel distress (t¿ nisqai) is not the same as to live badly (kakØv [sc. prttein])
either. And therefore the pleasant and the good are different. (497a3–5)
Does this argument work? The argument may give the appearance of being
too swift—of being merely clever rather than significant and probative. Perhaps
Callicles is mistaken to think that happiness, as a feature of one’s life as a whole,
should be composed of pleasant episodes, since on that view such episodes,
being both pleasant and painful, should compound into both a happy and an
unhappy life as a whole.17 But that is not Callicles’ only alternative: perhaps
happiness is not determined by the pleasures of particular episodes that are
pleasant-on-balance, yet maximizing such episodes in one’s life could yield an
indulgent life as a whole—the life of an indulgent person—with its own char-
acteristic pleasure.18 In other words, Callicles might deny that happiness consists
in the sum of pleasant episodes, yet maintain that the life spent indulging in such
episodes is its own kind of life with its own kind of satisfaction and meaning. In
that case, pleasure could still be what makes Callicles’ happy person happy.
On the additive conception of happiness, this is precisely the sort of tack that
Callicles should take: to be happy one must be a person of a specific sort, and it
is the characteristic pleasure of that sort of person that accounts for his hap-
piness. And, more generally, if Callicles means to defend some form of
hedonism, he need not limit himself to considering only indulgent, episodic
pleasures. It is interesting, however, that Callicles takes no such tack at all, but
instead grumbles and complains, accusing Socrates of childish behavior (499b).
Hence the obvious question: why doesn’t Callicles take this sort of tack himself,
rather than becoming sullen and sulky, as if he’d actually been forced to give up
17
See Irwin (1979: 198) for the view—correct, in my opinion—that Callicles does think of
happiness in this way. I am not persuaded by the view that, for Callicles, happiness is a feature
of particular episodes and moments, such that happiness of one’s life is nothing more than an
accumulation of such episodes; see N. White (1985: 149–51); Berman (1991b: 125). Still, it is worth
noting that on the latter view Callicles would still be refuted: if a happy episode is identical to a
pleasant episode, then since a pleasant episode is a mixture of pleasure and pain, and thus a mixture
of good and bad, a happy episode should also be an unhappy episode. N. White (1985: 151) claims
that the upshot of such an argument would not be to deny that there are degrees between being
fully badly off and fully well off, but to show that, according to Callicles, there can be no such thing as
being fully well off.
18
Cf. Irwin (1995: 107), (1979: 202); see also Gosling and Taylor (1982: 72–4).
60 Pleasure, Virtue, and Happiness: the Gorgias
19
It is sometimes said that Plato’s hedonism is withheld from Callicles because Callicles is not
prepared to receive it without distortion. But the question is not whether we can find a just-so story
every time we need one, once we have taken it is as a datum that Plato is a hedonist and commenced
work on the Gorgias on that basis; on the additive view, we usually can find some such story or other.
The question is whether the additive or the directive view makes the best sense of the dialogue as a
whole and on its own terms.
Pleasure, Virtue, and Happiness: the Gorgias 61
Yes.
This means that there’s little to tell between good people and bad people in terms of how
good and bad they are, doesn’t it? And that, if anything, bad people are better than good
people? Apart from what we’ve already said, doesn’t the idea that pleasure and good are
the same have these additional consequences? I don’t see how you can avoid this con-
clusion, Callicles, do you? (498d2–499b3)
How should Callicles respond to this line of argument? This depends on how
he thinks of the relation between goodness and happiness. On the additive
conception of happiness, he should feel fairly little distress. Notice that Socrates
seems to talk as if pleasure were just one thing, such that we could find it among
cowardly and courageous people alike. But surely one cannot have the pleasures
of a courageous person without being a courageous person, any more than one
can have the pleasures of visiting the seashore by visiting the prairie. In that case,
Callicles could still maintain the identity of pleasure and goodness by specifying
the particular sorts of pleasures he identifies with goodness. And there are a
number of ways for Callicles to do so: perhaps he could argue that the cour-
ageous are better served in terms of pleasure in their lives as a whole than
cowards are, or that the pleasures characteristic of the courageous are incom-
mensurably superior to those of the cowardly, and so on. In any event, if
Callicles could show that pleasure of the proper sort—pleasure that has the right
sort of direction in one’s life—is good, then there should be nothing in Socrates’
argument to stop him from identifying such pleasure with goodness itself, and
making it what determines happiness.
But, curiously, this is not the course that Callicles actually takes. Instead, he
immediately concedes not only that there are good and bad pleasures, but also
that what is good and worth seeking in life is something quite different from
what is pleasant:
Do you [Socrates] really think that I or anyone else would deny that there are better and
worse pleasures?
Oh no! You’re behaving terribly, Callicles. First you claim that such-and-such is the case,
and then that it isn’t the case. . . . It seems that what you’re saying now is that there are
better and worse pleasures. Is that right?
Yes.
Well, beneficial pleasures are good and harmful ones are bad, aren’t they?
Yes.
And aren’t they beneficial if they have a good effect and harmful if they have a bad effect?
Yes, I agree. . . .
Good experiences are the ones we should be going for, shouldn’t we, whether they’re
pleasant or unpleasant? They’re what we should be concerned with, aren’t they?
Yes.
And hadn’t we better avoid bad ones?
Obviously.
Yes, because Polus and I decided, as you may remember, that the good in some form or
other should be the reason for doing anything. . . . It follows that the good in some form
64 Pleasure, Virtue, and Happiness: the Gorgias
should be the goal of pleasant activities (as much as of any other kind of activity), rather
than pleasure being the goal of good activities.
That’s right. (499b6–d3, e3–7, 500a2–4)
Why is Callicles prepared to concede so much, so soon? On the additive con-
ception of happiness, there is no reason for Callicles to back down from the idea
that pleasure is the good, unless he is too stubborn or too unimaginative to see
that those ‘good’ pleasures could underwrite some new form of hedonism.
Again, perhaps Plato has a hidden agenda and wishes to defend just some such
form of hedonism himself, despite the confidence with which Socrates appears
to think that he has simply put hedonism to rest.
But, again, there is a more plausible answer: Plato has no such agenda, because
he subscribes to the directive conception of happiness. For, on that conception,
the very fact that pleasures must be directed and differentiated in order to be good
is precisely the problem for any form of hedonism: in order for pleasures to be
good, our pleasures must be given a direction that they do not give themselves.
And that is to say that pleasures are conditional goods, and consequently that the
goodness of good pleasures is dependent on that agency that differentiates them
from bad pleasures. On the directive conception, the materials that our agency
makes good do not determine our happiness. Our intelligent agency does that.
And that is exactly the direction that Socrates’ discussion takes, once Callicles
concedes that there are good and bad pleasures: if pleasures can be either good
or bad (499b–e), then since goodness is always our goal (499e–500a), we need
intelligence and skill in order to bring about goodness in this and indeed every
area of our lives:
It follows that the good in some form should be the goal of pleasant activities (as much as
of any other kind of activity), rather than pleasure being the goal of good activities.
That’s right.
Now, is just anyone competent to separate good pleasures from bad ones, or does it always
take an expert?
It takes an expert. (500a2–6)
Socrates then argues that rhetoric is not the sort of expertise that we need
(500a–503d), but that virtue is, since virtue is an expertise that brings about the
kind of organization and harmony that our lives need (503d–505b, 506c–509c),
and therefore determines our happiness in life (507b8–c7; more on this claim
below). Socrates, we see, is making a crucial turn in the search for goodness: our
focus has been on the ingredients of a life as what makes it good or bad, when, in
fact, our focus should be on the intelligent agency we need in order to give our
lives the direction we need. He is, in other words, steering us away from an
additive conception of happiness and toward a directive one—just as he does in
the Euthydemus—on which happiness depends on the intelligent agency with
which one lives one’s life.
Socrates’ second argument shows a very basic problem for the additive con-
ception of happiness: as soon as we take seriously the idea that it matters what
Pleasure, Virtue, and Happiness: the Gorgias 65
kind of person a person turns out to be, we are committed already to the
overriding importance of some feature of a person that brings about the kind of
shape in everything else about the person that is needed in order to be a person
of the right kind. This is exactly the bind that Callicles finds himself in, since he
wants to think of happiness as tied to a certain kind of character, but cannot
then make that happiness consist in the pleasures of that life.22 Even if shrewd
and bold pleasures are better than, and different in kind from, idiotic and
cowardly pleasures, it is still the case that in order for pleasure to become good it
must be given the right sort of shape and direction—and it does not supply this
shape and direction for itself. And likewise for every other conditionally good
thing in one’s life.
This turn in the argument has two very important consequences for Callicles at
this point in the dialogue. For one thing, it requires him to drop not only the fairly
crude hedonism with which he began, but also hedonism of any sort at all, because
hedonism is the view that pleasure is what determines happiness, and Callicles
now recognizes that happiness requires specific direction that pleasure itself
cannot give.23 For another, it requires him to think about what it means to give
oneself appropriate direction, and this line of thought leads quite naturally, as
Socrates points out, to thinking about psychic health and the temperance—which
Socrates treats here as virtue entire—we need in order to make sense of our lives.
This is a deep point: it seems that, as Aristotle would later note,24 people who
think about what happiness means are led to think about the moral virtues not
(pace Callicles) because of unnatural conventions that co-opt their thinking, but
because the fact that happiness requires direction leads us naturally to think about
what aspects of a person might give the whole person the right sort of direction.
So there is a pattern that we find in both the Euthydemus and Socrates’
conversations with each of his companions in the Gorgias: wherever we begin in
thinking about what makes a happy person happy, we are brought back to the
22
Tenkku (1956: 75), notes that Callicles is primarily committed to his ideal life, but argues that
for this reason it was unfair of Socrates to introduce the scratcher and the k‹naidov. This objection
seems to miss Socrates’ strategy of showing Callicles that his conception of the good life is ill served by
his conception of the good.
23
Con. Gosling and Taylor (1982: 74–6), who argue that Socrates refutes only Callicles’ crude
hedonism, and not a more ‘enlightened’ hedonist view, such as that discussed in the Protagoras,
according to which happiness consists not in immediate gratification but the overall, long-term
enjoyment in one’s life as a whole. However, as they note (74 f.) there is no particular reason to think
that a shrewd, daring life will be more pleasant overall than a foolish, cowardly life (and if Plato thinks
there is some such reason, then it is disingenuous of him to keep it out of Callicles’ defense). What is
more, this is again to bring the discussion back to thinking about being the right sort of a person as a
whole, which, as Socrates demonstrates, is very awkward for one who thinks that pleasure determines
happiness, since pleasure itself cannot give one’s life the kind of shape it needs for happiness. Its
goodness, then, would be dependent on what did give this shape, leaving pleasure at most a condi-
tional good, thereby refuting the hedonist thesis that pleasure is an unconditional good. It is also
worth noting that, for this reason, the suggestion that Plato himself could take seriously the idea that
pleasure is the good, although pleasure requires an ‘art’ or skill (tcnh) to give it the appropriate
direction (as it does in the Protagoras), now looks even more implausible; I shall return to this in the
24
epilogue. See esp. Nicomachean Ethics I.7.
66 Pleasure, Virtue, and Happiness: the Gorgias
idea that happiness depends on a skill of living; for whenever they learn that a
candidate good requires our leading and directing it in order for it to be good,
Socrates’ companions give up their claim that that candidate is, in fact, what
determines happiness, rather than the intelligent agency that does that leading
and directing. We see this in Socrates’ conversation with Gorgias, who agrees
that the happy person lives by skill, but is then brought to see that rhetoric
cannot be that skill unless it is a holistic skill of living, rather than one skill
among many that can be misused and thus requires the direction of a skill of
living. We see this pattern again in Socrates’ conversation with Polus, who
denies that one needs a skill of living on the grounds that all one needs is to be
able to do what one wishes, and rhetoric enables one to do that. Socrates points
out to him that when we do what we wish, we still want it to fit within a larger
structure of action which will make us happy. But it takes a skill to achieve that
larger structure of action, and a skill of living, because that larger structure is
one’s life as a whole, and again rhetoric is not that skill. And we see this pattern
also in Socrates’ conversation with Callicles, who argues that one does not need a
skill of living on the grounds that doing what one wishes need not be desired
within a larger structure of action after all, at least when one is powerful enough
to do what one wishes with impunity. Socrates points out that giving up on a
larger structure of action is to give up on the idea that what one wants is to be a
certain kind of person. It is to adopt an episodic conception of happiness, which
is both incoherent in its own right and incapable of characterizing a good life
rather than a poor one. For Plato, there is no getting around the point that
happiness depends on a skill of living that gives one’s life the right sort of
direction it needs, since happiness depends on what kind of person one is.
27
See esp. Dodds (1959: 335 f.), whose view has been quite influential.
28
This sort of move is displayed most clearly by Irwin (1992: 207 ff.), (1995: 106–21), who claims
that without appealing to desire-satisfaction in the virtuous life, Socrates cannot defend the idea that
virtue makes one happy. See also Tarrant (1994: 117), who argues that pleasure is needed as the
ultimate explanation of the value of the good.
Pleasure, Virtue, and Happiness: the Gorgias 69
appropriateness.30 In that case, however much one may prize being a dissolute
and wanton person, and however much satisfaction one may seem to find in
such a lifestyle, what we cannot say is that his dissoluteness has made him a good
human being. This is a point about human nature. We can make the same sort of
point even about plants: however much I may prefer, say, a failing, weak cactus
as a decoration for my windowsill, and in that sense declare that, given my
preferences, such a cactus is a ‘good’ one, I cannot say that such a cactus is a good
cactus. Questions about what makes a good cactus are not settled by considering
such preferences, but by determining what is the natural state of health for a
cactus.31 Likewise, what constitutes flourishing in a human is not to be settled by
appeals to tastes, for dissoluteness, or cruelty, or tyranny, or anything else. It is
settled by determining what kinds of beings we are, and what the health of such a
being, as that kind of being, amounts to. And this is why the unconditional good
is what determines happiness: the unconditional good must be a form of rational
and intelligent agency, and living according to rational, intelligent agency con-
stitutes the health and flourishing of humans as the rational beings that they are
by nature. Consequently, on Plato’s view, the exercise of the skill that brings
direction to one’s life and the mode of living that is one’s peculiar good as a
rational being, are the same—and that is why doing all things well and being
blessed and happy are the same. Plato does not slide from ‘doing well’ to
‘flourishing’. He argues, and argues well, that they are the same thing. On Plato’s
view, virtue is unconditionally good, and the only thing that could be. And, of
course, this is just what the directive conception of happiness maintains: hap-
piness is determined by the intelligent agency with which we live our lives.
We can now also see how Plato’s argument in the Gorgias illuminates the
conception of wisdom and success that he offers in the Euthydemus. According to
the Gorgias, virtue is a special kind of skill: its aim—the proper mode of existence
for a rational being—is the same as the very performance of the skill itself.
Consequently, the Gorgias explains why wisdom guarantees success, and all the
success one could ever need, as Plato says it does in the Euthydemus, since
wisdom aims only at its own performance, which is the same as the good life of a
rational agent. In that case, wisdom does not fall short of success so long as one
acts wisely; failure comes only when one acts unskillfully, that is, unwisely.32
Moreover, wisdom can be both a productive skill—it produces a wise mode of
living—and valuable for its own sake, since a wise mode of living is valuable for
30
Cf. the Stoic view that ‘good’ is not an inert quality that we come across, but an active form of
agency we engage in that produces benefit, and in particular, benefit for the kinds of beings that we are
by nature (see Diogenes Laertius, Lives VII.94).
31
For this analogy, the point that ‘good’ is an ‘attribute adjective’, and the deeper point about the
structure of a virtue-theoretical account of flourishing in general, I am, of course, indebted to
Hursthouse (1999), ch. 9, who, in turn, expresses her indebtedness to Philippa Foot.
32
This is to be contrasted with a ‘stochastic’ skill, such as medicine or navigation, which aims
primarily at a distinct outcome, is valued for the sake of (its tendency to produce) that outcome, and
fails when it falls short of that outcome, even though it is possible to have acted skillfully and well
despite such failure. For a discussion of this contrast, see Annas (1994a), ch. 19. (Notice that since
Brickhouse and Smith (1994), ch. 4, (2000a), ch. 4, and (2000b) make success consist in virtuous
Pleasure, Virtue, and Happiness: the Gorgias 71
its own sake, being the good life of a rational being. Consequently, although it
does not appear that Plato managed to depict this account of wisdom from within
the skill analogy, none the less Plato has managed to articulate a radical account
of the nature of virtue and happiness: virtue determines happiness, because a life
lived according to virtue is the same as the good life for a rational being.
activity considered as virtuous projects, as I argued in Chapter 1, they are committed to thinking of
virtue as a stochastic skill; hence their insistence that further good luck is needed in order for exercise
of the skill to succeed.)
33
Brickhouse and Smith (2000a: 128 f.) capture this idea in their distinction between virtue as a
‘component or constituent good’ and as an ‘instrumental good’. See also Epicurus, who insists that
the virtuous are happy, but emphatically denies that happiness consists in virtue. Epicurus claims that
virtue does lead to happiness—in fact, he goes so far as to claim that virtue is sufficient for happiness
(Letter to Menoeceus 132)—but vehemently denies that virtue is what makes us happy; rather, it is
tranquility (tarax‹a) that makes us happy, while virtue merely allows us to avoid the unnecessary
complications that lead to anxiety and distress (tarac). In fact, Epicurus is deliberately shocking in
making his point that things like virtue have no value of their own, saying that he spits on the ‘noble’,
and people who praise the noble, when its link to pleasure is severed (Athenaeus, Deipnosophists 12,
72 Pleasure, Virtue, and Happiness: the Gorgias
547a; see also de Finibus I.42). This is a deliberately extreme position, but it does demonstrate vividly
the difference between the idea that virtue leads to happiness and the idea that happiness consists
in virtue.
34
These species of the additive conception are defended by Gosling and Taylor (1982); Irwin
(1992) and (1995), esp. ch. 8; Brickhouse and Smith (1994), ch. 4, (2000a), ch. 4, and (2000b); and
Vlastos (1991), ch. 8 (who places a gap not between virtue and happiness, but between virtue and
‘complete’ happiness, respectively).
Pleasure, Virtue, and Happiness: the Gorgias 73
optimum modal pleasure to be the highest good, since he takes them to be the
same thing.35
I think that Rudebusch is correct both to focus on modal rather than sensate
pleasure as a reconstruction of a Socratic or Platonic conception of pleasure, and
to argue that optimum modal pleasure is identical to virtuous activity. Where I
disagree with Rudebusch is in his claim that Plato’s (or Socrates’) acceptance of
these claims shows that he is a hedonist. My disagreement is based on three
considerations: first, my reading of the Gorgias, on which Plato’s account of the
relation between virtue and happiness allows no gap between them;36 second,
the fact that modal hedonism does require such a gap after all, despite the
identity of virtue and optimum modal pleasure; and third, the fact that modal
hedonism proposes to fill that gap with a conditional good. I have already
discussed the first consideration at length, so let me now explain the other two.
It is important to observe that Rudebusch’s view does not make virtue a
means to happiness, but it does posit a gap between virtue and happiness none
the less. That gap exists because modal hedonism requires virtue and modal
pleasure to play different roles in the explanation of the happiness of the happy
life.37 Consider the following two statements:
The life of virtue, because it is the healthy life of a rational being, is happy;
and
The life of virtue, because it is also the life of optimum pleasure, is happy.
Notice an important difference between these two statements. The first tells us
that virtue makes one happy because of what virtue is by its nature. It is not
merely that the healthy life of a rational being is the same thing as the life of virtue ;
35
See Rudebusch (1991: 37–40), (1994: 165–9), (1999), esp. chs. 6–7, 10, et passim; see also Ryle
(1949: 107–10), from whom I have borrowed the example of the golfer and the analysis of the golfer’s
pleasure; and esp. Aristotle, who offers both a ‘negative’ account of pleasure as the absence of psychic
impediment in activity (Nicomachean Ethics VII.12), and a more ‘positive’ account of pleasure as a
kind of psychic involvement in activity (Nicomachean Ethics X.1–5).
36
Consider also Plato’s characterization of virtue as the health of the soul. The true expert,
Socrates says, both in the area of the body and the soul, knows how to bring about the good of the
object of his expertise (503d–504b). The doctor, for instance, knows what is good for the body—
namely physical health—and can bring it about; it is the health itself which is the good of the body in
Socrates’ example and which the doctor brings about (504a–b, e–505a). Surely the same must be the
case when we consider the health of the soul, which Socrates’ example of the doctor is meant to
illuminate (505b). There, the true expert of the soul brings about its good by making it orderly and
‘healthy’ (504b–d, 505b); and whereas physical health is the good of the body, the health of the soul is
the good simpliciter, it is our good. It would be very odd, then, if the doctor brings about the good of
the body by bringing about physical health, but the expert of the soul by bringing about the health of
the soul does not thereby bring about our good, that by possessing which we live well, except
incidentally. For if it is not virtue but something else which virtue secures (e.g. pleasure or desire-
satisfaction), or if it is not virtue per se but virtue qua something else, which is our good, then
Socrates’ example of the doctor is amazingly ill chosen. For that example is meant to show that the
result of expertise is the achievement of the particular good of the thing in question. (As F. White
(1990: 121 f.), puts the point, the final good of the soul is virtue, as the final good of the body is
physical health; see also Tenkku (1956: 91). If this is Socrates’ point, and if we are properly identified
37
with the soul, then virtue is our good strictly speaking.) See Russell (2000b).
74 Pleasure, Virtue, and Happiness: the Gorgias
rather, it is that the former tells us what the latter is.38 By contrast, the second
statement says that what makes us happy is not virtue itself, strictly speaking, but
pleasure. For although (ex hypothesi) the life of optimum pleasure is identical to the
life of virtue, the former does not tell us what the latter is—any more than it tells us
what piety is, say, despite the fact that (again ex hypothesi) the life of optimum
pleasure is identical to the life of piety. Consequently, while the first statement
illuminates the relation of virtue to happiness by revealing the nature of virtue
itself, the second does not. In that case, the second attempts to explain how virtue
makes one happy by appealing to something distinct from what virtue is per se.
And that is to put a gap between virtue and happiness, after all: virtue makes us
happy not because it is virtue, but because it is optimally pleasant. Nor could it be
otherwise, if what one means to defend is any form of hedonism. To be a hedonist,
one must explain virtue’s contribution to happiness on the grounds that the
optimal pleasantness of the life of virtue is what accounts for the happiness of that
life. Without such an accounting, we are left merely with the view that the life of
virtue, which is the happy life, is also the life of optimized modal pleasure—an
interesting and important view, to be sure, but not hedonism.39
To remain a hedonist, then, one must account for the happiness of the vir-
tuous person by appealing to the pleasantness of the virtuous person’s life. Not
only does this posit a gap between virtue and happiness but it also requires that
that gap be filled by a conditional good. This might not be obvious when the
pleasure we have in mind is the pleasure of a mode of life in accordance with
virtue. This is, after all, a rather special pleasure: it is the pleasure of someone
who has transformed his affective life into a healthy and flourishing one. Such
pleasure has been differentiated: it is no longer the case that such pleasure as that
may be either good or bad, depending on what one makes of it, because one has
already made something good of such pleasure. Put another way, conditional
goods are ‘undifferentiated’—are neither good nor bad, but become so
depending on what an agent does with them—only when considered in the
abstract. In the life of a particular person, however, pleasure has already begun to
assume some role or other, and so will be good if that role is good, and bad
otherwise; and, of course, the pleasure of virtue is necessarily pleasure that has
assumed a good role in a person’s life. Why, then, should we say that a form of
hedonism that makes happiness depend on that kind of pleasure is a species of
the additive conception of happiness? Why shouldn’t we say instead that modal
hedonism makes happiness depend on an unconditional good, since the pleasure
of virtue could never fail to be a good thing?
The answer, quite simply, is that pleasure—even the pleasure of virtue—is still
a conditional rather than an unconditional good. To be sure, it has become
38
After all, the President of the United States, for example, is the same individual as the
Commander-in-Chief of the U.S. armed forces, but the latter office does not tell us what the former
office is, or vice versa.
39
Cf. Weiss (1990a), who criticizes Gosling and Taylor (1990) for failing to appreciate this sort of
point in another context.
Pleasure, Virtue, and Happiness: the Gorgias 75
differentiated as a real good, and could not become otherwise differentiated and
remain the pleasure that it is. But the distinction between unconditional and
conditional goods is a distinction between what brings good direction and what
needs good direction that it cannot supply for itself; and wisdom brings to our
pleasures a direction that they cannot give to themselves.40 Therefore, while the
pleasure of virtue is by definition pleasure that has become differentiated as a
good, it is still a conditional good, because it takes wisdom and good character
to effect that differentiation in one’s affective life. Consequently, since modal
hedonism requires that we explain the happiness of the virtuous in terms of a
conditional good, it is a species of the additive conception of happiness, after all.
This difference in formal structure between the additive and the directive
conceptions of happiness brings into sharper relief what is perhaps the chief
difference between them: the directive conception takes more seriously the idea
the holistic nature of happiness than the additive conception does. This fact
about happiness is crucial to Plato’s argument that virtue makes one happy, as
he concentrates on showing that virtue makes us happy because it is the one
thing that can grasp all facets of our life—our choices, our pursuits, our rela-
tionships, our fears and emotions (see 506e–507c)—and make them all good; it
is the wholeness, completeness, and integration of the entire person that makes
for happiness. Plato’s argument makes it clear that one’s happiness depends on
the whole of one’s self and existence, and not on this or that strand of it. Contrast
this with the view that the life of virtue is happy not in the first instance because
of its overall rational pattern and structure as a harmonious and integrated life,
but because of some dimension or other of that life. To say that Plato is a
hedonist, for instance, is to say that the life of virtue is a happy life because it is
identical to the most pleasant life—because, that is, of that particular dimension
of that life. But this is inimical to Plato’s position at its most fundamental level:
for Plato, happiness is a whole, and so happiness cannot be determined by a
conditional good, but only by the unconditional good of virtue, since only virtue
can bring harmony to one’s life as a whole.41
2.4 Conclusion
Discussions of Plato’s treatment of pleasure in the Gorgias have centered
primarily on whether or not Plato leaves room there for hedonism, and so they
have tended to focus on the specific sort of hedonism that Plato criticizes there.
But much more instructive is an understanding of the more fundamental
conception of value that Plato develops and employs in the Gorgias. From this
40
I explore this aspect of the distinction at some length in Ch. 1.
41
It may be objected that Plato leaves some room between virtue and happiness after all, on the
grounds that in the myth at the end of the Gorgias (523a–527a) he shows that virtue ‘pays’ because it
holds out the promise of distinct rewards in the hereafter. However, this objection rests on a mis-
understanding of that myth, the point of which is that the reward of a life of virtue is a continued life of
virtue, since only virtue could be the reward for virtue; see Russell (2001).
76 Pleasure, Virtue, and Happiness: the Gorgias
Plato’s Phaedo is about the last day of Socrates’ life, and it seeks to explain why
Socrates’ last day, and especially his confident demeanor on his last day, make
a fitting ending to his life, tragic though it may be. But the Phaedo is also a
celebration of that life filled with the love of learning and wisdom, and of the self-
sufficiency that such a life brings, leaving one ready to face whatever twists fate
should bring. As such, the setting of the Phaedo affords Plato the perfect
opportunity to reflect on what it is to live a happy, meaningful life, and what
sorts of concerns should shape one’s life, and one’s character, as a whole. So
here Plato raises one of the central questions of ancient ethics—and of human
existence: what does it take to live well? One of the answers to this question that
Plato considers at some length is the common view that to live well is to live
pleasantly, and this is no surprise given the attraction that this sort of view has
held for philosophers and laypersons alike. The Phaedo, therefore, affords a fine
starting-point for identifying what role Plato takes pleasure to have in a well-
lived life considered as a whole.
What is rather more surprising, however, is the broad diversity of views on
this issue that Plato has been said to hold in the Phaedo. On the one hand, some
modern scholars argue that the treatment of pleasure in the Phaedo is com-
patible with, and even suggestive of, the idea that to live pleasantly is to live
well—that is, a form of hedonism.1 On the other, some scholars, ancient and
modern, have argued that the Phaedo contains an unmitigated rejection of
pleasure as an evil, that is, that Plato in the Phaedo is an ascetic.2 Now we may
well suspect that any dialogue that could motivate such diametrically opposed
readings must be more complex than either reading could suggest on its own,
and for this reason some scholars have sought to find a third way, arguing, for
instance, that in the Phaedo the good life requires not scorn for but integration
1
Bostock (1986: 31–3) suggests this, although with mild reservation (34). See Gosling and Taylor
(1982), ch. 5 for a spirited defense of a hedonist reading of the Phaedo.
2
Two prime examples of this tradition are the Neoplatonists Damascius and Olympiodorus,
discussed below. See also, e.g., Hackforth (1955: 49); cf. Gallop (1975: 88); and see Spitzer (1976: 113),
who discusses Zeller, Grube, Jowett, Archer-Hind, and A. E. Taylor as proponents of asceticist
readings of the Phaedo (Spitzer himself disagrees; see esp. 116 f.).
78 Pleasure as a Conditional Good: the Phaedo
of the body and its pleasures; or that pleasure is not the good, but still is a good;
or that pleasure is not to be removed from the best life, but none the less lacks
genuine value.3 But while a third way may be promising, unfortunately pro-
ponents of third ways have had surprisingly little to say about exactly what
Plato’s view is in the Phaedo: What does it mean, really, to ‘integrate’ pleasures
into one’s life? What sort of a good is pleasure, and why? If pleasure lacks
genuine value, what kind of value might it have? Consequently, in the analysis of
pleasure the Phaedo still remains an under-explored dialog.
One common assumption in this debate, however, is that (certain) pleas-
ures must be either good or bad in their own right, and by working on this
assumption we shall probably find Plato’s view in the Phaedo rather difficult to
make out. In contrast, I argue that in the Phaedo Plato believes that what makes
a pleasure good or bad is the sort of place one gives it in one’s life. Instead of
asking, say, whether the pleasures of sex, considered as a type, are themselves
good or bad, I think that Plato would ask whether or not the pleasure a par-
ticular person finds in sex is underwritten by a skewed or a reasonable sense of
what is important. For Plato, pleasure is a complex mental state by which we
attach some form of importance to its object, such that (roughly speaking) our
priorities determine what kinds of things we find pleasurable, and what we find
pleasurable about them. So whether pleasure is a good or bad part of someone’s
life will depend on how well her pleasures track the sorts of priorities and
concerns that it is good for a person to have in order to live well. For Plato,
I argue, pleasure is a conditional good: whether or not pleasure is a good depends
on the role it plays in one’s life.
Treating pleasures as conditional goods will, I believe, make the best sense of
Plato’s observations about pleasure and the good life in the Phaedo. In the first
section of this chapter, I shall discuss the view that Plato defends asceticism in
the Phaedo, and argue that this view rests on the mistaken assumption that, for
Plato, pleasure is bad in its own right, and not in virtue of one’s giving it the
wrong place in one’s life. I argue in the second section that in the Phaedo Plato
also rejects the hedonist view that pleasure is the good, since taking pleasure to be
the good is incompatible with the sorts of priorities one needs in order to make
any kind of good out of pleasure in the first place. I conclude by showing how
the notion of a conditional good affords a new and richer understanding of
Plato’s discussion of pleasure and value in the Phaedo.
3
See, respectively, Spitzer (1976); Tenkku (1956: 102–4, 111, 118); and Weiss (1987).
Pleasure as a Conditional Good: the Phaedo 79
4
We shall return to the confusing, and controversial, ‘exchange’ metaphor in the next section.
5
Olympiodorus, Commentary on the Phaedo 3.5.1–13; cp. Damascius, Lectures on the Phaedo
I.69.6–9, who also includes the necessary and not natural (e.g. shelter).
Pleasure as a Conditional Good: the Phaedo 81
activities; rather, he treats the activities themselves as types, and portrays Plato as
an ascetic about all of them. Consequently, the philosopher, says Olympiodorus,
is not one who seeks moderation in pleasure and desire, but rather seeks to
become completely affectless (pqeia), and thus to extirpate pleasure and desire
altogether.6
Likewise, the Neoplatonist Damascius in his lectures on the Phaedo claims
that whereas one kind of philosophical education involves moderation of
passions (which is discussed, he says, in the Republic and Laws), a higher kind
involves the avoidance of the passions, and the highest the complete ignorance
of the passions and even of one’s very ignorance of them; the latter two kinds of
education, he says, are espoused in the Phaedo and Theaetetus, respectively
(Lectures on the Phaedo I.75).7
Olympiodorus and Damascius clearly interpret the austerity of the Phaedo as
asceticism. We can see how vigorously they propounded this interpretation if we
understand the Stoic notion of the extirpation (pqeia) of the passions (pqh)
that these philosophers appropriate—and in terms of which they frame their
comments on pleasure in the Phaedo8—and how they reinterpret it to embrace
a form of asceticism that the Stoics themselves had eschewed.
The Stoics had held that all passions are irrational—or rather, unreasonable—
and unnatural, as they reflect groundless and potentially dangerous ways of
viewing the world. The various passions are all species of four basic genera:
pleasure, pain, desire, and fear; and in particular pleasure, simply put, is an
‘irrational elation’ (logov parsiv) over something as having a certain
importance, when it does not in fact have that importance.9 And, of course, the
Stoics say that the wise person will not be subject to passions, so understood—he
will be, in this sense, passionless (paqv). In a way, then, when Olympiodorus
and Damascius say that the goal of the philosopher should be not moderation in
pleasure and pain and the other passions but rather their extirpation (pqeia),
in Stoic terms their point is merely that there is no right way to be unreasonable,
or no right way to be mastered by one’s passions. Since pleasure, understood in
this strict sense as a pqov, is always irrational, of course the virtuous person will
not try to partake of such pleasures ‘in the right way’, since that is impossible,
but can treat them correctly only by getting rid of them entirely.
The question remains, however, whether or not there are any other mental
states that are pleasure-like but which are not unreasonable, and of which one
may be able to partake in the right way after all. It is here that Damascius and
Olympiodorus part ways with the Stoics, in a most revealing way. For, on the Stoic
view, pleasures have counterparts (or ‘opposites’, nant‹a) that are reasonable
6
Olympiodorus: ka› tlov a˝tØn [sc. frontizntwn] pqeia (Commentary 4.3.16).
7
Whether or not this is a fair assessment of the relevant passages of the Theaetetus is a very
controversial matter, to which we shall return in Ch. 5.
8
Framing Platonic theses in terms of Stoic theses was not uncommon among ancient Platonists;
e.g. it is quite common and explicit in the Middle Platonist Alcinous’ Handbook of Platonism.
9
See Diogenes Laertius, Lives VII.110–16; Stobaeus, Anthology II.9–10e; see also Galen, On the
Doctrines of Hippocrates and Plato 4.2.9–18, 4.4.16–18, 24–5.
82 Pleasure as a Conditional Good: the Phaedo
it does not really have.14 In that case, we should understand the Stoic notion of
the extirpation of the passions (pqeia) not as affectlessness, but a monumental
revision of one’s priorities and values that entails an equally monumental
revision in one’s emotional life.15
Understanding the Stoic notion of pqeia allows us to see more clearly what
is at stake in the way that Damascius and Olympiodorus appropriate and
transform that notion. In contrast to the Stoics, Olympiodorus and Damascius
understand the extirpation of the passions (pqeia) as complete affectlessness,
rather than extirpation of unreasonable passions (pqh) that leaves room for
other sorts of affective states. Their view is not that the pleasures of eating, sex,
and luxury are reasonable or unreasonable depending on the attitudes toward
eating, sex, and luxury that they reflect. Rather, their view is that such pleasures
are, by their very nature, unreasonable, full stop. For Olympiodorus, such things
as sumptuous meals and even sexual intercourse16 are to be actively avoided as
such; such things as eating and sleeping, which the philosopher cannot avoid, are
to be dealt with only ‘briefly and perfunctorily’ (3.5), as one might deal with a
bothersome neighbor (4.3). According to Olympiodorus, then, it is not possible
to enjoy even life’s simple pleasures as simple pleasures; there is no right way
to enjoy eating, sex, or luxurious surroundings at all—about such things
Olympiodorus is an extreme ascetic.
Moreover, and quite strikingly, Damascius (Lectures on the Phaedo I.164)
explicitly considers and rejects a reading of Phaedo 69a6–c3 on which the life of
virtue is attended by what would appear to be e˝pqeiai. The passage concerns
Socrates’ claim at 69b1–5 that ‘the buying and selling of all things for [wisdom],
or rather with [wisdom], may be real bravery, temperance, justice, and, in short,
true goodness in company with wisdom, whether pleasures and fears and all else
of that sort be added or taken away . . .’.17 According to some of Plato’s inter-
preters, Damascius says, the ‘pleasures and fears’ which may attend the truly
virtuous life are joy (e˝fros¸nhn) at freedom from the body, and the complete
avoidance of what is alien (t
ntelan fug
n tØn ktv), respectively. These
pleasures and fears, on this interpretation, clearly are not what the Stoics would
14
Likewise, for Epicurus (Letter to Menoeceus 127) what makes the desire for, e.g., a sumptuous
meal a groundless (or unreasonable) desire is not the fact that the meal is sumptuous, but one’s
thinking that it is really more important to have a sumptuous meal than a plain one; but if we remove
that groundless opinion, then the desire for a sumptuous meal becomes quite innocuous. Cf. Key
Doctrines XXIX, XXX, Vatican Sayings 59. For this feature of Epicurus’ distinction between kinds of
desires see esp. Annas (1992: 192 ff.); see also Nussbaum (1994: 111–15).
15
I should point out that I do not share the view (see, e.g., Gosling and Taylor (1982: 421)) that,
for the Stoics, the only thing that a virtuous person enjoys is the attainment of virtue itself—as if
virtue was somehow distinct from the life one lives virtuously and capable of being ‘attained’ and
enjoyed as such. This view, I take it, is closely related to the widely held assumption, which I also
reject, that if something is an indifferent—such as one’s health, or loved ones?—then it is ‘at best
peripheral’ to one’s life (again, see Gosling and Taylor (1982: 415)), and therefore, presumably, little
worth enjoying, in any way. But I cannot pursue the point here.
16
Nocturnal emission, he says, will suffice for the philosopher (who is evidently always male, and
happy to leave the business of populating the earth to less noble sorts of folks).
17
We shall examine this controversial passage closely in the next section.
84 Pleasure as a Conditional Good: the Phaedo
first place. Their picture of a good life is a life in which the agent is actively
fighting against his humanity and mortality, unable to be whole as he is, and
thus eagerly awaiting death’s final purification. But that is not a happy life, and it
is not happy even if death really is a final purification. Their prescription is not
to live well as human beings, but to get by with the rubbish we’re stuck with
until we can leave our humanity behind.
20
I do not think that that burden can be met simply by insisting, as Damascius does, that the
philosopher in the Phaedo must be a second-rate one, since, as we have seen, this flies in the face of
Socrates’ explicit description of this philosopher and his virtues as ‘genuine’ (69b2–4). We can arrive
at that conclusion only if we have already decided that a good Platonist must be an ascetic.
21
This point can be easy to miss; e. g. Passmore (1970: 40 f.) suggests both that Plato’s view is
simply that ‘the philosopher is not ‘‘much concerned’’ with eating and drinking, or sexual relations, or
personal adornment’, and that this amounts to ‘some measure of asceticism’.
22
Hackforth (1955: 49) suggests that it is Plato, but not Socrates, who is the ascetic. But this is a
rather odd thing to say, given the enthusiasm with which Plato himself celebrates Socrates’ joyful life
in the Phaedo.
86 Pleasure as a Conditional Good: the Phaedo
thus open his door to poverty, or hold the curb on his pleasures, or contemplate the
endurance of pain? He who ponders these things in his heart is indeed full of joy; but it is
not a cheerful joy. It is just this joy, however, of which I would have you become the
owner; for it will never fail you when once you have found its source. The yield of poor
mines is on the surface; those are really rich whose veins lurk deep, and they will make
more bountiful returns to him who delves unceasingly. So too those baubles which
delight the common crowd afford but a thin pleasure, laid on as a coating, and every joy
that is only plated lacks a real basis. But the joy of which I speak, that to which I am
endeavoring to lead you, is something solid, disclosing itself the more fully as you
penetrate into it. (Seneca, Letters 23.4–5, trans. Gummere (1996))
The ascetic interprets Socrates’ confidence in the face of death as an outgrowth
of a sort of pain, the pain of an annoying confinement to the world of crude
matter. But confidence in the face of death can also be an outgrowth of a sort
of pleasure, namely the joy of someone confident, contented, and at peace, who
realizes that his happiness is entirely within his own power and is the sort of
thing that no one can take away from him, whatever else they may take away.
That is the joy that Seneca has in mind, and it is just this joy that we find in
Socrates. It is a deep joy that endures—and indeed best shows its worth—even
when lightness and cheer have gone.23
One can see the joyful Socrates in the Phaedo in many ways. For instance,
consider how we find Socrates in the Phaedo delighting in the company of his
friends. He jokes with his friend Phaedo (89b), and laughs at Cebes’ charmingly
hard-headed way (62e8–63a3): ‘When Socrates heard [Cebes’ objection] he
seemed to me pleased at Cebes’ persistence, and looking at us he said: ‘‘There
goes Cebes, always hunting down arguments, and not at all willing to accept at
once what anyone may say.’’ ’ The latter is especially interesting, as it suggests
that the kind of enjoyment that Socrates finds with his friends is based on what
he has always found likeable in them. That he finds them likeable on his last day
alive suggests that Socrates is the same in his joy on that day as on any other day.
Most of all, we see Socrates joyful as, unlike his friends, he is not upset even by
the approach of his hour of death; even as he drinks the hemlock, he does so
‘with good humour and without the least distaste’ (117c4–5), and responds to
his friends’ subsequent sobbing by encouraging them: ‘ ‘‘What a way to behave,
my strange friends! . . . Come now, calm yourselves and have strength.’’ ’ (117d7–e2;
cp. 60a) And it is, after all, for this joy—this calm in the face of death, even
suicide—that Socrates’ friends call him to account, and which is the impetus for the
whole dialogue that follows.
To invoke Seneca’s analogy, Socrates is indeed a mine whose riches run
surprisingly deep: the more pressure he faces, the more character we find he has
with which to carry on in equanimity. What we see in the Socrates of the Phaedo
is a man of deep joy—a man who is the same in feast or famine, facing long life
23
Moreover, Plato’s depiction of a joyful Socrates in the Phaedo can, in turn, illuminate just what
Seneca’s conception of joy comes to; at any rate, it offers an alternative to the much darker picture
of Stoic joy envisioned by Nussbaum (1994: 398–401).
Pleasure as a Conditional Good: the Phaedo 87
keen on’ (spoudaknai) such things. And I think that we can say the same thing
about claim (5), which denies that such things are what a philosopher devotes
mental energy to (front‹zwn). On their own, neither of these claims necessarily
motivates asceticism.
But perhaps the other claims might. For one thing, (2) may suggest the
modestly ascetic view that pleasures—at least those of bodily finery—are of
utterly no interest, like the oddness or evenness of the stars. For Socrates says not
merely that the philosopher refuses to place them on a pedestal, but indeed that
the philosopher would just as soon be done with the body altogether. And, for
another, (3) and (4) may suggest an even bolder form of asceticism, that the
philosopher wholly shuns such pleasures—that he has nothing to do with them
at all. Indeed, these refrains in the Defense Speech are echoed in other parts of
the dialogue as well, where Socrates says that ‘true philosophers abstain from all
bodily desires, and stand firm without surrendering to them’ (82c2–5), and
again that ‘the soul of the true philosopher abstains from pleasures and desires
and pains, so far as it can’ (83b5–7). However, on closer inspection we shall find
that these sorts of claims express the same sort of point we find in (1) and (5)
after all, namely that what the philosopher avoids and disdains is not pleasure—
not even bodily pleasure—full stop, but only unhealthy ways of partaking of
pleasure.
Let us look first at claims (3) and (4). Notice how striking a claim they seem at
first to make: not only does philosophy change the philosopher’s attitude toward
pleasure, but it also changes his very capacity for pleasure, as he is described as
‘someone who [3] finds nothing of that sort pleasant, and [4] takes no part in
those things’ (65a). This is much stronger than the claim that philosophy
changes one’s attitudes toward pleasure; rather, this suggests that philosophy
actually removes even the simplest forms of bodily pleasure altogether. But how
on earth could philosophizing change the fact that, say, quenching one’s thirst is
pleasant, as (3) might seem to suggest it does? Does philosophy also remove
pain, or indeed the sources of pain, such that no pleasant cessation of pain is
ever brought about, as (4) may suggest it does? Such a wholesale change not only
in our values but also in our very physiology surely calls for discussion and
defense, but Plato’s text offers none. So what sort of detachment from pleasure is
recommended in (3) and (4)?
It is surely important here to note how Socrates introduces (3) and (4),
namely, in the mouths of people who do not share, or much understand, the
philosopher’s values: ‘And presumably, Simmias, it does seem to most men that
someone who finds nothing of that sort pleasant, and takes no part in those
things, doesn’t deserve to live’ (65a4–6, emphasis added). Now Socrates makes it
clear in the Phaedo that he thinks that ordinary people are motivated above all
by pleasure and pain (e.g. 68c–69a). The philosopher, on the other hand, has
very different values, priorities, and motivations; for he has noticed that the
mortal nature conveys very striking and convincing reports about what is
allegedly real and important through the vocal messengers of pleasure and pain,
Pleasure as a Conditional Good: the Phaedo 89
and learned that those objects are neither real nor ultimately important.
Philosophers, then, ‘do not walk on the same paths as those who, in their view,
don’t know where they are going’ (82d3–4). Consequently, his experience of
pleasure and pain will be revised: someone who is able to achieve such
detachment and objectivity with respect to the objects of physical pleasure and
pain will not interpret those experiences in the same way, as messengers with
urgent and true messages, and thus will not make those experiences a priority.
The philosopher’s life with respect to physical pleasures and pains is just not
like that of others, and that is why that life seems so bizarre to those others.
And it is from here that we are in sight of the answer to our question about
the proper attitude to pleasure. For pleasure is not a mere sensation, but a way of
registering the value we attach to the objects of our pleasure, and it is from the
attaching of the wrong sorts of values to things that the philosopher becomes
‘purified’. We can see this in Socrates’ later discussion of the psychology of
pleasure:
‘Lovers of knowledge recognize that when philosophy takes their soul in hand, it has been
veritably bound and glued to the body, and is forced to view things as if through a prison,
rather than alone by itself; and that it is wallowing in utter ignorance. Now philosophy
discerns the cunning of the prison, sees how it is effected through desire, so that the
captive himself may co-operate most of all in his imprisonment.’ (82d9–83e7)
Consequently, Socrates says:
‘the soul of the true philosopher abstains from pleasures and desires and pains, so far as it
can, reckoning that when one feels intense pleasure or fear, pain, or desire, one incurs
harm from them not merely to the extent that might be supposed—by being ill, for
example, or spending money to satisfy one’s desires—but one incurs the greatest and most
extreme of evils, and does not take it into account.’ (83b5–c3)
The pleasures that Socrates has in mind are not merely the sensations our bodies
feel when we are gratified. Rather, they represent kinds of attitudes—they rep-
resent what a person has made into a driving concern and a target for his energies.
Socrates’ focus is on pleasures that come to dominate a person. More precisely,
he focuses on the pleasures to which one comes to sell oneself as a willing captive;
for Socrates describes such a person as ` dedemnov sullptwr to dedsqai, or a
person in bonds who is an accomplice in his own binding (82e7).26 What exactly is
this ‘imprisonment’? This is Cebes’ question, and to it Socrates replies:
‘It’s that the soul of every human being, when intensely pleased or pained at something, is
forced at the same time to suppose that whatever most affects it in this way is most clear
and most real, when it is not so; and such objects especially are things seen, aren’t they?’
‘Certainly.’
26
Notice also Socrates’ description of the sensation he produces by rubbing his sore leg as ‘this
state that people call ‘‘pleasant’’ ’ (60b4, emphasis added), and the pleasures of food and drink as
‘so-called pleasures’ (64d3, emphasis added). Perhaps he means to draw our attention to the difference
between simple experiences that we may naı̈vely think are all that there is to pleasure, and the
philosophically richer conception of pleasure that he wishes to discuss. But this is to speculate.
90 Pleasure as a Conditional Good: the Phaedo
‘Well, isn’t it in this experience that soul is most thoroughly bound fast by body?’
‘How so?’
‘Because each pleasure and pain fastens it to the body with a sort of rivet, pins it there, and
makes it corporeal, so that it takes for real whatever the body declares to be so. Since by
sharing opinions and pleasures with the body, it is, I believe, forced to become of like
character and nurture to it, and to be incapable of entering Hades in purity; but it
must . . . have no part in communion with the divine and pure and uniform. . . . It’s for
those reasons, then, Cebes, that those who deserve to be called ‘‘lovers of knowledge’’ are
orderly and brave; it’s not for the reasons that count with most people . . .’ (83c5–e6)
Notice what Socrates thinks makes pleasure especially powerful as a psychic
phenomenon, and thus potentially especially dangerous: pleasure and pain have
a curious power, especially when intense, to convince the agent of the clarity,
reality, and importance of their objects. As a result, one can eventually come to
identify the concerns of such pleasures and pains as the things that really matter,
and thus to adopt the concerns of the ‘body’27 as one’s true concerns. And this is
why so many people have a mistaken conception of the virtues: the virtues, they
think, are skills of handling the ‘body’s’ concerns (68d2–69c3). But those skills
handle the body’s concerns as governing concerns of the agent, and thus keep
the agent from the true virtues of the philosopher. Those virtues are ‘purific-
atory’ only in the sense that they involve a revision of priorities and a proper
reassessment of the agent’s governing concerns.
What matters about pleasure, then, are the sorts of priorities in the agent that it
represents. Once we understand that Socrates’ target is the mistaken priority that
all too many people give to pleasure, we find it far less surprising that he should
claim that ‘true philosophers abstain from (pcontai) all bodily desires, and
stand firm (katerosi) without surrendering to them (ka› o˝ paradidasin a˝ta·v
auto¸v)’ (82c2–5), or that ‘the soul of the true philosopher abstains from
(pcetai) pleasures and desires and pains, so far as it can’ (83b5–7). All that the
context of these passages requires is that the philosopher not take such desires as
his motivation for virtuous behavior—as his reason for being the sort of person he
is—but rather cultivate a love for knowledge. The philosopher abstains from such
desires and refuses to yield himself to them in the sense that his motivations,
priorities, and values are simply elsewhere, and it is these different values that
govern his actions and attitudes. For what he condemns are not pleasures sim-
pliciter, but pleasures which reflect mistaken evaluative attitudes and priorities.
Socrates’ point, then, seems to be that there is no value-neutral perspective on
pleasure. Rather, pleasure is inextricably bound up with the kinds of pursuits—
including the attitudes and values one has in those pursuits—of which they are
the pleasures. And this implies that pleasure cannot be treated as an uncondi-
tional good, since pleasure is one way that a person attributes value to the things
around her—a value that pleasure can attribute in a mistaken way.28
27
As I argue in the next section, Plato in these passages means by ‘body’ not merely the phys-
ical body, an entire set of concerns that are bound to our nature as mortal, corporeal beings.
28
We shall return to this point in later chapters, and particularly in Ch. 4 on the Republic.
Pleasure as a Conditional Good: the Phaedo 91
This fact about the psychological nature of pleasure can also help us to make
sense of Socrates’ rather harsh discussion of pleasure in the Defense Speech, and
in particular his claims (3) that the philosopher does not find pleasant the
pleasures of food, drink, sex, or bodily elegance, and (4) that the philosopher
does not partake of such pleasures. Surely Socrates does not deny that philo-
sophers experience physical pleasures; Socrates himself experiences them in the
dialogue (e.g. 60b–c). Rather, Socrates’ point is that the philosopher does not
experience them as reporting to him what things are worth treating as important
in their own right. Perhaps many people experience pleasures just as if they
displayed their goodness like a flag.29 But what Plato tells us is that pleasures do
not display that flag all by themselves, but only in so far as we choose to see them
as displaying it. It is just that most people make that choice by default, because
such pleasures are after all very cunning, all by themselves.
Given these radical differences, what must ordinary people think when they
come upon the philosopher? Presumably, they would be surprised to find
someone who does not live and prioritize and enjoy the same things in the same
way that they do. Indeed, they may be so surprised that they suppose that this
person simply does not understand pleasure, and does not appreciate why pleasant
things give life its value. Rather, they will think that this person has failed to
perceive the importance and reality of pleasant things, so much so that he seems
not to take pleasure in them or give them any notice; the poor soul, they will
think, has missed out on what life is really about, and thus has so wasted life that
he ‘doesn’t deserve to live’ and ‘runs pretty close to being dead’ (65a5–6). The
philosopher’s attitude toward pleasure is so different from the ordinary person’s
that the philosopher seems to him not to enjoy pleasure at all—not as he under-
stands it, anyway. And, of course, the ordinary person would be right; his mistake
comes in thinking that his own pleasures reflect what is real and important.
Moreover, this reading also makes sense of the claim that (2) the philosopher
does not regard fine services to the body as of any value (nt‹mouv; 64d8–9); for
what Plato takes to be the most interesting fact about pleasure is the way that it
reflects and reinforces attitudes about the object of a pleasure. The philosopher
does not enjoy pleasure as the non-philosopher does, since the latter values
pleasure as such and for him this gives a distorted appearance of value and
importance to its object; the philosopher, on the other hand, has escaped this
trap, and understands what real value is, and this determines what he enjoys and
how he enjoys it.
It seems clear, then, that Plato’s harshness about pleasure in the Phaedo is not
suggestive of asceticism after all. Plato’s point seems to be that ordinary people
do not see the philosopher’s life as pleasant, because the philosopher does not
engage in pleasures as they do, owing to her privileged perspective on the nature
of the objects of pleasures. Unlike his Neoplatonist commentators, Plato in the
29
Cf. the Epicurean thesis that all pleasure is self-evidently good, and indeed the sole criterion of
goodness; see Cicero, de Finibus I.30.
92 Pleasure as a Conditional Good: the Phaedo
Phaedo condemns not certain types of pleasures as such, but pleasures that
reflect the wrong kinds of attitudes and priorities. In other words, Plato treats as
evils not the pleasures themselves, but the irrational ways in which people all too
often incorporate certain kinds of pleasures into their lives.
Socrates is confident in the face of death, then, not because he is surly about
the mortal world, but because he has avoided developing the wrong kinds of
priorities, priorities that would have him think that his happiness depends more
on his ability to rearrange the world so that it meets his desires than on the
strength with which he faces what cannot be changed. And that is to say that
Socrates, in the Phaedo, is joyful—a good thing, too, since such a life as that is a
far better candidate for a happy, flourishing life than would be a life spent in
chronic discontentment with the human condition. A depiction of Socrates
joyful, therefore, is a depiction of a life in which pleasure has taken the right
direction. If this is the sort of depiction of Socrates that Plato offers in the
Phaedo, as I have argued that it is, then in the Phaedo Plato actually comes out
against asceticism.
Pleasure, therefore, would seem to be a conditional good: whether or not our
affective life is a good one depends on whether it is guided by reason and thus
reflects the right sorts of priorities. But perhaps in that case some will suppose
that hedonism could turn out to be true, for it may be that although pleasure
depends on the leadership of reason for its goodness, none the less the goodness
it comes to have could be what makes a happy life happy. The question, then, is
whether some form of pleasure might be the highest good to which all other
goods—such as the virtues and other goods of the soul—are to be referred, or in
terms of which their goodness is to be explained. As I shall explain now, Plato’s
view in the Phaedo is that it is not.
discussion of pleasure in the Phaedo has centered in recent years, and which
some commentators have taken to imply a form of hedonism. Does it?
34
Gosling and Taylor (1982: 92 f.); they make a similar argument about the instrumental value of
wisdom as a ‘purificatory rite’ (kaqarmv) at 69c3 (93 f.).
Pleasure as a Conditional Good: the Phaedo 95
For example, the most annoying thing about money is that once you have spent it,
you no longer have it to spend; but surely in saying that wisdom can be
‘exchanged’ for other things, and that other things can be ‘bought’ with it, like a
coin, Socrates does not mean to say that by exercising my wisdom I shall come to
have less wisdom to exercise.35 And, surely, Socrates does not mean that the best
thing a person can do with her wisdom is to get rid of it in favor of other things
she likes better. As with all metaphors, it is possible, and perilous, to press this
‘exchange’ metaphor too far.36
It seems clear to me that the hedonist reading of the passage also presses this
metaphor too far. One thing that we know Socrates means to establish in this
passage is the foolishness of thinking that goods of the soul, like temperance, are
to be referred to pleasure—it is, after all, his denial of that very point that
motivates his metaphor. It would be most extraordinary if Socrates were to
counter the thesis that the goods of the soul are only instrumentally valuable
for the sake of pleasure with the thesis that the goods of the soul are, indeed,
only instrumentally valuable for the sake of pleasure. Moreover, on this reading
it seems that Socrates’ disagreement with popular misconceptions about the
value of pleasure relative to the virtues would be simply that most people are
not clever enough in how they avoid some pleasures for the sake of others.37 But
clearly his disagreement is much deeper than that—it concerns whether any such
cleverness as that could be a coherent conception of a virtue in the first place.
Indeed, Socrates claims that the philosopher exchanges all pleasures and pains
for wisdom, and thus possesses genuine virtue—and all of this, he says, is
irrespective of the presence or absence of pleasure and pain in her life (ka›
prosgignomnwn ka› pogignomnwn ka› donØn ka› fbwn ka› tØn llwn pntwn
tØn toio¸twn, 69b4–5).
Perhaps, however, Socrates could have a deeper sort of disagreement with the
‘popular’ conception of virtue, but which would still not rule out Socrates’
defense of some form of hedonism: perhaps what Socrates objects to is not the
act of referring the virtues to pleasure per se, but of referring them to bodily
pleasures—in which case he could still hold that certain intellectual pleasures
were the highest good. After all, Socrates does say that one should be keen on the
pleasures of philosophy (114e3–4), and Phaedo remarks that among the group
assembled on Socrates’ last day it was customary to take pleasure in philo-
sophical conversation (59a3–5), as one would expect among a group who claim
to be desirers and lovers (rastaı́) of wisdom (66e2–3). Moreover, the most
reasonable assumption is that the ‘pleasures’ Socrates discusses in the exchange
passage are to be understood as the same sorts of pleasures that motivate the
35
Cf. Bluck (1955: 155); Gooch (1974: 154 f.).
36
It is surely wise counsel, as Bluck (1955: 155) advises, not to press these metaphors, since
Socrates’ point seems to concern not the method of exchange but the ends or goals of exchange; cf.
Hackforth (1955: 193).
37
See Bostock (1986: 32), who claims that the philosopher’s hedonism is ‘very much better
thought out’ because it ‘takes the longer view’.
96 Pleasure as a Conditional Good: the Phaedo
faux-temperate person, not more elevated philosophical pleasures. But, even so,
we still cannot say that the passage motivates hedonism. All we would be
warranted in saying is that it is possible that, for all Socrates says here, the
philosophical life is the most pleasant. But, of course, that would not entail that
Socrates subscribes to hedonism,38 much less that hedonism is a correct theory
of value.
Moreover, even if we take Socrates’ metaphor to be demonstrating that we are
to exchange one thing for something we value more, the hedonist reading of
the passage still would not go through, since that reading requires us to reverse
the order of exchange that Socrates himself presents. What Socrates says is to be
given in exchange (de· . . . katalltesqai) is not wisdom, but ‘all these things’
(pnta ta¸ta, 69a10)—that is, the pleasures, pains, and desires that he had just
mentioned (69a7–8); and what they are exchanged for (nt› o , 69a10) is wis-
dom.39 The ‘exchange . . . for . . .’ relation is asymmetric: I can exchange
(katalltesqai) my nickel for (nt‹) your piece of candy, but, of course,
I cannot exchange your candy for my nickel. The exchange Socrates has in mind is
not one of using wisdom to secure other things, but of trading those other things
for wisdom—that is, I take it, managing one’s dealings with other things so as to
become a wiser person.40 At the end of the exchange one is to have acquired the
coin (wisdom), not spent it.41 And this seems clearly in keeping with the
38
To their credit, Gosling and Taylor acknowledge this fact in (1990: 115 f.); see also Bostock
(1986: 34); Weiss (1990a: 117). Their main point is simply that the critique of pleasure in the Phaedo
is not inconsistent with the hedonism discussed in the Protagoras, an issue I shall simply leave aside at
present; but see Russell (2000a) and the epilogue to this book.
39
Cf. Weiss (1987: 58), who suggests rendering 69a9–10 as ‘ . . . but that sole right coin, for the sake
of which all these things [pleasures, pains, and fears] ought to be exchanged [with each other] is
phronēsis . . .’; see also Gooch (1974: 154 f.). (Notice that Weiss takes ‘all these things’ to be exchanged
not for wisdom but with each other; I prefer the former interpretation, but for our purposes I see no
reason to argue for one over the other here.)
40
Notice that Gallop’s translation of 69b1 (ka› to¸tou mn pnta ka› met to¸tou), which is
friendlier to the reading of ‘exchange’ that I am opposing, has Socrates make an unfortunate shift in
mid-sentence from buying and selling other things ‘for’ wisdom to buying and selling them ‘with’
wisdom, which suggests a shift from wisdom as the yield of exchange to wisdom as the medium of
exchange. This would be a most extraordinary shift (which seems to be unintentional on Gallop’s
part; see (1975), note ad loc.), not only because ‘or rather’ is a very cooperative rendering of a simple
ka‹ but also because it makes Socrates’ metaphor seem not merely cryptic, but openly confused. Much
better, I think, is a rendering like Hackforth’s, ‘if all our buying and selling is done for intelligence and
with its aid’ (1955: 55). (Grube (1997: 60), we should note, appears to leave ka› met to¸tou
untranslated, apparently treating it as an unnecessary restatement of the main idea of the clause.)
41
I also think that the ‘buying and selling’ metaphor is no more than another—although
admittedly less felicitous—way of restating the point of the ‘exchange of coin’ metaphor. Thus
I would replace Gallop’s rendering of 69b1–2 with ‘buying and selling all things both for this and with
this [i.e. wisdom]’ and treat this phrase as equivalent in purpose to ‘exchanging all these things for
wisdom’ as in 69a10. Moreover, I agree with Gallop (1975), ad loc., that ‘with wisdom [met
fronsewv]’ at 69b3 modifies ‘true goodness [lhq
v ret]’ (cp. the similar modification of ‘just’
(d‹kaion) and ‘pious’ (¯sion) by ‘with wisdom’ (met fronsewv) at Theaetetus 176b2–3), as opposed
to being the means by which—that ‘with’ which—other things are bought and sold; see also Weiss
(1987: 59). Likewise, it seems natural that wisdom and virtue or goodness are identified, and that ‘true
goodness in company with wisdom’ distinguishes the virtue that is wisdom from the spurious,
popular sense of ‘virtue’ he is criticizing. Hence I also take the pnta at 69b1 to refer to the pleasures,
Pleasure as a Conditional Good: the Phaedo 97
intended message of the entire discussion in this part of the Phaedo, which is
that if you think of the goods of soul as having value for the sake of something
else, then you have missed the point about why they really matter in the first
place. And beyond that, I think, the metaphor simply does not go.
The ‘exchange’ passage is the greatest hope of the hedonist interpretation of
the Phaedo, but this hope quickly fades on the reading that makes the best sense
of the exchange metaphors, the best sense of the syntax of the passage, and the
plainest philosophical meaning of the passage in its context. But, more than that,
one of the very central passages of the Phaedo—the so-called ‘Affinity Argu-
ment’—rules out a hedonist interpretation of the Phaedo altogether, to my
mind, and to that passage we turn now.
etc. of 69a7–8, that is as equivalent to pnta ta¸ta in 69a10; I do not think, in particular, that pnta
at 69b1 is meant to include virtue (see Weiss (1987: 60) for criticism of this view), or that wisdom
is the means for virtue, as some have suggested (e.g. Gooch (1974: 154–8); and the subtle view of
Weiss (1987: 60–2)).
42
Gallop (1975: 138) discusses the logical relation between ‘the incomposite’ and ‘the unvarying’ in
greater detail.
43
Socrates speaks of the divine realm interchangeably as the realm of abstract entities and the
realm of God; cf. Gallop (1975: 143).
98 Pleasure as a Conditional Good: the Phaedo
and govern the body, the soul most resembles the divine, and the body most
resembles the mortal (79e–80b).
This bifurcation of human nature is important to Socrates’ discussion of
death in the Phaedo because it shows, first, that if the body is relatively durable,
then the soul must be that much more so (80c–d); and second, that the soul that
has identified with its ‘divine’ aspect through the proper pursuit of philosophy
will go upon death ‘into the presence of the good and wise God’ (80d7):
‘If it is in that state, then, does it not depart to the invisible which is similar to it, the divine
and immortal and wise; and on arrival there, isn’t its lot to be happy, released from its
wandering and folly, its fears and wild lusts, and other ills of the human condition, and as
is said of the initiated, does it not pass the rest of time in very truth with gods? Are we to
say that, Cebes, or something else?’
‘That, most certainly!’ said Cebes. (81a4–11)
For, Socrates says,
‘the company of the gods may not rightly be joined by one who has not practised
philosophy and departed in absolute purity, by any but the lover of knowledge. . . . [B]y
following reasoning and being ever within it, and by beholding what is true and divine and
not the object of opinion, and being nurtured by it, [the soul] believes that it must live
thus for as long as it lives, and that when it has died, it will enter that which is akin and of
like nature to itself, and be rid of human ills.’ (82b10–c1, 84a8–b3).
So a human being is composed of two natures, body and soul (79b), and thus is
a compound of the two universal natures, the mortal and the divine (80a–b).
The question, then, is given that one cannot identify with both of these natures,
with which ought one to identify? That is, since these two natures draw one’s
attention in different ways and call upon one to ascribe value, importance, and
reality to different things, to which ought one to pay greater heed?
This question is especially pressing for Plato, given the way in which he draws
the distinction between ‘soul’ and ‘body’. For Plato is not, I think, merely making
the claim that we are part physical and part mental. Rather, his distinction is
meant to capture a distinction between two major sets of concerns that humans
have and may choose to identify with. Humans are part ‘body’, for Plato, inas-
much as humans are characterized by instability: like all things in the physical
world, humans change, vary, and fluctuate; hence they have needs and desires to
be filled up with what they lack. But humans are also part ‘soul’ inasmuch as they
have a certain stability: the soul, being stable, is capable of contemplating the
fundamental and eternal truths of reality, which are themselves always stable and
never admit of change or fluctuation. Given this diversity of concerns that we
have, how are we to find concerns that bring the right kind of unity to our lives?
Both sorts of concerns are real, but with which are we to identify?
Plato makes it clear that the philosopher is to identify with the soul,44 the
divine nature, and not with the mortal. That is why the philosopher is able to
44
Cf. Gallop (1975: 88).
Pleasure as a Conditional Good: the Phaedo 99
take his place in the company of the gods after death, since his soul has been
disencumbered from his mortal nature, thus allowing the pure to know the pure
(80d–81a, 82b–c, 84b; 67a–b).45 But in what does our mortal nature consist? We
must naturally assume that it includes our physical body; but it also seems to
include the activities of the soul that the soul has inasmuch as it is associated
with mortal nature:
‘ . . . if [the soul] is separated from the body when it has been polluted and made
impure, because it has always been with the body, has served and loved it, and been so
bewitched by it, by its passions and its pleasures, that it thinks nothing else real save what
is corporeal—what can be touched and seen, drunk and eaten, or used for sexual
enjoyment—yet it has been accustomed to hate and shun and tremble before what is
obscure to the eyes and invisible, but intelligible and grasped by philosophy; do you think
a soul in that condition will separate unsullied, and alone by itself?’
‘By no means.’
‘Rather, I imagine, it will have been interspersed with a corporeal element, ingrained in it
by the body’s company and intercourse, through constant association and much training?’
‘Certainly.’
‘And one must suppose, my friend, that this element is ponderous . . .’ (81b1–c9)
Socrates’ account is self-consciously mysterious and occult (he goes on to
explain that such souls as these become phantoms and wraiths that haunt tombs
and graves), and it is not clear what we should make of these occult images. But
what is clear is that the ‘corporeal element’ that weighs such souls down is the
result of the kinds of pursuits and interests that have occupied it in life. Iden-
tifying with the ‘corporeal’ aspect of one’s nature, then, amounts to taking
certain concerns as central and defining of one’s priorities: eating, drinking,
strong feelings and sensations, having sex. This is not to say that those concerns
are themselves corrupt by their nature, only that their being made central in
one’s life is corrupting. The difference between the natures that make up every
human, then, is ultimately a difference in concerns: for the pleasures to be got
from acting, and for the wisdom and intelligence that guides our acting.46
This suggests that ‘body’ in this argument is taken to refer not merely to the
literal body but also to the mortal and human activities of the soul, as opposed
to its proper activity of soul, strictly conceived. Clearly, then, the category of
‘body’ will include bodily pleasures, which are, strictly speaking, experienced in
the soul.47 But will it include all pleasures generally? I think that it will. For
45
Cf. Gallop (1975: 140), who claims that 79c2–e7 includes a tacit assumption of Empedocles’
principle that ‘like knows like’ (DK 31.A.86, B.109).
46
It certainly seems to press Socrates’ haunting image too far to treat the soul as some quasi-
material substance that becomes literally impregnated with some heavy matter; Gallop (1975: 143 f.)
expresses some such concern; cf. Hackforth (1955: 93, note on 82d).
47
See 65a6–7, where bodily pleasures are said to be those which come through the body
(di smatov), presumably to the soul; see also Bostock (1986: 26–8). Bostock also discusses issues
that arise from this view, such as whether the philosopher’s soul—devoid of its uniquely ‘human’
functions—can retain personal identity after death; space and scope prevent us from exploring that
question here.
100 Pleasure as a Conditional Good: the Phaedo
emotions, feelings, desires, and pleasures are mental phenomena for Plato, yet
they are part of our varying nature and not our stable nature, so they would fall
on the ‘body’ side of Plato’s distinction. None the less, it is difficult to know
where to place pleasures of philosophic activity, say, on this distinction,
understood in terms of variability and stability.
However, this distinction must also be understood in terms of the very dif-
ferent roles that different parts of our nature play in relation to each other. The
import of the distinction between the divine and the mortal, Plato makes clear,
is that it distinguishes what can bring rational direction, and what stands in need
of such direction. This is apparent in Socrates’ claim that it is the ordinance of
nature that the divine rule the mortal:
‘Now look at it this way too: when soul and body are present in the same thing, nature
ordains that the one shall serve and be ruled, whereas the other shall rule and be master;
here again, which do you think is similar to the divine and which to the mortal? Don’t you
think the divine is naturally adapted for ruling and domination, whereas the mortal is
adapted for being ruled and for service?’
‘I do.’
‘Which kind, then, does the soul resemble?’
‘Obviously, Socrates, the soul resembles the divine, and the body the mortal.’ (79e9–80a9)
These two aspects of our nature that Socrates calls ‘soul’ and ‘body’, it seems,
have not only an important metaphysical difference but also an ethical one: one
of them is able to bring direction to the whole organism by directing the other,
and it is unnatural that the order of direction should be reversed. In other
words, Socrates’ distinction between ‘soul’ and ‘body’—the ‘divine’ and the
‘mortal’—is meant to be coextensive with the ethical distinction between that
aspect of us that is fit to give direction and shape to our lives, and that aspect of
us that must be given that direction and shape.48 So, to speak very simply, my
ability to think about what it makes sense for a rational being to do—my
practical reason—ought to be giving shape and direction to my impulses to get
angry at other people, say, and not vice versa. This is how Nature has designed
48
His assumption that they are coextensive, however, seems to me problematic. Socrates does
seem to understand pleasure as transformed by virtue to be part of the good character of the
philosopher (more on this below). In that case, pleasure is ‘fit to serve’—its goodness is dependent on
the goodness of the virtue that transforms it, and is, therefore, a conditional good. However, the
assumption that such conditional goods are coextensive with our ‘bodily’ nature seems unwarranted,
since some of the things that virtue transforms, and thus are conditional goods, can be peculiar to our
‘stable’ nature. Indeed, Plato says in the Phaedrus (247d1–5) that the mind of a god finds a kind of
pleasure (e˝paqe·, d4) when it beholds the forms. (It is instructive to note that, as we have seen, the
Stoics would later appropriate e˝paqe·n in order to describe the reasonable affective disposition of the
sage to all things, which constitutes a lack of passion (pqh) but not a form of coldness or sterility.)
And at Phaedo 114d8–115a3 he contrasts the pleasures of learning to ‘alien’ (llotr‹ouv, e2, cf. e5)
pleasures, suggesting that such pleasures are not alien but proper to the soul—even classifying it,
evidently, alongside the virtues. In a word, the distinction between what leads and what serves seems
to me highly instructive, but it is unhelpful of Plato to explicate it in terms of a distinction between
‘mind’ and ‘body’. Unfortunately, Plato’s double-mindedness on this issue—that transformed
pleasure is part of good character, and that pleasure is ‘merely mortal’—will last his entire philo-
sophical career without a satisfactory resolution; but I shall not pursue the point here.
Pleasure as a Conditional Good: the Phaedo 101
us to function, by pairing our ‘mortal’ nature with a ‘divine’ nature to guide it.
For Socrates, we are to say the same about the relation between reason and
pleasure. This is so because the first is able to grasp and bring about a certain
kind of order in one’s life that the second is incapable of grasping or bringing
about on its own.49 And this is as true of the pleasure of philosophic activity as it
is of any other: in order for pleasure to be a good thing in one’s life, it must take
on a form within one’s life that it does not take on by itself, but only under the
direction of reason. The distinction between what is more or less stable turns
out, I think, to be somewhat incidental. More to the point is the distinction
between what, like the divine, is such as to lead and direct and what, like the
mortal, is such as to be led and directed.
This development in Plato’s distinction between the divine and the mortal has
an important ethical consequence: since we are not to subordinate the guiding
part of our nature to the guided part, and since pleasure belongs to the guided
part, it is unnatural for us to take pleasure of any kind to be the good for the sake
of which we live, or to which we refer all of our actions and choices—and it is
certainly unnatural to refer our development of the goods of the self to pleasure.
That would be to identify with the sorts of concerns that are not capable of
bringing about the right kind of order to one’s life. In short, since all pleasure is
part of our ‘guided’ nature, every form of hedonism would therefore sub-
ordinate our guiding (‘divine’) nature to our guided (‘mortal’) nature—just
what it is a central point of the Phaedo to reject.
of death because he recognizes that the goodness of his life consists in the
goodness of his soul, which no one can take away. His joy, his contentment, his
gladness—these are not the source of the goodness of his life, but rather his
appreciation in his affective nature of that goodness. Joyfulness is not so much
the reward of being the right sort of person, or what the goodness of such a
person’s life consists in, as it is the way that beings like us recognize the goodness
of our lives and our selves. Hedonism, in referring all other goods to the
supreme good of pleasure, gets this point exactly backwards, on Plato’s view.
Pleasure as a conditional good also shows us something about how pleasure
can be rationally incorporated into one’s life. As we have seen, what Plato thinks
is most significant about pleasure and pain is the fact that they both reflect and
reinforce a person’s attitude toward the reality and importance of the objects of
pleasure and pain. It is this fact about pleasure that explains the mistake that so
many people make, who are so stricken by the intensity of certain pleasures that
they think ‘nothing else real save what is corporeal—what can be touched and
seen, drunk and eaten, or used for sexual enjoyment’ (81b4–6); and this also
explains why the philosopher is suspicious of intense pleasures and pains, which
have this enticing power (82d ff.). So pleasures and pains can reinforce one’s
attitudes toward their objects. We have also seen how they reflect such attitudes,
since it is the philosopher’s change in his attitudes about such objects that
radically revises his attitudes toward the pleasures of those objects.
However, if pleasures reinforce and reflect one’s attitudes toward their objects,
and if pleasures are bad when they attribute the wrong sorts of value to their
objects, then pleasures should not be bad, but on the contrary quite reasonable,
when their objects really do have the sort of value that one enjoys them as
having. And this result is borne out in the Phaedo. For one thing, it makes a
perfect fit to Plato’s depiction of a joyful Socrates that is the centerpiece of the
Phaedo. It would also explain why the philosopher, despite his condemnation of
the pleasures that most people occupy themselves with, is none the less keen on
pleasures of his own: the pleasures of learning (114e) come about only for one
who correctly values the objects of learning, and thus these pleasures reflect and
are an outgrowth of her attitude, which just is the correct attitude to have. And it
explains why, as Socrates so vividly demonstrates, philosophers have such dif-
ferent attitudes toward pleasures than other people do: in many people, their
attachment to pleasure has come to dominate their perspective on their life; in
the philosopher, pleasure has instead been harmonized with a rational per-
spective on life as a whole, having received the guidance and direction of reason.
It is little wonder, then, that Plato should celebrate as he does the joyfulness of
the philosophical life.
Pleasure of the sort that has been our focus in the Phaedo is a good within the
self, and, when transformed by reason, it becomes not merely directed by virtue,
but a part of one’s virtue. My capacity for finding enjoyment and fulfillment in
the things that I do needs to be given direction by right reason if I am to live
well, and reason directs this dimension of myself when I take pleasure in the
Pleasure as a Conditional Good: the Phaedo 103
sorts of things that it is good that I take pleasure in. In that case, my pleasure
becomes one of the ways in which I find value in things, people, and activities
around me, taking joy in the value and importance that they really do have. So
understood, we can see that pleasure is always a part of a person’s character, for
better or worse, and this seems plausible, since few things tell us more about
a person’s character and who they are than the sorts of things that they find
rewarding and enjoyable. In a virtuous person, pleasure is not merely something
that we have good character with respect to. It is transformed and becomes part
of good character itself.
The joy of the philosophical life is pleasure, understood as an affective and
evaluative attitude, transformed into part of the virtuous outlook itself. In fact, it
is consistent with the Phaedo to tell a similar story concerning even the more
ordinary pleasures, such as those of eating, drinking, and sex. On the view I am
attributing to Plato, to take pleasure in something is a matter of enjoying it as
having a certain value for the one enjoying it. If the pleasures of eating, drinking,
and sex are the sorts of things that one can partake of in innocuous and rational
ways, one is then able to enjoy them in the right way, that is as having the kind of
value they do have. It is not only the gourmand who can enjoy the pleasures of
eating—in fact, someone who is able to enjoy them for what they are, and no
more, may indeed enjoy them most.50 If one can enjoy life’s pleasures for what
they are, rather than as reports insisting that our concerns as needy beings ought
to be our masters, then the same sorts of activities and sensations go from being
compulsions and excesses to being the sorts of pleasures they really should be. In
a word, in engaging in life’s simple pleasures I need to understand that doing so
is not what my life is about at the end of the day. When I understand that, I can
engage in them as simple pleasures, even as Socrates himself is seen to do.
It would, I think, be going too far to put this account of gustatory and sexual
pleasures into Plato’s mouth in the Phaedo. The most that we can say is that,
given what Plato does say in the Phaedo, it would be quite possible, even most
natural, to take ‘bodily’ pleasures to be conditional goods. More than that, the
best explanation of the complexity of Plato’s attitude toward pleasure in the
Phaedo is that pleasures are conditional goods. And this is already a subtler,
richer, and more nuanced account of pleasure in the Phaedo than we may have
thought possible.
Perhaps this is why the view that pleasure is good or bad depending on
whether its object really has the sort of value that one enjoys it as having—
depending on whether the pleasure reflects the right kinds of priorities and
concerns—is also the view that the Middle Platonist Alcinous attributes to Plato.
Alcinous claims that an emotion (pqov) is ‘an irrational motion of the soul’
(Handbook of Platonism 32.1), of which the basic forms are pleasure and pain
(32.2).51 There are several outstanding features of Alcinous’ account of the pqh
50
Such, in fact, is the view of Epicurus; see esp. Diogenes Laertius, Lives X.130–2.
51
Trans. Dillon (1993).
104 Pleasure as a Conditional Good: the Phaedo
that are especially worth noting here. One is his treatment of pleasure primarily
as a response to value in its object:
We say [that the emotions (pqh) come about] ‘in response either to something bad or
something good’, because the presentation of a thing of indifferent value does not provoke
an emotion; all emotions arise as a result of the presentation of either something good or
something bad. For if we suppose that something good is present to us, we feel pleasure; in
the imminence of such a thing, desire; while if we suppose that something bad is present,
we feel distress, and if imminent, fear. (32.1)
For this reason, Alcinous allows that some pleasures are natural, necessary, and
proper:
Of emotions, some are ‘wild’, others ‘tame’.52 ‘Tame’ are such as belong naturally to man,
being necessary and proper to him. They remain in this state as long as they preserve
moderation; if they come to exhibit lack of moderation, they become bad. Such are
pleasure, distress, anger, pity, shame. It is proper, after all, to feel pleasure when things are
in accordance with nature, and to feel distress at the opposite situation. (32.4, emphasis
added)
Pleasure, then, is appropriate when it is ‘moderate’. Interestingly, Alcinous
glosses a ‘moderate emotion’ as an emotion which reflects a correct evaluative
attitude: a ‘moderate’ pleasure is a pleasure taken in a way that it is natural and
appropriate for a human being. By contrast, then, pleasures which ‘exhibit lack
of moderation’ must be contrary to nature—they reflect an unrealistic estima-
tion of the importance of their objects in the life of beings such as us.53
Hence it is Alcinous’ concentration on the psychology of pleasure as an
evaluative response that allows him to avoid the distortions of Olympiodorus
and Damascius, and instead distinguish a class of affective states that constitute
realistic and appropriate responses to presentations. So, despite the fact that
pleasures as such are neither good nor bad (32.7), nevertheless certain forms of
pleasure are rational and appropriate (32.4), depending on their relation to one’s
priorities. In our terms, this is to say that pleasure is a conditional good, and it is
this understanding of pleasure in Plato’s ethics that emerges from a close reading
of Plato, and especially the Phaedo.
But we are still short of a full account of pleasure and the good life in some
important ways. In the Gorgias, it is clear that happiness depends on unconditional
52
Alcinous is clearly referring to Republic IX, 589a–b and Plato’s depiction of the irrational part of
the soul as a hydra-like beast with many heads, some of which are tame and some wild. It is interesting
to note, however, that for Plato the beast’s heads had represented desires and appetites in particular,
and not ‘passions’ more generally, as in Alcinous’ reference; see Dillon’s note ad loc. (1993: 196).
Alcinous’ indifference to strict lines of division between these ‘parts’ of the soul is characteristic of
many ancient thinkers in Plato’s tradition (e.g. cp. Galen’s assimilation of anger to the disobedient
horse of the Phaedrus (On the Doctrines of Hippocrates and Plato 3.3.13–24), which for Plato had
represented appetite and not emotion; see also Aristotle, Nicomachean Ethics I.13, 1102a26–32). We
shall return to this passage of the Republic in Ch. 7.
53
Moreover, Alcinous’ understanding of ‘moderation’ makes it clear that moderate emotions are
not a species of the incorrect ones. Thus the moderate emotions, in Stoic terms, are e˝pqeai—
affective responses that are reasonable and natural.
Pleasure as a Conditional Good: the Phaedo 105
rather than conditional goods, and in the Phaedo that pleasure is a conditional
good. That means, of course, that happiness does not depend on pleasure; but it
also means that pleasure is a good of some sort, and what is less clear thus far is
exactly what kind of role pleasure plays in the good life, and why it matters that
pleasure should play it. It is important for us to get clear about this. For one
thing, it will cast more light on the notion of ‘rational incorporation’ that I raised
in the first chapter as a way of understanding how the unconditional good
makes other things good. But it will also cast more light on what it might be like
to live the sort of life that Plato tells us is best. It is one thing to have a ‘blueprint’
for the good life that gives a plain sketch of it, and another to have a ‘model’ of
the good life that we can turn over in our hands and inspect from all sides. And
here Plato’s Republic is a great help.
4
Pleasure and Moral Psychology in
Republic IV and IX
We have seen that Plato believes that practical wisdom, or virtue as a whole, is an
unconditional good—the only unconditional good, in fact—and that the
unconditional good is what determines happiness. This is what I have called
the directive conception of happiness, and it says that happiness consists in the
wisdom with which one lives. But unless we say more about this account of
happiness, we seem to face a dilemma: how can we show that the life of wisdom
is attractive, without making the happiness of that life depend on some
dimension of that life or other, instead of on its rational structure as a whole?
One benefit of the additive conception of happiness, of course, is that it does
well at showing that a certain mode of living is attractive, and thus a reasonable
candidate for happiness—because it is so pleasant, or satisfying of desires, or
productive of successful projects, or nicely equipped with life’s amenities.
Unfortunately, it does so at the cost of making happiness ‘dimensional’ rather
than holistic: a happy life is so because of that dimension of it that is its
pleasantness, say. A happy life is a unity, and is happy on account of the kind of
unity that it is. This is not to say that the additive conception renders the good
life a disordered ragbag; the pursuit of desire-satisfaction or successful projects
may well give one a final end around which to organize all of one’s actions and
choices.1 But it is to say that the happiness of that life is not in that organization
as a whole, but rather in some aspect (or aspects) of it. It is for this reason that
Plato rejects the additive conception of happiness, as he focuses instead on the
intelligence with which one lives one’s life and brings order and harmony to
every area of it.
Here, of course, the directive conception does much better, as it focuses
precisely on the intelligence or wisdom that makes one’s whole life good and is
manifest in every dimension of one’s life. But it seems, at first anyway, to have
much less to say about why the life of wisdom is attractive. Even worse, the
directive conception may leave us with a candidate for happiness that seems
1
And, of course, Epicurus, e.g., argues that ‘tranquility’ (tarax‹a), or ‘katastematic pleasure’, is
exactly that kind of final end (see also Russell (2003)).
Pleasure and Moral Psychology: Republic IV, IX 107
altogether too thin and sterile to be recognizable as real happiness at all. Perhaps
if I were wise, my life would be orderly; but what I want is a happy life, and not
merely a ‘tidy’ one, which sounds altogether too drab. This is not to say that this
or any candidate for happiness must appeal to all people alike. Perspectives on
the good life can become damaged, warped, and distorted, and no candidate for
happiness should be held hostage to perspectives of those types. But the problem
remains that a life’s being ‘orderly’ is not necessarily the first thing that even
reasonable, mature persons would cite as making the happy life happy. And this
problem, I think, accounts for the appeal of the additive conception, both in its
own right and as a framework for interpreting Plato. Perhaps we are better off
allowing that wisdom is the efficient cause of a good life, but is not its goodness.
This problem for the directive conception is made better by the fact that
‘good’, as I indicated in Chapter 2, is an attributive adjective. We can call a
failing cactus ‘good’, if we like that sort of thing in a cactus, but we cannot call
it a ‘good cactus’. Moreover, even if we can call the life of a failing cactus a ‘good
life’ (‘the kind of life I happen to want for my cactus’), we cannot call it a ‘good
life of a cactus’. What will count as a good existence for a cactus depends on the
kind of thing that a cactus is and what counts as health and flourishing for that
kind of thing.2 Likewise, anything we call a ‘good life of a human being ’ must
take account of the fact that we are rational beings who need justifying reasons
for acting and choosing as we do.3 Whatever our flourishing is, it must be the
flourishing of that kind of being. And, as I argued in Chapter 2, it is for this
reason that Plato says that the wise do well and are happy (Gorgias 506d–507c).
However, to say that a human is a rational being is not necessarily to say that a
rational being is all that a human is.4 We are also passionate, emotional,
desirous, affective beings; and, as I argued in Chapter 3, although pleasure
cannot be an unconditional good, there is still good reason to think that pleasure
should be a conditional good, and thus some kind of good. Perhaps the affective
parts of our nature cannot give themselves their proper direction, much less
unify and direct our whole nature, but no account of our nature—and thus of
our flourishing—can leave them out. In fact, to leave out these parts of our
nature is also to make happiness dimensional rather than holistic. Happiness
consists in something that is holistic, both in concern and compass, and in
substance. If our happiness depends on our practical rationality, then our
practical rationality must not only look after all areas of our life but also bring all
areas together within itself so as to yield an integrated whole.
Here we return to the notion of wisdom as ‘rational incorporation’ that I
sketched in the first chapter. My concern for wealth, for instance, is one area of
my life and my self. It is also an area in which I need wisdom, or practical
2
See Hursthouse (1999), ch. 9.
3
For a good discussion of this idea (and its application within Stoic ethics), see Engberg-Pedersen
(1986: 168–77).
4
See Sherman (1997), ch. 1 for an intriguing discussion of this issue and its very different
treatments by Aristotle, the Stoics, and Kant.
108 Pleasure and Moral Psychology: Republic IV, IX
5
We shall explore this idea at greater length in Ch. 6, as we examine Plato’s own account of the
complex internal relations of all sorts of wholes in the Philebus.
Pleasure and Moral Psychology: Republic IV, IX 109
6
Cf. Reeve (1988: 28); Sachs (1963: 145–7); Kirwan (1965: 171, 172 f.); Irwin (1995: 190).
Pleasure and Moral Psychology: Republic IV, IX 111
in the dialog. How are we to take the claim that virtue is rewarding because it is
most pleasant, when this claim is put alongside the claim that virtue is its own
reward? Does virtue make its possessor happy in its own right, or is the idea
rather that virtue is supremely pleasant, and pleasure makes one happy?
What, then, makes the virtuous person happy, virtue or the pleasure of virtue?
At stake here is what sort of benefit Plato takes virtue to be, and how he thinks
that virtue makes its possessor live well. What conception of value and benefit
does Plato have in the Republic?7 We can put into sharper relief the precise
philosophical issue that is at stake here, by seeing why certain approaches to this
issue that we might take will not do.
Perhaps the easiest approach is to say that virtue makes its possessor happy
both in its own right, and because of the pleasure it brings its possessor. Perhaps,
that is, we should conclude simply that Plato is presenting two distinct ways in
which virtue makes its possessor happy, one in book IV on the grounds of what
virtue is in its own right, and another in book IX on the grounds of the pleasures
associated with virtue.8 The fact that virtue is pleasant, on this view, is one of the
facts about virtue that explains virtue’s power to make its possessor happy, and
the nature of virtue is another.
However, it does not seem that this can be the sort of argument that Plato is
giving, for three reasons. One, this interpretation of the Republic would make the
value theory of the Republic extremely complicated—much more so than Plato
ever lets on in the Republic. If the nature of virtue and the pleasure of virtue each
explain why the virtuous are happy, then both virtue and pleasure are our good,
or parts of it, but nothing in the dialogue prepares us for the thesis that each of
two things is (part of ) our highest good. Much less does anything in the Republic
prepare us for the value-theoretical complications that such a thesis would raise,9
which would be far greater than Plato seems to recognize in the Republic:10 How
are these twin goods of virtue and pleasure related to each other? How is each
related to happiness? How do they figure in one’s motivation? How are they
unified into a single good life? Not only does the Republic offer no answers, it
does not even raise the questions. If this interpretation were correct, we should
7
There are also two more basic problems that the pleasure arguments raise: one, what it means to
say that a virtuous life is ‘more’ pleasant than a vicious life, since their pleasures are incommensurable;
and two, how there can be any rational adjudication between parties, each of whom takes his own
life to be the most pleasant. I shall address these problems as they emerge in our analysis of the
pleasure arguments, below.
8
This may be the intent of the rather startling claim of Kirwan (1965: 171) that we find ‘the
equation of happiness and pleasure in Book IX’ (italics added).
9
Cf. Irwin (1995: 235), who notes one important difference between these facts: ‘People who value
what they regard as justice in the belief that it is a non-instrumental good, but who value it for a
feature it does not have or for a non-essential feature it has, are not just people.’ It is important to
note, however, that my point here is about how these facts about virtue differ not in terms of agents’
motivations (as important as that issue is), but in terms of the proper explanation of virtue’s pro-
ducing happiness. None the less, we can see with Irwin that if Plato is defending virtue from the
standpoint of a virtuous person, praising virtue for its pleasantness may well seem out of place.
10
I have benefited here from conversation with William Stephens.
112 Pleasure and Moral Psychology: Republic IV, IX
wonder whether Plato recognized the complexity of the value theory he had
constructed for himself, but failed to mention it, or was simply nodding.11 Either
way, the central moral position of the Republic becomes quite a mess if Plato is
offering these two distinct defenses of virtue in books IV and IX.12
Two, notice that on this interpretation Plato’s account of the happy human
life renders it dimensional rather than holistic. On this view, Plato did not think
it enough to point out the nature of the virtuous life, but thought it necessary to
point out its pleasantness as well, in examining the happiness of that life. In that
case, virtue must be incomplete without pleasure, and thus not the kind of all-
encompassing good that happiness requires. But this means that the virtue with
which one lives is but one dimension of one’s life, as, presumably, is the pleasure
of so living; and so on this view happiness belongs not to the whole of one’s life,
but to a pair of its dimensions that are individually incomplete. So this view
cannot take seriously the holism of happiness, and it would therefore be
unfortunate if Plato held it.
And three, if virtue is unconditionally good while pleasure is conditionally
good—as, I have argued, Plato thinks it is—then on this interpretation happi-
ness is determined both by the unconditionally good and by a conditional good.
But, of course, the whole point of that distinction within eudaimonism is to pick
out the different roles that different types of goods play with respect to happi-
ness, a difference that this interpretation cannot take seriously.
A more common approach to the problem is to say that while Plato argues in
book IV that virtue makes its possessor happy, in book IX he moves to very
11
See N. White (1984: 415 f.), who speculates that Plato had not worked out the issues sur-
rounding the relation of pleasure and happiness here. Reeve (1988: 151–4) argues that while pleasure
is the content of the peculiar goods of the psychic parts, and that ‘the content of the best and happiest
life is the pleasure of knowing the truth,’ still ‘neither knowledge nor pleasure is the good . . .’. On this
view, however, it remains unclear to me precisely how pleasure is to fit into the argument whereby
Socrates shows that virtue (including knowing the truth) is our good on the grounds that it makes us
happy. The problem also comes in addition to the fact that Socrates offers no argument whatever for
the view that pleasure is a good; on the contrary, Socrates deals very brusquely with the idea that
pleasure is a sort of goodness earlier in the Republic (505b–c, 509a, see also 580c–581e; cf. Gosling
and Taylor (1982: 101–3), and N. White (1979: 226)).
12
It has also been suggested to me by Richard Geenen that the defenses of virtue in book IX may be
intended to show a thesis not addressed in book IV, namely that the virtuous person is happy even on
the rack. But I shall not adopt this reading of the Republic, for (at least) two reasons. First, this reading
goes against the clear purport of book IV, on my reading of it. The thesis in question concerns
the question of virtue’s ‘profitability’, and we should notice that when Socrates suggests returning to
the question of virtue’s profitability, Glaucon answers that they have already settled that question
(445a–b)—that is just the upshot of the health analogy. Indeed, Socrates’ whole goal in the health
analogy was to show that the denial of virtue’s profitability was predicated on a false theory of value,
and that once we see what virtue and vice are, we see that happiness depends on virtue. Pleasure and
pain are not able to override this fact. That is why Glaucon recognizes how ridiculous it is to think that
vice can make one happier than virtue can (445a–b). And Socrates fully agrees; his only worry is that
the argument has not been sufficiently articulated (445b). As I argue below, if there is any discontinuity
between books IV and IX on this point, I am not sure what Plato could have done differently if he had
explicitly intended to hide it from view (cf. Gosling and Taylor (1982: 99)). Second, on this reading of
the Republic it still remains the case that pleasure explains why the virtuous are happy (in particular,
why they are happy on the rack), again leaving us with a dubious value theory in the Republic.
Pleasure and Moral Psychology: Republic IV, IX 113
different considerations about virtue, which are meant only to ‘praise’ virtue in
some less specific way, by adding a welcome postscript about how pleasant a
virtuous life is, say. As John Mabbott and Richard Kraut argue, Plato appeals to
the pleasure of virtue simply to show that a life of virtue need not be devoid of
pleasure.13 Alternatively, Terence Irwin suggests that the focus of the arguments
is on reason’s ability to make us good judges of things like pleasures.14 And Julia
Annas and Nicholas White have each suggested that Plato is here considering
some of the ‘natural consequences’ of virtue, perhaps as an appeal to the sorts of
considerations that would get the attention of certain of the dialog’s inter-
locutors or readers.15
Unfortunately, approaches of this sort are difficult to reconcile with the fact
that the two pleasure arguments of book IX are purported proofs of the hap-
piness of the virtuous life, and not mere ‘praise’ for the virtuous life. This is quite
clear from the text. For one thing, the pleasure arguments follow on the heels of
a first argument the conclusion of which is that the virtuous are happy, and they
are immediately introduced as ‘second’ and ‘third’ proofs. What else are we to
infer but that they are meant to be proofs of the same conclusion?16 And, in fact,
Socrates implies exactly that when he introduces his first pleasure argument:
‘Shall we hire a town crier, then, or shall I be the one to proclaim . . . the happiest person to
be the best and most virtuous person—that is, the person who possesses the highest degree
of regal qualities and who rules as king over himself ? . . .’
‘You can make the announcement.’
‘All right, then. That’s the first proof, but I wonder how the second one strikes
you. . . . [namely, that] of the three kinds of pleasure, the most enjoyable . . . is that which
belongs to the intellectual part of the mind; one’s life becomes most enjoyable when this
part of the mind is one’s motivating force.’
‘Of course. I mean, when a thoughtful person recommends his own way of life, he ought
to be taken seriously . . .’ (IX., 580b8–d1, 583a1–5, emphasis added)
We may well conclude, ‘If Plato intended to separate his proofs of the greater
pleasantness of the philosophic life from the proof of the greater eudaimonia of
the just life, then he has certainly done his best to conceal that intention by his
manner of introducing the second proof ’.17 I think we can say the same of the
third proof as well, which Socrates introduces as follows:
‘That makes it two, then, one after another: immorality has twice been defeated by
morality. In Olympic fashion, here’s the third round . . . I wonder whether you’ll agree
13
See Mabbott (1937: 472–4); and Kraut (1992: 313 f.). Cf. also Plato, trans. Waterfield (1993: 439),
note on 580d; and Rowe (1984: 106). Mabbot goes so far as to claim that the arguments in book IX
about happiness and pleasure are entirely dispensable for the project of the Republic ; see Kirwan,
(1965: 171); and Foster (1938: 230) for well-placed criticisms of this view.
14
See Irwin (1995: 294). However, the actual role of pleasure in Plato’s defense of virtue is
somewhat unclear to me on Irwin’s view, and Irwin does not raise the question how pleasure is related
to happiness in Republic IX. C. C. W. Taylor (1998: 68) is also difficult to classify.
15
See Annas (1981: 294, 314, cf. 168, 316, 326 f.); N. White (1979: 79, 233 f.).
16
Cf. Gosling and Taylor (1982: 99–102); Reeve (1988: 153 f.).
17
Gosling and Taylor (1982: 99).
114 Pleasure and Moral Psychology: Republic IV, IX
that only the philosopher’s pleasure is true and pure, while the others are illusory . . .’
(583b1–5, emphasis added)
Clearly, Plato sees the considerations about pleasure as part of the argument that
virtue makes its possessor happy.
Moreover, there is no reason to say that Plato shifts from a discussion of
virtue as beneficial for its own sake in book IV, to a discussion of virtue’s
‘consequences,’ such as its natural pleasantness, in book IX.18 There is no inde-
pendent reason to separate the purport of books IV and IX in this way,19 and in
fact Plato introduces the arguments of books VIII and IX as completing the
argument begun in book IV. After discussing the analogy between a good state
and a good soul in book IV, Socrates begins book V as follows:
‘So that’s the kind of community and political system—and the kind of person—I’m
calling good and right. Given the rightness of this community, I’m describing all the others
as bad and flawed: not only are their political systems wrong, but they also influence
individuals’ characters incorrectly. And I see them as falling into four categories.’
‘What four categories?’ [Glaucon] asked.
I was on the point of listing them and explaining how, in my opinion, each in turn evolved
out of the preceding one, when Polemarchus [interrupted me]. (449a1–b1)
Socrates starts this comparison of lives for the explicit purpose of completing
the argument of book IV that virtue benefits and vice harms its possessor (see
444e–445e). And at the beginning of book VIII, which moves seamlessly into
book IX, Socrates makes it clear that he is taking up the unfinished business of
the end of book IV and the beginning of book V:
‘But now that we’ve finished with all that [i.e. the material of books V–VII], let’s try
to resume our journey by recalling where we were when we took the side-turning that led
us here’.
‘That’s no problem,’ [Glaucon] said. ‘You were talking, much as you are now, as if your
discussion of our community were complete. You were saying that you’d call good the
kind of community you’d described at that point, and its human counterpart . . . Anyway,
you claimed that, given the rightness of our community, all the rest were flawed, and you
said, if my memory serves me well, that of these remaining political systems, four types
would be worth mentioning, and that we ought to see where they and their human
counterparts go wrong, so that we can decide whether or not the best person is also the
happiest person, and the worst the unhappiest, which we can only do once we’ve seen all
these types of human being and reached agreement as to which is best and which is worst.
18
Socrates says at 358a that he does intend to speak later of virtue’s consequences. I agree with
White that we should understand these to be the ‘natural’ consequences of virtue, i.e. those that virtue
secures all on its own, as opposed to virtue’s ‘artificial’ consequences, which virtue secures only given
certain conventions and institutions (N. White (1979: 29, 79)). But I do not agree with Annas and
White that Socrates is here speaking of these consequences. It should be noted, however, that Annas
takes the two pleasure arguments as purported proofs of the virtuous person’s happiness, but thinks
that they do not, in fact, serve as such, that is, that Plato ‘is actually starting again . . . despite the talk of
‘‘three proofs’’ ’ (Annas (1981: 306)).
19
See N. White (1984: 400–3 and nn. 18–19). Strangely, Guthrie (1975: 475, 537) seems to be of
two minds about this.
Pleasure and Moral Psychology: Republic IV, IX 115
I had just asked which four political systems you had in mind, when Polemarchus
and Adeimantus interrupted. . . . Why don’t you resume your stance, then . . . ?’ (543c4–
544b2, 5)
Now the discussion of the four bad types of person occupies all of book VIII and
the first portion of IX. In book IX Socrates considers the ‘dictatorial’ type of
person, and it is in comparing this type of person with the virtuous person that
Socrates’ pleasure arguments emerge. In Socrates’ opinion, his defense of virtue
in book IV was left unfinished, as the prelude to book V makes clear, and he
declares his intent to finish it in VIII and IX. Plato has not changed tack.20
What is more, Glaucon makes it absolutely clear that they are going through
the arguments surrounding the comparison of good and bad lives ‘so that we
can decide whether or not the best person is also the happiest [e˝daimonstatov]
person, and the worst the unhappiest’ (544a).21 And immediately after the final
pleasure argument, Socrates takes Glaucon back to the question they raised in
book II (358e–367e) and first began to answer in book IV (444e–445b):
‘All right,’ I said. ‘At this point in the argument, let’s remind ourselves of the original
assertion which started us off on our journey here. Wasn’t it someone saying that
immorality was rewarding if you were a consummate criminal who gave an impression of
morality? Wasn’t that the assertion?’
‘Yes, it was.’
‘Well, now that we’ve decided what effect moral and immoral conduct have,’ I said, ‘we
can engage him in conversation.’ (588b1–8)
Socrates then introduces his famous image of the soul as an amalgam of a man,
a lion, and a monster, and using this image Socrates argues that only one
hierarchical structure of the parts of the soul is worth having (588b–592a),
concluding that
‘in so far as the mind is a more valuable asset than the body, it’s more important for the
mind to acquire self-discipline, morality, and intelligence than it is for the body to become
fit, attractive and healthy.’
‘You’re absolutely right,’ [Glaucon] said.
‘Then anyone with any sense will put all his energies, throughout his life, into achieving
this goal.’ (591b3–c2)
The ‘effect [that] moral and immoral conduct have’ must be taken to include the
results of the pleasure arguments, for it is at their conclusion that Socrates says
they are now ready to return to their original question. Socrates’ discussion of
pleasure in Republic IX is so framed on both sides by an explicit return to the
20
See Gosling and Taylor (1982: 99 f.).
21
The view of Gosling and Taylor (1982: 103 f.) is difficult to classify. They claim that, while
Socrates denies that pleasure is the good, none the less in the absence of an account of the good
Socrates argues for the superiority of virtue on the basis of other, set criteria, including pleasure.
However, this still leaves it unclear to me just how Socrates understands pleasure to be related to
happiness. For Socrates is not arguing for the superiority of virtue in any old way, but by showing that
virtue makes its possessor happy.
116 Pleasure and Moral Psychology: Republic IV, IX
project of book IV, that it is clear that the pleasure arguments themselves must
be a crucial part of that very project.22 Therefore, if Plato was arguing that virtue
is beneficial for its own sake in book IV, then he means to argue for the same
thesis in books VIII–IX.
So the view that the pleasure arguments are to be disconnected somehow
from the project of book IV clearly differs from Plato’s own assessment of how
these arguments fit into the rest of the dialog. Nor, therefore, does it do any
good to suggest that Socrates discusses the pleasure of virtue simply because it
offers the sort of consideration that his listeners in the dialogue want to hear:23
that suggestion would at most tell us why Plato muddled his discussion of virtue
and happiness, but it would do nothing to make it any less of a muddle.24 What
is more, downplaying the pleasure arguments makes it seem quite odd that
Socrates should describe the second pleasure argument as ‘the most important
and serious fall of the whole competition’ between virtue and vice (583b6–7).25
Indeed, the more we restrict the demonstration that virtue makes its possessor
happy to book IV, the more superfluous all the arguments of book IX begin
to appear.26 We cannot avoid the conclusion that the pleasure arguments of
book IX are arguments for the thesis that virtue makes its possessor happy, for
which Plato had begun to argue in book IV.
So what is Plato’s argument for the happiness of the virtuous life, and what
does the pleasure of that life have to do with its happiness? What we need is a
way to understand how Plato could appeal to the pleasures of the virtuous life as
22
N. White (1979: 234) claims that at this point ‘Plato sums up the results of his arguments for the
superiority of the just life and presents an image of the soul to illustrate those results.’ I presume that
the result of the pleasure arguments that White is referring to is the fact that no part of the soul gains
its own pleasure when anything but reason rules the whole (233, cf. 130).
23
So suggests, e.g., N. White (1979: 233 f.), who takes Thrasymachus as the target. White’s sug-
gestion does have the virtue, however, of offering an explanation why Socrates bothers discussing
pleasure in the first place; con., e.g., Kraut (1992: 313 f.).
24
Notice also that such a shift in Socrates’ approach would be a step in entirely the wrong
direction at this point in the dialog. For the more seriously we take Plato’s arguments that virtue is
good in its very nature, the less to the point we shall find arguments that virtue’s goodness is
dependent on something else. If Socrates has already shown that a virtuous person is a happy person,
then he has proven so much of so much importance that his quickly moving on to other, merely ‘nice’
added bonuses of virtue is anticlimactic at best, and surely must seem so even to Glaucon and
Adeimantus. And to say that Plato discusses pleasure for the sake of, say, Thrasymachus is to assume
that Plato conceives of the pleasure of virtue as something that Thrasymachus could already recognize
as what he is seeking, as if pleasure were commensurable across different kinds of lives, and not
peculiar to ways of life. We shall return to this below.
25
Kraut, (1992: 314) says that it is called the greatest fall because only in this argument is the gap
between the virtuous and vicious shown with such emphasis. But this does not explain why the
argument is given in the first place, or why the enormous gap in pleasantness of lives is so important
that demonstrating its enormity should give us ‘the greatest fall’. These are fairly pressing questions,
since in ‘the greatest fall’ Socrates spends a great deal of time and energy trying to show something
which he ‘was never even asked to show, namely that the just person’s life is more pleasant than the
alternatives’ (Annas (1981: 306); cf. Guthrie (1975: 541); Kraut (1992: 313)).
26
Annas (1981: 348 f.) raises just this objection to Plato’s introduction of the (artificial) con-
sequences of virtue in Republic X, 612a–614a. This problem is bad enough when it arises after Plato’s
defense of virtue for its own sake. It would be much worse if it arose within that defense.
Pleasure and Moral Psychology: Republic IV, IX 117
a way of showing that virtue makes us happy, without making pleasure yet
another supreme good alongside virtue. And Plato does just that, on my view,
as the pleasure arguments of book IX are parts of a larger argument, begun in
book IV, to show that virtue is the health of the soul, and constitutes our
well-being. Let us begin again with a closer look at that larger argument.
Having each part doing its own job also keeps each part from its own form of
badness, as Plato makes clear in the case of the desirous part: the rational and
passionate parts must guide it so as to ‘make sure that it doesn’t get so saturated
with physical pleasures (as they are called) that in its bloated and strengthened
state it stops doing its own job, and tries to dominate and rule over things which
it is not equipped by its hereditary status to rule over, and so plunges the whole
of everyone’s life into chaos’ (442a7–b3).
Plato then argues, second, that the hierarchical relationship between these
three parts of the soul must be of the appropriate kind. Reason must control the
whole mind, using passion as its ally to direct and soothe desire:
‘Since the rational part is wise and looks out for the whole of the mind, isn’t it right for it
to rule, and for the passionate part to be its subordinate and its ally?’
‘Yes.’
‘Now . . . isn’t it the combination of culture and exercise which will make them attuned to
each other? The two combined provide fine discussions and studies to stretch and educate
the rational part, and music and rhythm to relax, calm, and soothe the passionate part’.
‘Absolutely.’
27
I discuss this psychological model, and the difficulties it raises, in greater detail in Ch. 7.
118 Pleasure and Moral Psychology: Republic IV, IX
‘And once these two parts have received this education and have been trained and
conditioned in their true work, then they are to be put in charge of the desirous
part . . .’ (441e4–442a5)
And third, in such a person, Socrates says, there is health in each part of the soul,
and there is health in their integration with one another:
‘Now that morality and immorality are in plain view, doesn’t that mean that wrongdoing
and immoral conduct, and right conduct too, are as well?’ I asked.
‘Why?’
‘Because their role in the mind happens to be identical to that of healthy or unhealthy
factors in the body,’ I said.
‘In what sense?’
‘Healthy factors engender health, and unhealthy ones illness.’
‘Yes.’
‘Well, doesn’t moral behaviour engender morality, while immoral behaviour engenders
immorality?’
‘Inevitably.’
‘But you create health by making the components of a body control and be controlled as
nature intended, and you create disease by subverting this natural order.’
‘Yes.’
‘Doesn’t it follow,’ I said, ‘that you create morality by making the components of a mind
control and be controlled as nature intended, and immorality by subverting this natural
order?’
‘Absolutely,’ he said.
‘Goodness, then, is apparently a state of mental health, bloom, and vitality; badness is a
state of mental sickness, deformity, and infirmity.’
‘That’s right.’ (444c1–e3)
I think that speaking of health and integration28 here is particularly appropriate.
For one thing, this way of thinking of mental or psychic well-being is familiar to
us: we commonly think of the good life as one of wholeness and harmony, where
a person is not at war within herself but at peace. For another, thinking of virtue
as the health of the soul is especially important for Plato. For even if the question
‘Which is better for one, virtue or vice?’ is not regarded as having an obvious
answer, none the less there is an obvious answer to the question, ‘Which is better
for one, health or degeneration?’ Plato’s point is to show that the former ques-
tion is really a special case of the latter question (444c–d), after all, and so if the
answer to the one is clear, then so should be the answer to the other (445a–b).29
28
See also Annas (1981: 132); Reeve (1988: 156); Irwin (1995: 253).
29
These features of Plato’s argument are especially important in light of the fact that, as
C. C. W. Taylor (1998: 66) points out, before Plato’s time Heraclitus and Democritus had already
located ‘doing well’ (happiness) in the possession of a certain psychological condition, and so Plato
must show not simply that but further what this psychological condition is, in a way that makes its
connection to happiness plausible. See also Reeve (1988: 156): ‘I think we would all agree that,
whatever our goals in life, we would welcome a psyche with a desire structure of this harmonious
kind, and that, ceteris paribus, we would want to have been brought up in a way that maximized our
chance of having such a psyche.’ See also Annas (1982: 132, 153, 321).
Pleasure and Moral Psychology: Republic IV, IX 119
In short, virtue makes us happy because virtue, by its very nature, is a harmo-
nious and integrated mode of existence.
This is a powerful argument, but at this point we shall probably find it too
quick—not surprisingly, since Socrates himself finds it too quick. For the
argument shows that to have a virtuous soul is to have a healthy soul, but it is
too quick in showing that any other kind of soul is an unhealthy soul (444a–d).
It also leaves this issue of the health of the soul a bit sketchy—just what is it,
exactly? Just what is the good condition or health of each part? And exactly why
is this form of health our greatest good as whole creatures? That is why, I think,
Socrates says at the end of book IV that his view needs further clarification
(445b). Consequently, Socrates proposes to investigate the alternative, immoral
lives in order to see just how they fare worse. This he will do in books VIII
and IX.30
For now, however, consider two points Socrates has made in book IV about
the virtuous soul: each of the parts of this soul is in its good condition, and the
appropriate relationship or hierarchy holds among the parts. These points
correspond to two desiderata for the soul.
(a) Each part of the soul must be fulfilled, where by ‘fulfilled’ we mean that the
part must have its particular good condition, and no part of its nature should be
squelched. This point will continue to unfold as Plato goes on to discuss further
the psychology of virtue and vice in books VIII and IX.
(b) Between these parts of the soul there must obtain the appropriate hierarchical
relationship, namely that reason guides the passionate part, and together they
control the desirous part.
The important thing to notice is that in book IV these two desiderata are
intimately connected, since desideratum (a) is satisfied if and only if (b) is
satisfied; that is, (c) the hierarchy of parts is in order if and only if each part is in its
good condition,31 in other words, the good condition of the parts and the proper
relationship among the parts, stand or fall together. For the nature of each part
of the soul contains not only its proper function but also its proper place in the
hierarchy of the mind to which its function suits it (cf. 442a–b).
Reason’s function is to plan for the agent as a whole, while the passionate part
has affective responses based on our conceptions of ourselves, and the desirous
part simply wants what it wants when it wants it. Therefore, since the natural
30
See also Irwin (1995: 256, 281, 283).
31
For this principle in Plato, see, e.g., Annas (1999: 151): ‘when reason rules, then the rational part
obtains its own pleasures, and so do the other two parts, the honor-loving and the money-loving; thus
all the soul’s parts get what is appropriate and the person’s life as a whole is pleasant. When, however,
reason does not rule, none of the parts gets the pleasure that is appropriate to it, and the whole life
goes askew and fails to be pleasant overall.’ Similarly, Reeve (1988: 156) claims that ‘The three parts of
[the virtuous person’s] psyche are satisfied or frustrated in unison,’ and N. White (1979: 130) that
‘The rule of reason is best, [Plato] thinks, because it can be seen to put the soul in the best condition
that it can be in, a condition in which there is as little conflict as possible, and in which all of the parts
of the soul gain satisfaction in an orderly manner’ (referring the reader also to 573c–576b, 588b–590a,
which we shall discuss below).
120 Pleasure and Moral Psychology: Republic IV, IX
function of reason is to plan for the agent as a whole, its nature is to rule the
whole soul. Each part, that is, has a role to play in the order and harmony of the
whole soul. The fulfillment of each part, and its integration into the whole,
cannot be pulled apart.
Now suppose that we could show that: (d) the virtuous person alone has the
right structure between the parts of the soul and has each of the parts in its good
condition. In that case, it would be the virtuous person alone who has a com-
pletely healthy soul, and so clearly virtue would be beneficial and rewarding,
considered strictly in its own right. This would give us a powerful demonstration
of the happiness of the virtuous life, and so also of how virtue benefits its
possessor.
And this is just the form that Socrates’ argument is going to take. For the
thesis that is expressed by (c) is suggested in book IV, but not fully articulated.
Furthermore, in book IV Socrates has not proven (d), since he has not shown
conclusively that only the virtuous person can have a healthy soul. These, I think,
are the main items of unfinished business with which Socrates is concerned at
the end of book IV and the beginning of book V. To see how these points
develop, let us turn to books VIII and IX where the discussion resumes.
hierarchy of parts is in order if and only if each part is in its good condition; or,
rather, it is one way of illustrating part of that point, namely:
(c1) if the hierarchy of parts is out of order, then some part is not in its good
condition;
for (c) is a biconditional that is equivalent to the conjunction of (c1) and:
(c2) if the hierarchy of parts is in order, then each part is in its good condition.
Socrates has not yet defended this latter claim. We shall return to it shortly.
Next, the ‘oligarchic’ or mercenary person (553a–555b), who subjects his
reason and passion as slaves to his mercenary desires (553b–d), is led by love of
wealth into conflict within his desirous part, as he relies on his mercenary desires
to control the unnecessary and expensive ones (554c–e): ‘So internal conflict will
characterize this sort of person: he isn’t single, he’s divided into two. His con-
dition is simply that his better desires by and large control his worse
ones . . . [And] he’s afraid of waking up desires which would require him to
spend money and of summoning up their assistance in a competitive situation’
(554d9–e1, 555a3–4). Again, the corrupted hierarchy in this man’s soul is
connected to the ill condition of the parts of his soul. For not only are his
rational and passionate parts squelched by his desirous part but his desirous part
itself is in conflict with itself, as his unguided desires are simply left to duel. And,
again, his failure to satisfy desideratum (a) is tied to his failure to satisfy (b), just
as thesis (c1) says.
Moreover, the problem is the same in the ‘democratic’ man (558c–562a),
a man of indulgent desires, and in the ‘dictatorial’ man (571a–576b), a man
of lawless and frenzied desires. So in each of these four sketches a vicious person
places something besides reason at the top of the hierarchy, with the result that
the part of the soul at the top becomes degenerate, and the parts below it are
squelched and unfulfilled.32
So far, then, Socrates has suggested thesis (c1) in book IV, since the nature of
each part of the soul demands that it occupy a particular place in the hierarchy
of the parts, and by examining (c1) in his discussion of vicious souls in VIII and
IX, Socrates has now given (c1) a fuller statement and firmer footing. But what
about (c2)? This point too was suggested in book IV, since the virtuous soul is
healthy in both its parts and in its integration of parts. Still, it was only sug-
gested; can Socrates enlighten us about what it is like for things to go right in the
soul? On my view, this is exactly what Socrates undertakes in his two pleasure
arguments in book IX.
32
Cf. Irwin (1995: 283), who notes that the injustice of an unjust soul can be traced to the
dominance of one of the soul’s non-rational parts.
122 Pleasure and Moral Psychology: Republic IV, IX
most pleasant, and the philosopher prefers the life of virtue, which is guided by
reason, over lives of ambition guided by passion and lives of profit-making
guided by desire (580d–581e). Now the philosopher, Socrates says, is the only
one of these three types of person who has all the qualifications needed to judge
between these kinds of life, namely, experience, intelligence, and rationality
(581e–582e). Since these qualities are needed in every choice, it is the philo-
sopher’s perspective that counts in this choice between lives. But since the
philosopher is the best decision maker, and the philosopher decides that the life
of virtue and reason is the most pleasant, it follows that the life of virtue and
reason really is the most pleasant (583a).33
But does that follow? We may have good reason to be skeptical. Suppose that
I have a broad experience of ice cream flavors, and have a very acute intelligence
and outstanding critical skills (at least where ice cream is concerned). Suppose,
then, that after careful deliberation and much soul-searching, I decide that rocky
road ice cream is my favorite. What do my special credentials in choosing ice
cream flavors actually imply about my choice of rocky road? Surely they imply
that I probably did an outstanding job of deliberating about and settling on my
decision, but this does not mean that someone who is partial to (say) chocolate
chip instead of rocky road has made any kind of mistake. After all, isn’t the best
one to speak about the merits of chocolate chip someone who really knows, as
I do not, what it is like truly to prefer chocolate chip? Likewise, isn’t Socrates’
argument just as confused as this? Can there be adjudication of disagreements
across such different perspectives?34
I do not think that Socrates is making this mistake. Now, if we think of
pleasure simply as a feeling, or a sort of thrill—something like the sweet sen-
sation of tasting ice cream—then there may well be no reason to think that there
is a privileged perspective regarding which sorts of endeavors are the most
thrilling or feel the best, and thus little hope of adjudicating disagreements
across those kinds of perspectives. However, we have independent evidence that
Socrates must not be thinking of pleasure in that sort of way, and the conception
of pleasure that Socrates must have, given what he says about pleasure, requires
us to start anew and rethink the role that an appeal to pleasure is playing in his
argument.
33
This argument is often compared with J. S. Mill’s similar argument about the superiority of
higher over lower pleasures (see Utilitarianism, ch. 2), and the family resemblance between these
arguments is strong. The most important similarity is that both arguments hold that some per-
spectives on pleasure are privileged, and thus are better indicators of what is truly pleasant for humans
(see also Aristotle, Nicomachean Ethics X.5). But it is also important to note that Mill believes that we
prize the activities we find pleasant because we find them pleasant, while Plato seems to believe that
things are pleasing to us because we prize them for other reasons. Perhaps the most important
difference, however, is that Mill’s argument focuses primarily on pleasures of kinds of activities, while
Plato’s focuses primarily on pleasures of kinds of lives.
34
This objection is stated by numerous scholars, but most recently by C. C. W. Taylor (1998: 68).
Con., e.g., Reeve (1988: 146); Irwin (1995: 291 f.). See Annas (1981: 307–9) (who also talks about
preferences of ice cream flavors) and N. White (1979: 228) for good discussions of the problem.
Pleasure and Moral Psychology: Republic IV, IX 123
Notice that the things being compared, and thus the things that the pleasures
in question are the pleasures of, are lives considered as wholes35 and centered on
certain kinds of defining interests—mercenary, ambitious, and philosophical—
which belong to the part of the soul with which the person identifies:
‘What if we said that what [the desirous part] enjoys, what it cares for, is profit? This
would be the best way for us to clarify the issue for ourselves: we could keep our references
to this part of the mind concise, and call it mercenary and avaricious. Would that
description hit the mark?’
‘I think so,’ [Glaucon] said.
‘And isn’t our position that the passionate part always has its sights set wholly on power,
success, and fame?’
‘Yes.’
‘So it would be fair for us to call it competitive and ambitious, wouldn’t it?’
‘Perfectly fair.’
‘And it’s patently obvious that our intellectual part is entirely directed at every moment
towards knowing the truth of things, and isn’t interested in the slightest in money and
reputation.’
‘Certainly.’
‘So we’d be right to call it intellectual and philosophical, wouldn’t we?’
‘Of course.’ (581a3–b11)
These defining concerns of the different parts of the soul—profit, power, and
wisdom—are the things in the scales, as it were (581e–582a), and for Plato they
correspond to ‘three basic human types’ (581c), according as each type of person
‘loves’ each type of concern.36 Each concern, that is, represents the kind of
person one is and the kind of life one lives. Thus, when the proponents of these
different ways of life are asked to comment on the pleasures of their lives they
are not asked to comment on the pleasant characteristic episodes of their lives
but on their ways of arranging and living their lives as wholes: ‘if you were to
approach representatives of these three types one by one and ask them which of
these ways of life was the most enjoyable, they’d each swear by their own way of
life’ (581c8–10). And when Socrates comes to the relative ranking of these
proponents’ preferences, what he ranks is one life (b‹ov, 583a3, 5, 6) against
another; indeed, at one point ‘life’ and ‘pleasure’ seem interchangeable: ‘Which
way of life—which pleasure—comes second, in the assessment?’ (T‹na d
de¸teron, e pon, b‹on ka› t‹na deutran donn fhsin ` krit
v e nai; 583a6–7)
Notice that while the small episodes of one’s life may have a ‘feel’—as tasting
ice cream has a ‘feel’—one’s life as a whole does not. Nor does Socrates give any
suggestion of a ‘sum’ of episodic pleasures within a life as a whole. So to think
35
Cf. Annas (1981: 309).
36
In Greek Plato calls ‘the philosophical, the competitive, and the avaricious’ filsofon, filnikon,
filokerdv, making each a kind of ‘lover’ (f‹lov) of their respective concerns. See also Plato, trans.
Waterfield (1993: 439, note on 581c). As N. White (1979: 226 f.) notes, Plato now shifts from an
emphasis on types of persons defined in terms of their civic roles, to an emphasis on types of persons
defined in terms of ‘temperament’ and ‘what they predominately seek’.
124 Pleasure and Moral Psychology: Republic IV, IX
37
In fact, as we saw in Ch. 2, it is the deeply mistaken attempt to understand a happy life in terms
of certain kinds of episodes that Socrates so harshly criticizes in his refutation of Callicles’ hedonism
38
at Gorgias 494c–497d. Cf. Annas (1981: 318).
39
As Reeve (1988: 153) says, ‘Each [of the psychic parts] is a unified source of motivation urging
the psyche towards a distinctive kind of pleasure, and representing that pleasure as the content of
the good.’
Pleasure and Moral Psychology: Republic IV, IX 125
pleasure is thought of not as a feeling that goes along with the activity, but as the
way in which one’s emotions function with respect to the activity.40
We can also see this kind of pleasure, I think, as a kind of pleasure one can
take in one’s whole existence, and in how various parts of one’s life fit into one’s
existence. It is one thing to enjoy what one is doing, and another to enjoy what
one does. We sometimes hear of people, often famous people, who have had no
desire they could not satisfy and no pleasure they could not indulge, only to find
themselves deep in despair and hopelessness, to the point of self-destruction.
Such poor people, we say, are simply not happy with their lives, and that is a
great tragedy. We do not experience our projects and activities in just a piece-
meal fashion, but experience them as forming part of a greater whole which, in
turn, we find satisfying or unsatisfying as the kind of whole that it is.
In this sense, to talk about the pleasure of a life spent pursuing money, for
instance, is not to talk about how money-making feels, but about the value that
one’s emotions attribute to money-making projects as part of one’s whole
existence. To be pleased with such a life is to see one’s projects as worth spending
time on, to see those projects as intimately bound up with an identity that one
prizes, and in general to have one’s emotions resonate with those projects, seeing
them as part of a whole life that one takes to be satisfying and worth living.41
I think that this way of understanding pleasure can help us to see just how
much sense Socrates’ argument can make. Pleasure in this sense tells us a great
deal about agents, and in particular about the kind of value they place on their
lives, and on events and projects as parts of their lives, considered as wholes. And
this is what Socrates’ argument is about: it is a debate between proponents of
different ways of arranging one’s life (581c–d). When each proponent praises the
pleasures of a given way of life, then, he is not telling us what makes him feel
good, but rather what kind of life he finds worth living, what kind of life is
important, what kind of life has real point. What Socrates needs, then, is a
40
For a discussion of this way of understanding pleasure, see Ryle (1949: 107–10). See also Reeve
(1988: 145), who claims that the pleasures Plato has in mind are not subjective experiences but
activities, which it makes sense to rank as pleasures; cf. Sachs (1963: 146). And, of course, Nico-
machean Ethics VII.11–14, X.1–5 is the locus classicus of the idea that pleasure is a mode of activity;
however, it is important to note that in book VII Aristotle defines such pleasure negatively, as the
absence of emotional impediment to activity (see also Rudebusch (1999), ch. 6 et passim), while in
book X he defines it as positive emotional engagement in activity, as I do here.
41
In an intriguing passage in C. S. Lewis’s Out of the Silent Planet, two characters—one human,
one Martian—discuss the very different meanings their races attach to the pleasures of sex (Lewis
(1938: 47 f.)). While the human clearly thinks of this pleasure as a kind of desirable sensation, or
perhaps as a kind of satisfying activity, the Martian insists that such pleasures are not fully appreciated
unless they are seen as the parts of a larger whole that they are. All kinds of events and projects, he
says, outlive their initial occurrence, and have their full significance only as a continuing agent
continues to give them meaning, making them part of his inner life—the way that he thinks, what he
remembers and how he remembers, and in general how his emotions continue to construe it as part of
the meaning of his life. And although it takes someone not human to make the point, I do think that
we can recognize what Lewis is so astute to observe: we take pleasure not only in our localized
experiences but also in the life as a whole of which we make them a part; in fact, much of a pleasure’s
significance for us is how we see it fitting into a whole existence that we find to be rewarding and
satisfying. I thank Mark LeBar for bringing this passage to my attention.
126 Pleasure and Moral Psychology: Republic IV, IX
42
Cf. Annas (1981: 309); Reeve (1988: 145).
Pleasure and Moral Psychology: Republic IV, IX 127
43
For a discussion of the differences between Plato’s treatment of pleasure and disagreements
about pleasure, and modern treatments of those topics, see Annas (1981: 307 f.).
44
Gosling and Taylor (1982: 113) argue that Plato conflates ‘relief ’ as a state and ‘relieving’ as a
process. I believe, rather, that Plato deliberately discusses first relief, and then relieving, the shift
occurring at 584b.
128 Pleasure and Moral Psychology: Republic IV, IX
remission of pain is pleasure, because of the contrast between pain and its
remission, ‘they’re being misled,’ Socrates says; ‘there’s no difference between
people who’ve never experienced [real] pleasure comparing pain with absence of
pain, and people who’ve never experienced white comparing black with grey’
(585a2–5). Rather, genuine pleasure is to be found in providing for ourselves
what we need most deeply (585a–e). To find out what that is, we need to
determine, one, what we are, strictly speaking; and two, what has the greatest
power to satisfy us as what we are. This is how Plato means to show how
disagreements about pleasures—as ways of attributing value to a way of living—
can be rationally adjudicated, by determining what kind of nature humans have,
and thus what a meaningful existence for a human must be like.
He begins, much in the fashion of the Phaedo, by observing that humans seem
to be a union of two different natures. Intelligible things, Socrates argues, are
more real than corporeal things (585b–c). Consequently, the mind is more real
than the body, and the things of the mind are more real than the things of the body
(585d). Socrates now makes the rather (or perhaps, further) bold claim that the
more real a thing is and the more real the thing that satisfies it, the more real is the
satisfaction (585d–e): ‘an object which is satisfied by more real things, and which
is itself more real, is more really satisfied than an object which is satisfied by less
real things, and is itself less real’ (585d7–9). Now ‘being satisfied by things which
accord with one’s nature,’ Socrates says, ‘is pleasant’ (585d11). So, presumably,
since the mind is the part of us that is most real (585c–d), and most really what we
are, when it is satisfied with what most accords with its nature—namely truth,
knowledge, intelligence, and other parts of goodness (585b–c)—this is the most
real and true pleasure that is possible for us (585d–e). In short, when the most real
part of us—the mind—is satisfied with the most real thing—truth and good-
ness—we are the most satisfied. Those who think that they receive true satisfac-
tion from other things, then, are mistaken (586a–c), and are acquainted only with
‘mere effigies of true pleasure’, which are like ‘illusory paintings’ (586b7–8).
Again, we might think that this is a bizarre argument: why should we think that
the reality of a subject and of the object of his or her satisfaction should imply
anything about the reality of the pleasure of satisfaction itself ?45 If we think of
pleasure as a sort of feeling that comes alongside what we are doing, then this
argument will seem unintelligible: surely as long as any two people both feel
pleased or satisfied, they both feel pleased or satisfied equally really, no matter
45
This concern arises even if we set aside C. C. W. Taylor’s objection (1998: 69) that, in the
philosopher’s life, the mind will require as much constant filling as the non-philosopher’s stomach
(say) will, for the philosopher will continue to learn, just as the non-philosopher will continue to eat.
There is, I think, an important difference between these two kinds of continued fillings. To use a crude
analogy, the philosopher’s continued filling is like filling a tank by first placing in it item A, then
item B, then item C, and so on for the rest of one’s life; the non-philosopher’s continued filling is
like filling a tank, flushing it, filling it again, flushing it, and so on for the rest of one’s life. So by
identifying the latter process as ephemeral and less genuinely a filling, Socrates does not thereby place
the former process in the same predicament. On the former, it is the things with which one is filled
that satisfy, rather than process of filling as on the latter.
Pleasure and Moral Psychology: Republic IV, IX 129
what the pleasure or satisfaction is.46 Again, however, when pleasure is under-
stood as a way of valuing one’s life as a whole, it does make sense to say that some
lives are more really satisfying than others, since lives can be more or less
meaningful, and the pleasures that agents take in lives can fail to track the actual
worth of those lives. So just how does the life of the virtuous differ from other
lives? And how is pleasure more or less real, and how does the difference in level of
reality bear on the comparison of the life of virtue with other kinds of lives?
To answer those questions, we need to pay attention to how Plato explains the
differences between pleasures taken in lives, through a model of pleasure as the
replenishment of some need or the filling of some sort of lack (585a–b). Such a
model as this captures the fact that we enjoy getting things we need or want,
because we want or need them. We can illustrate this fact with some rather
humble observations about more basic pleasures, such as that it is pleasant to eat
when one is hungry, but not when one is full. Of course, examples of this sort
have very limited power to illustrate the replenishment model; for example,
someone suffering from indigestion clearly will not feel better by being filled up
with more of anything—certainly such a person has a need, but this need is not
plausibly construed as a void to be filled. Furthermore, Socrates points out that
some pleasures presuppose no prior awareness of any lack or deficiency, such as
the enjoyment of a lovely scent (584b). It is better, then, to understand a more
general point here than literal ‘filling’, namely that human beings are needy
creatures, who take pleasure in the satisfaction of their needs, both the needs
they perceive and those they do not.
Moreover, when one perceives a need or lack, Socrates says, even the anti-
cipation of its satisfaction is a pleasure (584c). Here, then, is another way of
advancing over a crude ‘filling’ model of pleasure as replenishment: for the
pleasure of anticipation is a matter not of replenishment itself, but of repres-
enting a replenishment to oneself. This is important, as it makes clear that
pleasure, in certain crucial cases, is not just a mechanical or physiological
process, but involves our ability to ‘see’ the object of our desire as something
that will actually satisfy us. Plato, that is, is interested in pleasure primarily as an
intentional state, rather than a purely qualitative one.47
46
See N. White (1979: 231 f.), who seems to raise this sort of objection, and treats Plato’s point as
somewhat muddled and awaiting clarification in the Philebus.
47
As is often recognized, pleasure as a kind of anticipation should put us in mind of Plato’s
discussion of false pleasures of anticipation at Philebus 38b–41a. For an excellent discussion, see
D. Frede (1985: 158 and n. 15, 165–79); and D. Frede (1993: xlviii). One thing that is clear in that
discussion is that Plato again focuses on anticipation in order to isolate the crucial element of
intentionality in certain types of pleasure. For example, suppose that I am reflecting today about a
dinner in my honor that is to be held tomorrow, and suppose that I am thinking about this dinner in
terms of how much I deserve it and what a lovely thing it is going to be for me. Thinking about the
dinner in these terms gives the description under which I enjoy the anticipated event. Now Plato’s
choice of pleasure as an anticipation of something not yet present makes for complications, and these
have worried a number of readers of the Philebus. Still, we can see his motivation for doing so: if he
had talked about my pleasure while I am actually having the dinner, it would be very tempting to
think of the pleasure as the way the food tastes or how witty the conversation is, or what have you.
Rather, by focusing on my anticipation of the dinner, Plato isolates the intentionality of the pleasure
130 Pleasure and Moral Psychology: Republic IV, IX
Pleasure so considered is always to be pleased that such and such is the case.
To be pleased in this way is to enjoy something under a description. Plato’s view
is that the pleased agent construes the object of her pleasure in terms of a need or
lack that she takes the object to satisfy. And, Socrates says, it is their ignorance of
what really satisfies a person that allows some to pursue less really satisfying
things as if they were what one most needed from life (584d–585a, 586a–c). In
other words, everyone construes the pursuits they find meaningful in terms of
the satisfaction they believe they receive from them,48 but not everyone really
knows what things really will satisfy them. On Plato’s model of pleasure, people
enjoy their way of life on the basis of seeing it as a way of life that gives them
what they believe to be worth while in life. On this basis Socrates argues both
that those who are not virtuous experience pleasure, and that such people fail to
experience the genuine pleasure—the real fulfillment and actualization as a
human being—that they think they do.
On this understanding of pleasure, construing oneself as truly satisfied is
clearly not sufficient for being truly satisfied. Rather, determining whether one is
truly satisfied takes intelligence and judgment. To illustrate this point, Socrates
first has us imagine three vertically arranged points—a bottom, a middle, and
a top (584d). Non-philosophers, Socrates says, begin at the ‘bottom’ with painful
desires, and look ‘upward’ to see the ‘middle’ point, the satisfaction of desires.
While they are rising to the middle point, they get the appearance of upward
motion, and once they have risen to the middle point and look back down, this
appearance is confirmed (584d–e). Consequently, such people believe that in
satisfying their desires, in attaining the things they think will satisfy them, they
have reached the ‘top’ and are genuinely satisfied (584d–585a):
‘You know how things can be high, low, or in between?’ I asked.
‘Yes.’
‘Well, someone moving from the bottom of anything to the middle is bound to get an
impression of upward motion, isn’t he? And once he’s standing at the halfway point and
looking down to where he travelled from, then if he hasn’t seen the true heights, he’s
bound to think he’s reached the top, isn’t he?’
‘Yes, I’d certainly have to agree with that,’ [Glaucon] said.
‘And if he retraced his steps, he’d think—rightly—that he was travelling downwards,
wouldn’t he?’ I asked.
‘Of course.’
‘And all these experiences of his would be due to his ignorance of the true nature of high,
middle, and low, wouldn’t they?’
‘Obviously.’ (584d3–e6)
I have: enjoying the dinner as a whole is representing it under a satisfying description, as we can see
in the case of anticipation, in which there is nothing to the pleasure but the representing. We shall
return to this feature of anticipatory features, and the nature of pleasure as an intentional state in
general, in Ch. 6.
48
Reeve (1988: 153) correctly notes this feature of the pleasures of the different parts of the soul as
a way of representing ‘the content of the good’.
Pleasure and Moral Psychology: Republic IV, IX 131
The crucial point to notice here is that the non-philosophers’ pleasures are not
just feelings but ways of construing their replenishments: they see their
replenishments as bringing them true satisfaction and securing what they really
need, as bringing them to the ‘top’, in Socrates’ analogy. But such a construal or
representation of a replenishment is something that one can be mistaken about.
In Socrates’ analogy, one can misconstrue the middle as the top, if one has no
acquaintance with the real top, simply because one has moved upward to the
middle from the bottom:
‘So would you think it odd for people who have never experienced truth, and who
therefore have unreliable views about a great many subjects, to be in the same position
where pleasure, pain, and the intermediate state are concerned? They not only hold the
correct opinion that they are feeling pain, and do in fact feel pain, when they move into a
state of pain, but they’re also certain about the satisfaction and pleasure they feel when
they move away from pain and into the intermediate state. But they’re being misled:
there’s no difference between people who’ve never experienced pleasure comparing
pain with absence of pain, and people who’ve never experienced white comparing black
with grey.’ (584e7–585a5)
Of course, Socrates nowhere denies that such experiences are pleasures,49 and
we can see that on the replenishment model these experiences are sorts of
pleasures because they are, after all, satisfactions of desires. However, we can also
see that the non-philosophers make a mistake in thinking that they have thereby
achieved the top, that is, genuine pleasure and genuine satisfaction. The money-
loving man of the first pleasure argument, for instance, desires wealth because
he thinks that it is money that is important, that it is money that will truly give
him what he needs. As such, the satisfaction of his desire for money is a pleasure,
specifically the pleasure of getting money as what is worth getting. For, as
Socrates takes such pains to show, the person who thinks that getting money is
true pleasure pursues money under the description of that which is truly sat-
isfying, for in getting money he believes that he will move from the ‘bottom’ to
the ‘top’ (584d–585a). And, since his life is centered about activities of satisfying
these desires, he thinks that his life is truly rewarding, that is, that his enjoyment
of life is complete.
Unfortunately for him, the money-loving man is mistaken about that:
‘It turns out, then, that people to whom intelligence and goodness are unfamiliar, whose
only interest is self-indulgence and so on, spend their lives moving aimlessly to and fro
between the bottom and the halfway point, which is as far as they reach. But they never
travel any further towards the true heights: they’ve never even looked up there, let alone
gone there; they aren’t really satisfied by anything real; they don’t experience steady, pure
pleasure. They’re no different from cattle: they spend their lives grazing, with their eyes
turned down and heads bowed towards the ground and their tables. Food and sex are their
49
See also Philebus 37a–b. Socrates does claim that pleasure understood as the state of alleviation
of pain is not really a pleasure, because pleasure cannot be static (583c–584a), but he does not make
any such claim about pleasure understood as replenishing, which he begins discussing at 585b; con.
Gosling and Taylor (1982: 113).
132 Pleasure and Moral Psychology: Republic IV, IX
only concerns, and their insatiable greed for more and more drives them to kick and butt
one another to death with their horns and hoofs of iron, killing one another because
they’re seeking satisfaction in unreal things for a part of themselves which is also unreal—a
leaky vessel they’re trying to fill.’ (586a1–b4)
Such a person’s life is not truly rewarding, because he has failed to identify what
he actually needs. He does, however, get what he thinks he needs, and so has a
kind of pleasure in doing so. But his enjoyment of his pleasures is an enjoyment
of them as genuine, and herein lies his mistake, because genuine pleasure is to
satisfy the most satisfiable part of oneself with what is most satisfying. Since the
intellect and the intelligible things with which it is in contact are more real than
corporeal things, the satisfaction of the intellect in contacting its objects is a
more real satisfaction (585b–d). To live the virtuous life is to identify with
reason as representing one’s true self, and to satisfy reason with what it most
truly needs. For, Socrates says, when the whole soul accepts the leadership of
reason, harmoniously and without conflict, then each part of the soul does that
job that it is best suited to do within the whole soul, and each part of the soul
enjoys the pleasures that are most appropriate and beneficial for it (586c–587b).
Since the philosopher attains the fulfillment of his nature in the genuine
provision of what his nature requires, Plato argues, the philosopher’s pleasure
really is genuine. It is in virtue of attaining this fulfillment of his nature that
the philosopher’s preference of way of life is the correct one; it is this that the
philosopher is right about in the adjudication of disputes between preferred lives.
And so here, again, it seems that judgments about pleasure do admit of objective
judgment after all. More important, it also seems that what is at stake in these
judgments is the goodness of a mode of living, taken on its own terms: the com-
parison of pleasures turns out to be a comparison between judgments of types of
lives as good for their own sake, and as their own reward. It is from this contest
that the life of virtue emerges the winner in book IX, just as it had in book IV.
Moreover, this picture of the philosopher has two further implications that we
should note here. First, for Plato the philosopher, the person of virtue is not torn
but integrated: reason leads, and desire and passion follow in unison with
reason.50 And, thus, while the non-philosopher may endorse his way of life (as
we saw in the first pleasure argument as well), he cannot do so in just the way
that the philosopher endorses his way of life. For the philosopher’s way of life is
endorsed by the whole soul, by the rational, passionate, and desirous parts. The
virtuous life is one of integration and harmony in the soul; reason leads, and the
whole soul endorses the leading. But the vicious soul is out of harmony and
torn; as we saw in our discussion of book VIII, non-philosophers satisfy the
wants of a part of their soul only at the expense of the other parts. By identifying
50
One interesting consequence of this fact is what it shows about how the virtuous person acts: for
example, the virtuous person will not merely give to someone in need, but will give charitably, that is,
willingly rather than begrudgingly, and with pleasure. In following reason, then, the virtuous person
will not merely do good deeds, but will do them in the right spirit. This is important, because the
difference between doing good deeds and acting from the virtues is morally important.
Pleasure and Moral Psychology: Republic IV, IX 133
with a part of the soul besides reason, the non-philosopher comes to value the
wrong things. While he may find a sort of pleasure in attaining those things, and
thus believe that his life is truly rewarding, he will never know the true pleasure
of harmony and peace.
And second, the difference between the philosopher and the non-philosopher
stems from the fact that there are ways that it is good to be passionate, and ways
that it is good to be desirous. Reason leads passion and desire into these good
ways. That passion and desire find tremendous pleasure in their transformation
indicates that their natures are fulfilled by what accords with their natures:
‘[The pursuits which people unfamiliar with intelligence and goodness are involved with]
impregnate people with an insane lust for the pleasure they offer, and these fools fight over
them, as the Trojans in Stesichorus’ story, out of ignorance of the truth, fought over the
mere apparition of Helen.’
‘Yes, something like that’s bound to be the case,’ [Glaucon] said.
‘What about the passionate part of the mind? Won’t the situation be more or less the same
for anyone who brings its desires to a successful conclusion? He’s either ambitious, in
which case he’s motivated by resentment and seeks satisfaction in status; or he’s com-
petitive, in which case he relies on force and seeks satisfaction in success; or he’s bad-
tempered, in which case he resorts to anger and seeks satisfaction in angry outburst. But
none of these involve reason and intelligence.’
‘Again, yes, something like that’s bound to be the case,’ he said.
‘All right, then,’ I said. ‘Shall we confidently state that, where avarice and competitiveness
are concerned, any desire which succeeds in attaining its objective will get the truest
pleasure available to it when it is guided by truth, which is to say when it follows the
leadership of knowledge and reason in its quest for those pleasures to which intelligence
directs it? And shall we add that the pleasures it gets will also be the ones which are
particularly suitable for it—that is, if suitability and benefit coincide?’
‘Well, they do coincide,’ he said.
‘It follows that when the whole mind accepts the leadership of the philosophical part, and
there’s no internal conflict, then each part can do its own job and be moral in everything it
does, and in particular can enjoy its own pleasures, and thus reap as much benefit and
truth from pleasure as is possible for it.’
‘Exactly.’
‘When one of the other two parts is in control, however, it not only fails to attain its own
pleasure, but it also forces the other parts to go after unsuitable, false pleasures.’
‘Right,’ he agreed. (586c2–587a6)
Consequently, when passion and desire follow the lead of reason, they find their
fulfilled and healthy condition. We know this, because they then find pleasure in
all the right things. So, when reason leads the soul, each part of the soul receives
what it most truly needs; each part is healthy and in its best condition.51 And it is
51
See N. White (1979: 232, 233). See also Kelly (1989: 179), who argues that, since truth in this
argument is a matter not of correspondence of statement to fact but of approximation to the good,
pleasures can in this argument be ranked according to truth, and can be said to be more pleasant the
truer they are, since the truer they are the more they satisfy genuine human longing. Cf. Reeve (1988:
149), who claims that ‘Truth in pleasure is a matter of having the inanition that is a particular desire
134 Pleasure and Moral Psychology: Republic IV, IX
on this basis that Socrates argues that to think vice is beneficial to its possessor is,
it turns out, to think that a soul in utter chaos benefits its possessor (588b–592a).52
So not only are the pleasures of a virtuous or vicious life peculiar to that life,
since they consist in the construal of those lives as worth living—a point we saw
in the first pleasure argument—but they also differ in that the soul that enjoys
the wrong sort of life cannot enjoy it wholly. So, far from being commensurable,
then, the pleasures of lives of virtue and vice are indeed different psychological
constitutions, and only one of them is a constitution of integration and health.
Of course, to say that each part of the virtuous person’s soul is healthy and
enjoys its proper pleasures is not to say that each part of the virtuous soul always
‘feels good’.53 For one thing, virtue cannot stop us from being pained at torment
and desiring to be rid of it. For another, painful emotions such as regret or anger
may sometimes be part of an exercise of virtue.54 Rather, the philosopher and
non-philosopher alike will feel pain at torment, and the philosopher may even
experience pains such as regret when the non-philosopher does not. But the
reason that we can none the less ascribe genuine pleasure to the philosopher, and
the philosopher alone, is that his life is a unified whole: with reason leading, the
desires and emotions become transformed so as to be in unison and harmony
with the rational direction of the philosopher’s life. And it is this that makes it
sensible to claim that the philosopher’s life as a whole is a pleasure, because it is a
life lived to the full, with the whole self in harmony. Indeed, this unique way
of enjoying the virtuous life is a reflection of the wholeness and integration of
the virtuous soul. Again, then, these pleasures are not the source of the value of
the virtuous life, but are a reflection of its value. The pleasure one takes in one’s
life is a kind of view that one takes on the meaningfulness of one’s life and its
events and projects, and so that pleasure succeeds only where it follows the
direction of practical rationality, which alone encompasses the demands of every
part of our nature, and which is the agency by which one can give one’s whole
nature the sort of direction it needs to flourish.
Plato’s second pleasure argument strengthens the psychology underwriting
the defense of virtue for its own sake, because that argument is an articulation
filled with what always and unalterably instantiates the form that is the natural object of that desire.
But only reason knows what will truly satisfy appetite and aspiration, and how to reliably achieve it. It
follows that ‘‘those desires of even the money-loving and honour-loving parts which follow knowledge
and argument, and pursue with their help those pleasures which reason approves, will attain the truest
pleasures possible for them because they follow truth, and the ones that are most their own, if indeed
what is best for each thing is also most properly its own . . .’’ ’
52
And this mistake Plato compares poignantly to Eriphyle’s mistake of preferring a necklace to her
husband’s life (589e–590a, cp. Laws V, 727a–728a; Eriphyle forced her husband Amphiaraus into the
battle of the Seven Against Thebes, having been bribed by Polynices with a magic necklace). This point,
then, brings us back to the argument of book IV; for, as Annas (1981: 153) characterizes that
argument, ‘Once you see the difference between a life that gives all the elements in a person’s make-up
proper scope, and one that frustrates and misdirects them, you cannot seriously doubt that it is
valuable to have the state that ensures the former.’
53
I thank Scott LaBarge for raising this point.
54
For this point about regret, see esp. Hursthouse (1999), chs. 2 and 3.
Pleasure and Moral Psychology: Republic IV, IX 135
of the health of the virtuous person, which previously had been left rather
sketchy. In fact, both of the pleasure arguments are meant to articulate the
goodness of the virtuous person, understood as the health of the soul—and it
was the health of the soul that Socrates had not explained to his own satisfaction
earlier in book IV. For now Socrates has shown just what this goodness or
health consists in: it consists in each part of the soul finding completion and
fulfillment in the things appropriate to it, and in the whole soul endorsing and
engaging in the sort of life that really is best for it. When reason leads the way,
every part of the soul becomes fulfilled in its nature. We have evidence for this
in the fact that each part of the soul finds its own proper and beneficial pleasures
under the leadership of reason (586e–587a).55 If the pleasures of the virtuous
soul are evidence for its fulfillment, integration, and harmony, then we can
reasonably conclude that this kind of soul is the good soul—and we shall have
shown more fully just what its goodness is like. For each of the parts to find the
pleasures appropriate to it is for it to adopt the right sorts of concerns, as the
right sorts of concerns.
Consequently, Plato’s argument takes the form of showing that the life of
wisdom counts as happiness because of the way that wisdom transforms our
affections, and not that our affections so transformed are themselves responsible
for our happiness. The significance of showing that the virtuous life is also the
life of supreme pleasure is not that the life of supreme pleasure is happy. Its
significance is that the life of a flourishing human psyche—as observed in its
affective health—is the happy life. The life of virtue can be the happy life,
because it brings health to the rational and practical aspects of our life, as we see
in its possession of the virtues, and to the affective parts of our life, and thus is
holistic in the right kind of way for happiness.
55
It is thus important to distinguish the view I am attributing to Plato—that the pleasure of virtue
is relevant to demonstrating that virtue is itself a kind of psychic health—from the view that one has
reason to be virtuous out of a need to avoid psychic pains such as guilt (for a discussion of the latter
view see Kavka (1985: 305–7)). As Kavka notes, there may well be other ways of escaping such pains
(cf. Schmidtz (1995: 246)). The point for Plato is that it is the condition of the soul itself, and not the
pleasure or pain of it, that is to be pursued or avoided.
136 Pleasure and Moral Psychology: Republic IV, IX
are in the proper hierarchy (see especially 586a–587a).56 Since in his examina-
tion of various corrupt souls Socrates has shown that
(c1) if the hierarchy of parts is out of order, then some part is not in its good
condition
it follows that
(c) the hierarchy of parts is in order if and only if each part is in its good
condition.
And since the hierarchy of parts is right in the virtuous soul, and nowhere else, it
follows that
(d) the virtuous person alone has the right structure between the parts of the soul
and has each of the parts in its good condition.
By defending this thesis, and by articulating the nature of the good condition
of the soul and its parts, Plato has provided a powerful argument that it is virtue
that makes us well off. So far from being in tension with the argument begun
in Republic IV, then, the pleasure arguments of book IX complete that very
argument.
So not only does Plato raise an important question in the Republic but he also
gives the right answer, or at least the right sort of answer. For it is not an open
question whether it is health or sickness that is to be preferred, and in the same
way, it turns out, it is not an open question whether it is virtue or vice that is to
be preferred. Plato’s point is that in the virtuous person, and only in the virtuous
person, the soul is in its perfect, healthy, and fulfilled condition, both as a whole
and in each of its aspects; and the pleasures of the virtuous soul are evidence for
this health. If that is what it is to be virtuous, then to be virtuous just is to live
well, on the directive conception of happiness.
For Plato, virtue and vice are different constitutions of soul, and we can
evaluate them by determining which of them is identical to a psychologically
healthy, integrated, and thriving soul, and which to an unhealthy and twisted
one. Pleasure is relevant to this comparison, for one thing, because the ways in
which the different aspects of the soul find enjoyment in the world around them
is a key factor in the health or sickness of the soul. For another, to take pleasure
in one’s life as a whole is to judge one’s life to be genuinely rewarding
and satisfying, to be a truly happy life; and that judgment can be correct or
mistaken, and made from within a better or worse perspective. Plato’s defense of
virtue affords us an exciting avenue along which to reflect on how virtue benefits
its possessor, and in which considerations of pleasure figure in new and
refreshing ways.
What we have found is that the conception of pleasure and of its role in the
happy life that removes the apparent tension between the defense of the virtuous
life in Republic IV and the defense in Republic IX also affords a reading of the
Republic that keeps the directive conception of happiness intact. As in the
Phaedo, pleasure is here treated as a conditional good, but the Republic also
56
See also Irwin (1995: 294).
Pleasure and Moral Psychology: Republic IV, IX 137
humanity after all, but the moral importance of the practical intelligence with
which rational agents bring order and harmony to materials that cannot supply
such direction for themselves.
Unraveling likeness to God in Plato requires a fresh approach that makes the
greatest sense of it within Plato’s larger moral philosophy. And, in fact, we find
just such a promising understanding of likeness to God when we take a fresh
look at it through the lens of Plato’s Philebus, where we find the idea that virtue is
part of the divine realm right alongside the down-to-earth idea that virtue is
rational activity in relation to the world as we find it. We find the same idea, I shall
argue, in Stoic ethics as well, in a way that can reveal new options for under-
standing Plato’s conception of virtue as likeness to God. This is not to suppose
that the Stoic conception of likeness to God is an interpretation of, or descended
from, Plato’s conception.2 It is simply that the Stoics also found it helpful to think
of virtue as likeness to God, and it will be enough if the Stoic conception opens up
the range of possibilities for understanding such an idea, allowing us to see
philosophical alternatives that might take us some distance toward interpreting
Plato, and that may have remained otherwise out of view. Such an understanding
of the idea that virtue is likeness to God as we find in the Stoics, I argue, offers just
this sort of promising and unexplored alternative in Platonism—an alternative
that will allow us to see how wisdom can both be a form of likeness to God,
and rationally incorporate lives that are thoroughly human.
2
Nor do I suppose that the broader philosophical commitments of the Stoics are of a piece with
Plato’s; it is, of course, possible to find the treatment of an idea in one system illuminating for
understanding the idea in other, quite different philosophical systems (consider, e.g., Philo’s appeal in
De opificio mundi to the pagan account of the Timaeus to open up further possibilities for under-
standing the Hebrew God’s creative activities in Genesis). What I shall argue is that the consistency of
godlikeness with a this-worldly conception of virtue is apparent in Stoic thought, and also that the
Stoics and Plato establish such consistency in essentially the same sorts of ways. As for other dis-
continuities between Stoicism and Platonism, I shall leave them aside for present purposes, and offer
the promissory note that the discussion that unfolds will not be jeopardized by my doing so.
3
See esp. Phaedrus 246d, 248a, 249c; Timaeus 47c, cf. 89e–90d; Laws IV, 716b–d; Republic X,
613a–b; Theaetetus 176a–c; Phaedo 78b–84d (the ‘affinity argument’, which I discussed in Ch. 3);
Philebus 28c–30e.
4
See Alcinous, Handbook of Platonism 28 (and his rather odd reference to Phaedo 82a–b).
The Philebus: Part 1 141
revolutions of the god’ (47c2–4), that is, the god that is the universe itself (see
34a8–b9). For Plato, rationality, self-mastery, happiness, and knowledge all
converge as likeness to God (89e–90d).
Moral virtue as a harmonization of the self is, of course, familiar from the
Republic, and indeed Plato says in Republic X that to be virtuous is to liken
oneself to God as far as a human can (pithde¸wn ret
n efiv ¯son nqrp}
`moisqai qe, 613a8–b1), and that God takes good care of those who are like
him (613b2–3). Plato makes the point again in Laws IV, 716b–d, as the Athenian
claims that ‘the moderate man is God’s friend, being like him’ (` mn sfrwn
mØn qe f‹lov, ¯moiov gr, 716d1–2), and Plato says in the Theaetetus that
likeness to God consists in becoming pure and just with understanding
(`mo‹wsiv d d›kaion ka› ¯sion met fronsewv gensqai, 176b1–2; more on the
Theaetetus passage below). Clearly, in thinking of our final end as living a life of
likeness to God Plato does not mean this as an alternative to living a life of
virtue, but takes them to come to the same thing.10
But how could likeness to God give us any insight into moral virtue, really?
Being like God seems to suggest one’s being superior to the world yet displaced
and stuck in it, ‘among the mire and shit of the world’, in Montaigne’s colorful
phrase.11 Such a sense of displacement is far more naturally connected to
transcending, despising, and perhaps even escaping the world than it is to moral
virtue, which consists in how we live in the world: how we act with, desire, enjoy,
respond to, and treat the parts of the world that we find ourselves in—including
other people and their problems—and that we find in ourselves, such as our
pleasures, pains, and other passions.12 If being like God takes us beyond our
world, moral virtue—justice, courage, moderation, and so on—brings us right
back to it. So how can Plato take becoming like God to be moral virtue?
The problem is most palpable in the digression in the Theaetetus (172b–177c),
where Socrates openly portrays the philosopher as an outsider regarding human
life, from which he actually seeks his escape. The philosopher, Socrates says
there, grows up not knowing his way to the market-place, or the courthouse, or
most other places of public assembly. In fact, ‘the philosopher fails to see his
next-door neighbor; he not only doesn’t notice what he is doing; he scarcely
knows whether he is a man or some other kind of creature’ (174b1–4). Con-
sequently, the distinctions of kings, the wealthy, and the well-born mean no
more to him than the distinctions of farmers whose cows give plenty of milk
(174d–175b); worse, he does not even know how to make his bed or cook a tasty
meal (175e).
10
Indeed, this is exactly what Alcinous says, Handbook 28.1–2. Cf. Annas (1999: 53).
11
Montaigne (1993: 16). It is worth noting that Montaigne offers this foul depiction of our earthly
state—of our being ‘bound in the deadest, most stagnant part of the universe, in the lowest storey
of the building, the farthest from the vault of heaven’—as an antidote to the ‘presumption’—the
‘original distemper of Man’—that humans are, in virtue of their rational powers, part of the divine
or celestial realm.
12
On Plato’s apparent rejection of our worldly, human nature, and the problems with such a view,
see Annas (1999: 52 f.); Rue (1993: 86 f.).
The Philebus: Part 1 143
13
Not, of course, that such flat-footedness would be entirely novel, since some traditions after
the time of Plato have looked to passages such as this that can, without too much trouble, be made
to fit their otherworldly philosophies. For example as we saw in Ch. 3, the Neoplatonist Damascius
claims that one form of education makes the passions moderate, a higher makes one avoid the
passions, and the highest form—described in the Theaetetus—removes one’s very awareness of the
passions, as well as removing any awareness of that unawareness (Lectures on the Phaedo I.75). Of
course, between the fact that a passage can be made to fit a certain world-view and the claim that it
professes that world-view lies a significant argumentative gap—a far wider one than Damascius, in
particular, undertakes to fill.
14
Jaeger (1948: 426) suggests that the emergence of serious philosophers, who struck laypersons as
withdrawn and peculiar, is the main source of anecdotes in the ancient world about philosophers’
day-to-day lives, such as Plato’s anecdote about Thales at Theaetetus 174a. See also Aristotle,
Nicomachean Ethics VI.7, 1141b3–8: ‘This is why we say Anaxagoras, Thales, and men like them have
philosophic but not practical wisdom, when we see them ignorant of what is to their own advantage,
and why we say that they know things that are remarkable, admirable, difficult, and divine, but useless
[crhsta]; viz. because it is not human goods that they seek.’ The contrast between this passage
and Aristotle’s anecdote about Thales’ monopoly of the olive presses at Politics I.11, 1259a5–20—a
monopoly he acquired precisely in order to demonstrate the practical usefulness of philosophy,
Aristotle says—may also suggest that sharp tensions between such anecdotes were met with relatively
little discomfort in the ancient world.
15
This has led a number of scholars to conclude that the philosopher’s life that Plato discusses
cannot be the one that he himself thinks best, and is noticeably un-Socratic; see Berger, Jr. (1982:
385–407, esp. 386); Waymack (1985: 481–9, esp. 482–7); Rue (1993: esp. 78–82, 86, 87–100); Burnyeat
(1990: 35 f.); Annas (1999: 55).
144 The Philebus: Part 1
One way to reckon with this passage would be to play down, or cast aside, all of
this talk of escape and detachment as merely a wild—and unhelpful—metaphor,
but it would be most unfortunate if we could make sense of Plato’s fullest
discussion of so apparently important a theme only by giving it nothing to say,
passing over it in a polite but puzzled silence.16
So we seem to face a dilemma. On the one hand, if we take the Theaetetus
digression at what seems to be its face value and understand likeness to God as
an escapist ideal, then it becomes unpromising and unhelpful as a conception of
moral virtue.17 On the other, if we simply pass over the escapist elements, we
risk deflating likeness to God into little more than a vague cliché for ‘acting
well’,18 whereas Plato and his later tradition do take this idea to do real work.
Nor is it immediately clear how we could strike a middle ground between these
two approaches, since they fight for ‘psychological space and energy’, in Julia
Annas’s phrase.19
My point is not to show, heroically, that the Theaetetus passage is not
extraordinary after all. That would defeat the purpose: the lengths to which Plato
goes in imagery and language in this passage display a clear effort on his part to
grab our attention and focus it on a point that must be of particular importance
to him.20 And that makes it all the more important for us to understand just
what that point might be, once it is more fully developed than it is here. Looking
back on this passage, it is perhaps easy for us to assume that it is no more than
a predecessor of certain ascetic and escapist traditions with which we have since
become familiar. And perhaps it is no more than that. But, given the importance
16
Barker (1976: 458–60) also makes the very plausible suggestion that the philosopher is depicted
as non-public to underscore Plato’s rejection of the Protagorean thesis that justice and right are
wholly conventional notions, which have no meaning until a community specifies them for itself. The
public man thinks that he knows all about such things because he is an ‘insider’ with respect to the
conventions. But the philosopher comes to know these things as realities that are not dependent on
convention: ‘The philosopher, the man who seeks the true nature of things, is precisely not the man
who thinks that he can find the object of his quest in his immediate environment: he will not seek for
the good and the just among the decrees, laws, and customs of his city, nor for the nature of happiness
among the successes and failures of his state and his fellow citizens.’ Hence, since it is possible for
the philosopher to know the nature of justice without even knowing where the local courthouse is,
philosophical understanding of things like justice cannot take them to be purely conventional: the
philosopher’s ‘practice implies that there is, as he believes, a ‘‘true nature’’ of things to be discovered,
and not merely a set of conventions to be learned.’ I think that Barker is certainly right about this;
however, he does not discuss the treatment of moral virtue in the digression, and the associated
‘escape’ imagery, and so it remains difficult to understand likeness to God as a conception of moral
virtue, despite the significant illumination of the passage that Barker’s view affords.
17
See Annas (1999), ch. 3; Sedley (1997) and (1999: esp. 322–8).
18
See Annas (1999: 58 f., cf. 56 f.) for discussion of the problems of such deflationary readings of
likeness to God. Sedley (1999: 313 f.) seems to me to be in danger of deflating likeness to God in some
such way as this; but see also 315 f.
19
For this way of characterizing the tension see Annas (1999: 70 f.).
20
The fact that Plato would put such important ideas in the dialogue’s ‘digression’ does not, we
should notice, tell against their seriousness and importance; cf. Annas (1994b: 321 f.). Cp. the
‘digressions’ and ‘interruptions’ at Protagoras 341d–348a, where Socrates discusses his own view
of virtue and weakness of will—the central topic of the dialog, as it happens—and at Euthydemus
277d–283c, a seminal discussion of what skill one really needs in order to be happy.
The Philebus: Part 1 145
and interest the idea seems to have had for Plato, we need more than
assumptions to guide us.
Help awaits us along two quite under-explored avenues. First, likeness to God
appears also in the Philebus—a dialogue seldom consulted in this context—as a
way of dealing intelligently with the world as we find it, and there this idea is
anything but cliché. Second, in Seneca and other Stoics we find a down-to-earth
conception of virtue not only consistent with, but indeed illuminated by, the
idea that virtue makes one like God. Plato and Seneca each provide us with
a third way of understanding likeness to God, one that affords a new assessment
of likeness to God in the Theaetetus digression. Our greatest obstacle to under-
standing likeness to God is the natural assumption that we already know what it
means—that it is a spiritual ideal, rather than an ethical one. Seneca, and Plato
himself in the Philebus, show us another way.
21
Irwin (1995: 324 f.); cf. D. Frede (1993: xxxiv–xxxvi) and (1992: 428). Irwin’s account represents
a distinct improvement over earlier accounts, as in, e.g., Hackforth (1945: 42). See also Sayre (1987:
51–4, 61 f.), who considers the issue as one of dividing a continuum (sound, heat) into a calibrated
scale of values (pitch, degrees of temperature) according to a norm that provides a point of reference
for introducing limit (but see 54 f. for the claim that things in the unlimited class ‘have no specific
properties at all’, which Irwin rightly denies).
146 The Philebus: Part 1
division of being, which Plato calls the ‘mixture’ of unlimited and limit (25b–
26d, 27d–28a). Finally, Plato says that there must always be a ‘cause’ (the fourth
class) of such mixtures (26e–27c, 28a–31b), that is, something must be the cause
of limit being brought to the unlimited to generate a mixture, as when someone
boils the water for tea. A mixture is something proportionate and measured, and
so it must be the product of an intelligent cause.
Plato classifies reason as the cause of everything,22 since it causes limit to
come about in ‘unlimited’ things, making them into good, orderly products
(‘mixtures’). He arrives at this verdict about reason by arguing, first, that the
orderliness of the universe must be due to reason, which is king over heaven and
earth; and second that the human soul is dependent on, or an offshoot of, the
soul of the universe (29a–30b). Finally, since the human soul is wise and is
dependent on the soul of the universe, the universe’s soul must be responsible
for the wisdom of humans; so the soul of the universe must be wise, and this
wisdom of the universe’s soul manifests itself in the ordering of years, seasons,
and months (28c, d–e, 30c–e).
For present purposes we need not bother too much with the cosmology Plato
sketches here.23 But notice that Plato in the Philebus focuses on God as an
intelligent producer of rational order, and so the God we emulate in the Philebus
is primarily an agent and a cause of order. The point about emulation is an
important one: Socrates’ discussion is not an idle metaphysical speculation, but
is designed to show us something about the activity of God in bringing order to
the universe that he says is relevant to his immediate discussion of how rational
agents are to bring order to their passions (30d–31b):
You will therefore say that in the nature of Zeus there is the soul of a king, as well as a
king’s reason, in virtue of this power displayed by the cause, while paying tribute for other
fine qualities in the other divinities, in conformity with the names by which they like to be
addressed.
Very much so.
Do not think that we have engaged in an idle discussion here, Protarchus, for it comes as a
support for the thinkers of old who held the view that reason is forever the ruler over the
universe.
It certainly does.
It also has provided an answer to my query, that reason belongs to that kind which is the
cause of everything. . . . By now, dear friend, we have arrived at a satisfactory explanation
of the class that reason belongs to and what power it has.
Quite so.
And as to pleasure, it became apparent quite a while ago what class it belongs to.
Definitely.
22
Cp. Phaedo 97c: ‘it is, in fact, intelligence that orders and is the reason for every-
thing . . . intelligence in ordering all things must order them and place each individual thing in the
best way possible . . . ’.
23
Although it is worth noting the obvious parallels between this passage and the idea in the
Timaeus that the movements of heavenly bodies manifest and embody principles of intelligence (see
esp. Timaeus 46d–47c).
The Philebus: Part 1 147
Let us firmly keep it in mind about both of them, that reason is akin to cause and is part of
that family, while pleasure itself is unlimited and belongs to the kind that in and by itself
neither possesses nor will ever possess a beginning, middle, or end. (30d1–e1, 31a1–10)
Two things about Socrates’ discussion of reason as a cause are especially worth
noting for our purposes. One, reason and intelligence always belong in the class
of cause, both in us and in the universe arranged by God (29b–31a). Reason,
then, is what brings unlimited, inchoate matter into proper condition by
bringing order about in it. It does so by understanding what proper order,
proportion, and limit are, and directing our behavior toward it. And two, the
virtuous activity of a human being consists in bringing such order and limit into
the inchoate materials of the self, such as one’s desires, emotions, feelings, and
pleasures, which belong to the ‘unlimited’ class. Thus humans have virtues in so
far as they use wisdom and reason to bring order to unlimited matter that is, in
the first instance, internal to themselves, such as one’s passions and desires; and
the virtues are this ordering of the aspects of one’s self according to wisdom and
reason (see 64e).
Plato takes these observations to suggest an important difference between the
value of reason, on the one hand, and the value of things like pleasure, on the
other. Pleasure left to its own devices, as it were, does not bring about the order
and direction that one’s life needs, and does not make one place value in the
things one should as one should, and may just as well do quite the opposite. In
fact, Plato claims that pleasure on its own gives one’s life no direction or shape
whatsoever, such that a life ‘directed’ by pleasure alone would be like that of a
shellfish (21c), aimless, empty, and anything but human.24 For this reason,
pleasure as such has no power to make life good. Here Plato returns to the point
that he had made about such goods in the Euthydemus, namely that they are
‘undifferentiated’: on its own, pleasure is neither good nor bad—productive of
neither happiness nor misery—because on its own it has no particular direction
at all.25 What does have the power to make life good, rather, is the intelligence or
wisdom with which one acts in relation to such things. For this reason, reason
and intelligence as cause (26e ff.), and thus moral virtue, are productive of
goodness, and therefore are what makes the good life good.26 Intelligence, then,
is both differentiated, having its own direction toward our good, and differen-
tiating, as it brings that direction to other things which, like pleasure, lack a
direction of their own. Here, too, Plato returns to the thesis in the Euthydemus
that only wisdom is genuinely good, other things becoming good only as wis-
dom leads and directs (or ‘uses’) them.
Consequently, when Socrates comes at the end of the Philebus to a ranking of
goods, he argues that the goodness that obtains in the organization of a good life
is the chief good, since it is responsible for the goodness of that life, in virtue of
24
I thank an anonymous referee for the Journal of the History of Philosophy for pointing out this
25
connection. I discuss this sense of ‘undifferentiated’ in Ch. 1.
26
For an excellent discussion of this thesis and its connection to Plato’s value schema, see
Bobonich (1995: 118–34).
148 The Philebus: Part 1
being what its goodness consists in. Next, since all reason is more akin to
goodness than pleasure is, Socrates ranks reason as a whole ahead of pleasure,
and pleasure is admitted into the good life only in so far as reason as a whole
permits (59d ff., 64c ff.). Plato’s point is that the contributions that reason and
pleasure make to the good life are different in kind, one being what does the
work of making a good life a good life; the other being that in relation to which
it does it this work.27 Consequently, they are different kinds of goods, playing
radically different roles in the synthesis of a good life.
Notice now that this view of how humans use reason to bring limit to the
‘matter’ of their souls puts the Philebus right in line with the view that our final
end is likeness to God. For it is clear in the discussion of intelligence that human
reason is continuous with divine reason, that our activity of bringing order to
unlimited matter through reason is continuous with divine activity, and that it is
with this aspect of ourselves that we are to identify. The concept of likeness to
God is especially important in the Philebus, since it is also a dialogue in which the
good life that is discussed is emphatically and explicitly a human life, as opposed
to an otherworldly one: it is, after all, for precisely this reason that Plato rejects
both the life of pleasure alone—the life of a shellfish—and the life of reason
alone as serious candidates for human happiness (see 20c–22e, 60c–61a).28 On
Plato’s view, humans seek likeness to God by seeking wisdom, but we seek
likeness to God not as gods, but as the humans that we are,29 and in the Philebus
he clearly takes this to mean seeking likeness to God in a way that incorporates
human pleasures and passions.30
That the good life discussed in the Philebus is emphatically human is worth
noting for several reasons. For one thing, it is, of course, true that the question
whether some way of life is most like the life that the gods actually live is a
different question indeed from whether some way of life is the life most like the
life that the gods actually live and is possible for us to live. It is surely significant
that in speaking of likeness to God as a way of understanding the good human
life, Socrates regularly adds exactly the latter sort of rider.31 And, indeed, the
subsequent discussion in the dialogue makes it quite clear that Plato has fairly
little interest in the most divine life simpliciter as a candidate for the most divine
27
Arius Didymus (Stobaeus, Anthology II.5b) makes a similar distinction between the ‘primary’
good, which is virtue, and ‘secondary’ goods which include (are?) those parts of our affective life that
are transformed by virtue. I shall discuss this passage below.
28
It is worth noting that on Plato’s view—and especially his rejection of the life of reason without
pleasure as a candidate for happiness—pleasure turns out to be necessary for happiness. We shall
return to this issue, and its relation to wisdom’s claim to be the unique determinant of happiness, in
the next chapter.
29
Cf. Ficino, The Philebus Commentary I.30, who in his discussion of the desirability (expetendum)
of the good refers to the view of Dionysius the Areopagite, that ‘all things seek God’s likeness [Dei
similitudinem], each in its own way: . . . those which understand [intelligunt] in accordance with the
understanding [secundum intelligentiam].’
30
Simply put, if Plato’s considered view is that the best human life is one devoid of all pleasure,
then the Philebus is a most odd dialogue for him to have written.
31
See, e.g., Republic 613b1 (‘as much like a god as a human can’, (efiv ¯son nqrp} `moiosqai
qe), Theaetetus 176b1–2 (‘as like God as possible’, `mo‹wsiv qe kat t¿ d¸naton).
The Philebus: Part 1 149
life for us. For this reason, when Plato maintains that the life of reason alone,
devoid of any pleasure or pain, may be ‘the most godlike’ life of all, since the
gods experience no pleasure or pain (33b), he none the less gives us no reason to
adopt an escapist or ascetic conception of likeness to God, or to think that we
should therefore seek to experience no pleasure or pain, or as little as possible.
From the fact that, as Plato says, a life of no pleasure and no pain is the most
godlike life simpliciter, it does not follow that such a life is the most godlike life
for us to live. What does follow, however, is that the life centered on pleasure is
lived for the sake of something that is excluded from the most godlike life
simpliciter, so that a human life centered on reason is more godlike than one
centered on pleasure.32 And, in fact, this is all that Socrates says—and all that
he needs to say—in taking his observation as a point in favor of the life he
recommends and against the life that Protarchus recommends—it is, he says, ‘an
additional point in favor of reason in the competition’ against pleasure for the
title of our chief good (33b11–c3).
Moreover, we should make explicit an interesting discontinuity between a
human’s activity of bringing order to matter and that sort of activity on the part
of a god. Pleasure, we have seen, is a paradigmatic sort of ‘matter’ of the soul in
which a human is to bring order, but of course the gods experience no pleasures
at all (33b),33 and this illustrates the more general point that the inchoate matter
that a human brings order to is (in the first instance) within himself, whereas the
inchoate matter to which the gods bring order must be understood as being
always distinct from the gods themselves. This is an important difference to
note, but, of course, it is still useful to understand human rationality is to be
understood as of a piece with God’s creative activity, in so far as they are both
cases of transforming matter, which is not capable of transforming itself, into an
orderly whole. Plato recommends not that we live the life of a god but that we
live the life that is the most godlike of those that are possible for us considered as
human beings. We are like God in so far as we follow intelligent principles to
bring ‘matter’—in our case, our very selves—into an orderly whole.
Likeness to God in the Philebus, then, consists in divine reason bringing about
order and structure in matter, and likeness to God as a conception of virtue
consists in bringing about this order in the matter of our lives and our selves, such
as our pleasures, desires, and passions. Moreover, the reason with which we act
in relation to matter is, for Plato, good in its very nature—unconditionally and
intrinsically good—unlike the matter on which reason acts, and which depends on
the leadership of reason for its goodness. This already is a substantive conception
of likeness to God as practical rationality, rather than a bland and cliché one.
And it is through this conception that we can see how likeness to God can also be
a kind of transcendence or even ‘escape’; that it is possible to weave these two
strands together is clear in Seneca’s thought about likeness to God.
32
On my way of reading them, then, the Phaedo and Philebus are in line on this point.
33
But con. Phaedrus 247d. Plato’s view on this issue seems to be somewhat fluid from dialogue
to dialogue.
150 The Philebus: Part 1
34
This is, in fact, the common starting-place for otherwise very dissimilar ethical theories in
35
Hellenistic philosophy; see Cicero, de Finibus V.17–18. Diogenes Laertius, Lives VII.85.
36
See also M. Frede (1986: 108 f.).
The Philebus: Part 1 151
37 38
See Diogenes Laertius, Lives VII.86–7. Cicero, de Finibus III.20–3.
39
For an excellent discussion of this process in Stoic philosophy, see Engberg-Pederson (1986).
40 41
Cicero, de Finibus III.22–3. Cicero, de Finibus III.21.
152 The Philebus: Part 1
depends on them, as if they had their own power with respect to happiness or
unhappiness.
And this marks the difference between practical rationality and everything
else: only practical rationality is intrinsically, unconditionally good with respect
to happiness, and thus differentiated as a good in its nature—because of its ‘own
character and value’—needing nothing else to differentiate it as a good. This is
because on the Stoic view virtue is essentially active, and it is because of its
unique active power with respect to happiness that it is the only thing good in its
nature. The Stoics define goodness not as a property but as a power—the power
to benefit and improve—and only virtue is ‘such as to benefit’, not depending
on how it is used but in virtue of what it is itself.42 This power to benefit is
understood as the power to make one’s life happy and flourishing, and the Stoics
maintain that nothing but virtue has this power:
The virtues . . . are good; and their opposites . . . are bad; neither good nor bad are those
things which neither benefit nor harm . . . For just as heating, not cooling, is a property of
the hot, so benefiting, not harming, is a property of the good; but wealth and health do not
benefit any more than they harm; therefore, neither wealth nor health is good. . . . To
benefit is to change or maintain something in accordance with virtue, while to harm is to
change or maintain something in accordance with vice. (Diogenes Laertius, Lives
VII.102, 103, 104)
Furthermore, it seems that the Stoics also saw this power as involving what we
have called rational incorporation. Interestingly, Arius Didymus also allows
certain features of the virtuous person—‘joy and good spirits and confidence
and wish and such things’43—to count as good things as well, despite the fact
that they are not virtues, but he goes on to point out that only virtue is good in
the proper or ‘primary’ sense, which he identifies as goodness as a source of
benefit and that which is ‘such as to benefit’, while joy and good spirits are good
things in the secondary sense of dimensions of the psyche transformed by virtue.
This way of understanding the relationship between virtue and the other aspects
of our lives is also apparent in Arius Didymus’ discussion of ‘mixed’ and
‘unmixed’ goods:44 whereas knowledge is an unmixed good, because it takes
nothing in addition to knowledge to make knowledge beneficial, such things as
the ‘virtuous possession of children’ and the ‘virtuous use of old age’ are mixed
goods, since it takes the leadership of knowledge, or virtue, to make one’s
relation to one’s children, one’s old age, and even one’s death a good thing, that
is, to make oneself good where they are concerned:
Only the virtuous man has good children, though not all have virtuous children since it is
necessary for him who has good children to use them as such. Only the virtuous man has a
good old age and a good death; for a good old age is conducting oneself virtuously at a
42
See Diogenes Laertius, Lives VII.94, 102–4; Stobaeus, Anthology II.5d.
43
Stobaeus, Anthology II.5b; see also Diogenes Laertius, Lives VII.116–17. I shall return to these
‘good affections’—the e˝pqeiai—below.
44
Stobaeus, Anthology II.5m; see also Diogenes Laertius, Lives VII.98.
The Philebus: Part 1 153
certain age, and a good death is to make one’s end virtuously with a certain kind of
death. (Stobaeus, Anthology II.11q)
Here the idea is unmistakable: to have a good old age or a good death is not to make
the age or the death itself a good thing, but to make one’s behavior good with respect
to old age or death. Likewise, to have good children is not to have children of a
certain sort, but to ‘use’ them in a virtuous manner—to ‘use’ them in Plato’s sense
(Euthydemus 281b), which is to make one’s behavior virtuous where one’s children
are concerned.45 Virtue, then, is what benefits, and things like joy, good spirits,
confidence, wish, and the like are things in respect of which virtue is a benefit.
This is, of course, what we mean by rational incorporation: virtue brings
about goodness in other things with no goodness of their own, by bringing the
right kind of direction and order to one’s life where those things are concerned.
Consequently, for the Stoics, virtue is a disposition of the soul in agreement with
Nature, inasmuch as it is the whole soul is in accordance with right reason, as it
is our nature to be.46 Thus virtue is what brings order and harmony to our lives,
allowing us to live well, by acting rationally with respect to all of the concerns of
life. Since it is virtue which brings order to our lives, and not the concerns that
virtue orders—only virtue, that is, has the power to make a life a good life—it is
virtue that is our good. Other things in our life may be worth preferring, but
they cannot make us happy just by their very presence; we must incorporate
them into our lives in rational ways. Virtue is a special part of our lives because it
is that which does the rational incorporating.47
Thus for the Stoics only rationality is good, and so while virtue acts in regard
to the things we normally regard as good and bad things, it is itself worth living
for even if we do not achieve the goals we seek with respect to other things;48 or,
as Plato puts it, wisdom is all the good fortune one will ever really need. This is
why the Stoics place all value on acting rationally, whatever one’s lot, rather than
on what one’s lot happens to be. This is a common refrain in Stoicism, and
especially in Epictetus:
‘Go and salute Mr. So-and-so.’ ‘All right, I salute him.’ ‘How?’ ‘Not in an abject fashion.’
‘But you were shut out.’ ‘That’s because I haven’t learned how to enter through the
window. And when I find the door shut against me, I must either go away or enter through
the window.’ ‘But speak with the man too!’ ‘I did so.’ ‘How?’ ‘Not in an abject fashion.’
‘But you did not succeed.’—Now surely that was not your business, but his. So why do
you encroach on what concerns someone else? If you always remember what is yours and
what concerns someone else, you will never be disturbed. (Discourses II.6.6–8)
Epictetus does not think there is anything wrong with trying to win another
person’s favor, but the important thing to remember, he tells us, is that the
45
This is, I suspect, also the force behind the Stoic idea that among ‘external goods’ are having a
virtuous friend and a virtuous fatherland (Diogenes Laertius, Lives VII.95), but I shall not press the
46
point here. See Diogenes Laertius, Lives VII.89; Stobaeus, Anthology II.5b7.
47
See Diogenes Laertius, Lives VII.102–4. I shall discuss the notion of rational incorporation
48
within Stoicism further in the next chapter. Cicero, de Finibus V.20, with V.18.
154 The Philebus: Part 1
ultimate goal of this exercise is not to gain a certain outcome but to act in a
rational, self-respecting way, whatever the outcome—that is the goal of this
exercise, as it is always the goal of every exercise at the end of the day.49 For this
is what valuing one’s rationality for its own sake consists in, and that is to live in
accordance with Nature, which is happiness.
As if echoing the Philebus, then, the Stoics claim that virtue is the rationality
with which we act well in relation to all of our various concerns, and that
rationality alone is the source of the unifying goodness of our lives. Nothing else
has the value of rationality and virtue because nothing else is the source of all
goodness. In the terms of the Philebus, those things are ‘unlimited’, the inchoate
matter of intelligent action. They have no power of their own, therefore, to make
our lives go well. Only virtue has that power, and so only virtue is our good.
The distinction between things good in their nature and things not, is a
distinction between what is an active producer and source of goodness in one’s
life, and what is a passive recipient in need of such a source. Here the Stoics and
Plato agree, the Stoics identifying virtue with that which is such as to benefit by
bringing the whole self into harmony with our rational nature, and Plato
identifying virtue with a kind of reason that brings order to the otherwise
undifferentiated matter of the whole self. Perhaps it is not so surprising, then,
that the Stoics also glossed their conception of virtue, and the culmination of our
divine nature as rational beings, as a form of likeness to God: to live according to
virtue, they say, is to live in accordance with right reason—that is, to live in
accordance with Zeus, which is the same as living rationally and engaging in
reasonable behavior.50 We see this even more clearly in Seneca’s Letters to
Lucilius 92, where he writes:
You and I are at one, I assume, in holding that externals are acquired for the sake of the
body, the body is tended out of respect for the soul, and that the agencies of the soul which
direct motion and sustenance are given us for the sake of the essential soul. The essential
49
It is this point that is reflected in the Stoic distinction between things we ‘choose’ (the ultimate
goal) and the things we ‘select’ (proximate goals); see Cicero, de Finibus III.22.
50
See Diogenes Laertius, Lives VII.87–8. Cp. the discussion of Philebus 33b, above. The same point
can be made if we consider two selections from Cleanthes’ writings on Zeus. The first is from his
so-called ‘Hymn to Zeus’ (SVF 1.537), in which he says, ‘Nor does any deed occur on earth without
you, god . . . For thus you have fitted together all good things with the bad, so that there is one eternal
rational principle for them all—and it is this which the wicked flee from and neglect . . . ’ (trans.
Inwood and Gerson (1997)). At first blush we might think that there is a simple contradiction here: all
things happen ‘with’ Zeus, and yet some things—the wicked things—happen ‘without’ Zeus, inas-
much as the wicked flee Zeus. However, Epictetus (Enchiridion 53) preserves a fragment of another of
Cleanthes’ hymns to Zeus that sheds some light on this: ‘Lead me, O Zeus, and you O Fate, to
whatever place you have assigned me; I shall follow without reluctance, and if I am not willing to,
because I have become a bad man, nevertheless I will follow’ (trans. Inwood and Gerson (1997)). Here
we can see that there are two senses in which things are done ‘with’ (and ‘without’) Zeus: in one sense,
Zeus is the totality of all that happens, or Fate, and in this sense all things that are done are done with
Zeus; in another sense, Zeus is right reason, and thus only the rational do things with Zeus in this
sense. Consequently, the Stoics distinguish between the leadership of Zeus as a primarily metaphysical
notion and as a distinctly ethical one, and understand rationality or virtue as following the leadership
of Zeus in the latter sense. (For a discussion of the problems that result from construing our goal as
living according to cosmic nature, see Annas (1994a), ch. 5.)
The Philebus: Part 1 155
soul has an irrational factor and also a rational. The irrational serves the rational and is the
one element which is not referred to something else but refers all things to itself.51 For the
divine reason, too, is sovereign over all things, and subordinate to none, and our reasons
possesses the same quality because it is derived from the divine. (92.1)52
Notice that rationality has this sovereign value because rationality is divine, and
thus is the divinity in human nature. Consequently, to be a fully rational human
being is to be like God:
But where ‘virtue and spirit are present in his frame’ [Aeneid 5.363] a man is equal to the
gods [hic deos aequat]. He remembers his origin and makes it his goal.53 It is never wrong
to attempt to regain the heights from which you have descended. Why should you not
believe that there is an element of the divine in what is part of god? The totality in which
we are contained is one, and it is god; and we are his partners [socii sumus eius] and his
members. Our spirit is capacious, and its direction is toward god, if vices do not press it
down. Just as our bodily posture is erect and looks toward heaven, so our soul, which may
reach outward at will, was fashioned by Nature to desire equality with the gods [ut paria
dis vellet]. And if it utilizes its powers and expands outward into its own reaches, it is by no
alien path that it makes its way to the heights. A pioneer journey to heaven is a great task;
the soul is retracing its path. When it has found its road it marches boldly on, disregarding
all distinctions. It casts no backward glance at riches, gold and silver, which are most
appropriate to the darkness in which they had been buried, the soul values not by the
glitter which overwhelms the eyes of the ignorant, but by the primal muck from which our
greed separated them and dug them out. (92.30–1)
For Seneca, the soul is descended from an originally divine state, retains this
divinity in rationality, and is properly directed at regaining this divinity through
the pursuit of rationality for its own sake. And since this rationality is the same
as virtue, in becoming virtuous one becomes like God. Moreover, in this passage
Seneca is at pains to make it clear that in becoming like God one is not
becoming some other kind of being than what Nature has made one to be.
Rather, one becomes the true fulfillment of what our nature is—a rational
being.54
51
This language seems surprisingly Platonic for a Stoic; but see, e.g., Galen, On Hippocrates’ and
Plato’s Doctrines 5.6.34–7 for a similar bifurcation in the soul by Cleanthes, who depicts reason and
passion as personified and engaged in debate. Pace Galen, however, there seems to be no reason to
take this to be in tension with the ‘standard’ Stoic account—such as Chrysippus’—of a wholly unified
soul, and Cleanthes’ fictitious conversation seems designed to do little more than show the opposition
between the good reasons we entertain at some times and the bad reasons we entertain at other times
(see Annas (1992), ch. 5). This is the way to understand Seneca’s language here, too.
52
Translations of letter 92 are from Hadas (1958).
53
Cp. Timaeus 90d, where Timaeus claims that cultivating one’s rationality amounts to returning
to the original condition of the soul.
54
It is interesting to note, however, that at least one Stoic seems to have thought that in trying to
make choices that are rational one should think not about God but about some wise human. As
Epictetus writes, when you are going into association with anyone, especially with a superior, you
should ‘set before your mind the question, what would Zeno or Socrates have done?’; and similarly, ‘If
you are not yet Socrates, you still ought to live as one who wishes to be Socrates.’ (Epictetus,
Enchiridion 33, 51, trans. Passmore (1970: 60), who brings out this point well.) But, of course, this
does not compete with the Stoic idea that the formal structure of rationality is likeness to God: what
156 The Philebus: Part 1
But, we may ask, while Seneca too may understand virtue or rationality as our
likeness to God, surely he can mean nothing so radical by this as Plato does? And
surely he avoids the sorts of ‘escapist’ refrains we find in the Theaetetus? Quite
the contrary:
When the soul has raised itself to this sublimity it regards the necessary burden of the body
not as a lover but as a steward, and it does not submit to its ward. No man that serves his
body is free. Even if you pass over the other masters that excessive solicitude for the body has
contrived, its own lordliness is imperious and touchy. From the body the soul springs forth,
now calmly and now with elation, and never thereafter does it ask what is to befall the husk
that it has left behind. Just as we are unconcerned about the clippings of beard and hair, so
upon its departure from man’s mortal frame the divine soul judges that its receptacle’s final
destiny—whether fire shall consume it, or stone shut it in, or earth cover it, or beasts rend
it—is of no more relevance than the afterbirth is to a newborn child. (92.33–4)
Taking virtue as valuable for its own sake, Seneca says, has radical implications
for the sort of priorities that one has. Seneca here shows that the virtuous
recognize that their happiness does not depend on the things—wealth, finery,
and even physical survival—that most people take to be have some power of
their own to make one happy. This finds its most radical expression in the
Stoics’ confidence in the face of even death itself, which is simply a moving on to
what one has been preparing for,55 just as we do not consider a newborn infant’s
loss of the afterbirth to be a real loss, but a natural part of maturing to which one
must adjust.
Note also that, for Seneca, valuing rationality for its own sake is not in conflict
with being a part of the world as one finds it, but rather is the only rational way
to be just such a part:
‘Well, then,’ says the opposition, ‘if virtue is not impeded by good health and repose and
freedom from pain, will you not seek these things?’ Of course I shall, not, however,
because they are goods but because they are in accordance with nature and because I shall
avail myself of them judiciously. And what good will they involve? Simply this: proper
choice. When I put on clothing that is appropriate, when I walk as I should, when I dine as
becomes me, it is not the dinner or the walk or the clothing that are good but my own
program of observing in every act a measure which conforms to reason. I must add that
choice of becoming clothing is a desideratum, for man is by nature a tidy and well-
groomed animal. Becoming clothing is therefore not a good per se, but the choice of
becoming clothing is; the good lies not in the thing but in the quality of selection. Our
modes of action, not the things we do, are honorable. (92.11–12)
For Seneca, then, likeness to God is not in competition with bringing about
goodness and order in our world, but just is that. Indeed, even thinking about
likeness to God as a way of escaping the world is not, for Seneca, an alternative
to being an active part of the world. It is rather his way of understanding what it
being a fully rational being consists in, and what is the best method or heuristic for finding what
would be rational in my present situation, are different questions.
55
Cp. Phaedo 64a ff.
The Philebus: Part 1 157
is to be an active part of the world in a mature, rational way; for only those who
learn to value the rationality with which they act for its own sake are mature as
rational beings.
So in Seneca we find the strands that we also find in Plato’s conception of
likeness to God, and Seneca’s weaving them together expands our options for
understanding likeness to God. In Seneca, virtue is practical rationality, which is
something transcendent and part of our divine nature, but it is also the essence
of our humanity, and of good human action in the world as we find it. The point
for Seneca is not that we should seek to leave our mortal existence in favor of a
divine existence. The point is that only a certain set of priorities and values that
underlie a person’s action with respect to the materials of the world is a mature
set, that is, mature for persons understood as rational creatures.
Seneca’s discussion of likeness to God not only opens up further possibilities for
understanding that idea but also opens up possibilities for understanding what
work that idea might be doing in Plato. For one thing, Seneca shows that the idea
that virtue consists in likeness to God does not entail that virtue is unworldly and
escapist, and thus outrageous.56 Virtue involves not fleeing from, but bringing
order to, one’s life, as we see also in the Philebus and even the Timaeus; and this
means having a radically changed set of priorities and values in dealing with the
matter of one’s life, as we see in the Theaetetus. Moreover, these aspects of virtue
are united, as Seneca makes clear, in so far as only the person who acts rationally
for its own sake with respect to the matter of his life is a fully mature, rational
person, and thus like God and prepared to join the company of God.
For another, the idea that virtue is likeness to God does not thereby become
bland and cliché. Seneca and other Stoics show that virtue as likeness to God is
consistent with the idea that virtue is the rationality one displays in action,
without making likeness to God merely a dispensable restatement of that idea.
Describing virtue in this way adds to our understanding of virtue. It underscores
the value of virtue for its own sake, and thus the radical extent to which the
virtuous person’s priorities are revised. It allows us to see that virtue is both
concerned with, and superior to, the things in relation to which virtue acts, and
that only by valuing virtue for its own sake do we really identify with our nature
and mature as rational persons.
Moreover, while the Stoics believe that only our practical rationality can make
us happy—for it is unique in being that which brings order and harmony to all
the aspects of our lives—and therefore that pleasure does not make us happy,
needing as it does the direction of reason, they also believe that a healthy
affective life is a necessary constituent of the happy life, or the life of wisdom, as
Plato too insists in the Philebus. Our affections are not, in other words, aspects of
ourselves that our rationality finds distasteful, even if rationality is understood as
likeness to a god without those affections; rather, for us our affections are
56
See also Lovibond (1991: 55), who understands likeness to God to be equivalent to becoming
truly human.
158 The Philebus: Part 1
potential aspects of our very rationality. We can see this in the Stoic theory of
‘good affections’57 (e˝pqeiai), and in particular in the good affection of ‘joy’
(car).58 The Stoics distinguish good affections from ‘emotions’ or ‘passions’
(pqh), which are unreasonable affective responses that attribute the wrong sorts
of values to the things the responses concern.59 ‘Pleasure’ (don), for the Stoics,
is a technical term for an unreasonable response that takes its object to be the
sort of good which, in fact, it is not, unlike joy which is a reasonable, realistic
affective response. Moreover, for the Stoics joy and pleasure are not simply
better and worse forms of the same affective condition, but are, in fact, different
kinds of affective conditions. For example, on the Stoic view a person who
believes that wealth is a key to happiness will have a very different kind of
affective or emotional life where wealth is concerned, from that of a person who
does not place that kind of value on wealth. As we saw in the previous chapter,
the pleasure of a mercenary life is not the same kind of thing as the pleasure of
an ambitious life, as if pleasure were some one thing differing only in the sources
from which different people obtain it. Rather, each one’s pleasure is a complex
of various patterns: of emotional response, of desire and satisfaction, of prior-
itizing and valuing and striving, and thus too of how one’s affective nature
responds to different kinds of reasons. It is with good reason, then, that the
Stoics staunchly deny that pleasures that are unreasonable affective responses,
and joys that are reasonable, are simply two versions of what is still just one
thing. On the Stoic view, it makes little sense to say that these are two forms of
the same affective response,60 for in that case, a person’s affective life would have
to be considered in isolation from his character and values, in order to maintain
that people of characters different in kind do not so differ in their affective lives;
but it seems clear that having a certain affective life is, in fact, part of what it is to
have a certain kind of character.61 For the Stoics, then, joy is not merely the same
57
Unfortunately, there is no completely happy translation of e˝pqeiai that I know of. The best
phrase would be ‘good emotions’, if ‘emotion’ were not so common a rendering of the Stoic term of
art for irrational affective states (pqh); ‘good feelings’ also suggests itself, but ‘feelings’ is suggestive of
non-cognitive states, whereas the Stoics hold the e˝pqeiai as well as the emotions to be kinds of
beliefs (for the distinction in Stoic thought between an emotion and the feeling associated with it, see
M. Frede (1986: 102 f.)). I have therefore opted for ‘good affections’ as merely a less unsatisfactory
rendering than most alternatives. For further discussion of the e˝pqeiai, see Ch. 3.
58
Diogenes Laertius, Lives VII.116–17. For a good overview of the Stoic theory of emotions, see
Annas (1992: 113–15).
59
Diogenes Laertius, Lives VII.110–15; Stobaeus, Anthology II.10–10e; Galen, On the Doctrines
of Hippocrates and Plato 4.2.9–18, 4.4.16–18, 24–5, 4.5.21–5.
60
And indeed this seems to me just the right conclusion to reach. Consider, e.g., the difference in
kind between the pleasure one person may derive from playing the piano as a way of connecting with
other people, and the pleasure another person derives from playing the piano as a way of withdrawing
from people. (I thank Mark Kanaga for the example.) It is good to see, as do the Stoics—and, as I
argued in the previous chapter, and shall again in the next, as does Plato—that the most philo-
sophically interesting pleasures always obtain under some description, and that differences in
descriptions are differences in the pleasures.
61
Moreover, the Stoics maintain that all ‘impulses’ (including pqh and e˝paqe·ai) are forms of
belief—assent to appearance—and that pqh are false beliefs and e˝paqe·ai true beliefs; and, of
course, a true belief is not a variety of false belief, or a false belief held in the right kind of way.
The Philebus: Part 1 159
affective state as pleasure, only ‘reigned in’,62 but is a wholly different kind of
attitude and way of attributing value to things in the world than pleasure is; for
this reason, they say that ‘joy and good spirits and the like’ are the necessary
concomitants of virtue.63 The Stoic sage is not one who has become sterile,
insensitive, and unfeeling,64 but one who has adopted a new affective life that
reflects the mature perspective of practical reason. In other words, joy is an
essential component of virtuous character and human rationality.
This fact about the Stoic theory of good affections is instructive for our
purposes, for at least a couple of reasons. For one thing, it shows that taking
likeness to God seriously as a conception of virtue does not entail any form of
asceticism. And the reason that that entailment fails to hold is particularly
illuminating of the idea of ‘rational incorporation’ of pleasure (joy) into the
good life: to incorporate pleasure into one’s life in a rational way is not to treat
one’s need for pleasure as an evil, even a necessary one, but to become healthy
and fulfilled as an affective, feeling, fully human being. Notice, too, that the Stoic
conception of joy as part of good character illuminates how it is possible to
maintain, as Plato also does, both that virtue alone is what makes one happy,
and that pleasure (or ‘joy’, in the Stoic vocabulary) is an important part of the
happy life: in both Plato and the Stoics, realizing health and order in one’s
affective life is a crucial part of what it is to be a person of virtue, and thus of
what it is to live the life of a person of virtue.65
from earth to heaven where there is no evil; and making such an escape is what it
means to become ‘as like God as possible’. Now, Socrates certainly does believe
that the philosopher’s escape is an escape from the world and a flight to heaven,
but what exactly does such an escape amount to? From what about the world is
it an escape? And to what about heaven is it a flight? As we have seen, many
readers—ancient and modern—have assumed that this escape is an escape from
the concerns and affairs of the world, and a flight to a position of complete
detachment from the things and people around us. What Socrates says quite
clearly, however, is that this escape is an escape from the world’s evil, and a flight
to justice, purity, and intelligence. Therefore, we should expect an account of
becoming like God to be an account of how a person who becomes like God
comes to avoid evil by embracing moral virtue in an intelligent way.
And this is exactly what we do find, once we avail ourselves of the Stoic
conception of godlikeness as a viable option for our interpretation of likeness to
God in Plato. Becoming like God, for Plato as well as the Stoics, is not a matter
of refusing to handle the messy stuff of the world, but a matter of handling
it with a new set of values and priorities. A person who becomes like God will
still acquire and use money, for example, but will place more importance on
the rationality with which the money is used than on the money itself. And this
must be the case, since rationality, on the one hand, and things like money, on
the other, play such radically different roles in one’s life, one’s attitude toward
money being among the undifferentiated matter with respect to which ration-
ality benefits us by leading and directing it intelligently. A godlike person, then,
will be thrifty rather than mean or prodigal, and such a person would never
seek wealth dishonestly—such a person would never be so foolish as to trade
character for money.66 This person, then, lives and acts in the world, and does
so in a way that transcends it: this person has made an escape—an escape from
evil, from pettiness, envy, meanness, prodigality, thievery, petulance—and a
flight to healthy and reasonable priorities where money is concerned. In other
words, this person has taken some of the inchoate matter of the world as she
finds it and has brought order, reason, and proportion to it. If she can bring
about this kind of intelligent order in all areas of her life, she will have become
like God.
Perhaps, though, it will be tempting to assume that since the focus is placed
first on the state of one’s own soul, the sage will be primarily concerned just with
himself, and people will not matter to him very much. But that would be a
mistake. To say, for instance, that one of the best things in life is to love other
people is, of course, consistent with saying that one must first love oneself. And,
in general, the fact that ethically the first project is the reconciliation of one’s
own motivations does not narrow the nature and content of those motivations
to purely self-concern. In fact, the Stoics say that while our primary natural
66
Cp. Aristotle’s comment about the person of proper pride: ‘it would be most unbecoming for a
proud man . . . to wrong another [dike·n]; for to what end should he do disgraceful things [afiscr],
he to whom nothing is great?’ (Nicomachean Ethics IV.3, 1123b31–2).
The Philebus: Part 1 161
impulse is toward self-preservation, none the less the self that a human is made
by nature to preserve is a rational self—and part of our nature as rational beings
is deeply social, since nature has made it that love for others should be part of
the nature of humankind.67 Likewise, in Aristotle’s discussion of pride—a virtue
concerned primarily with one’s attitude toward and treatment of one’s self—we
learn that the proud person, so far from becoming self-absorbed, realizes that
what really is beneath him is having a bad character; as a result, he is considerate
of, and gracious toward, other people, because he is beyond having the sorts of
motivations that would lead him to act in any other way.68
The way in which Aristotle connects a virtue considered as a constitution of
one’s soul with a virtue considered as a feature of someone with the right sort of
involvement in other people’s lives is particularly instructive for seeing how
Plato connects these ways of thinking about a virtue. In the Republic, for
instance, after giving an account of the virtues as constitutions of the soul, Plato
then tells us that a person with such a soul could never be found stealing,
cheating, conniving, breaking his word, committing adultery, or neglecting his
parents.69 And in the Gorgias, Socrates argues that a virtuous, disciplined person
will therefore always act as he should toward other people, and that this is why
we call such a person ‘just’, and will never seek out what he should not, and that
this is why we call such a person ‘courageous’.70 By setting one’s own house in
order, then, one comes to be truly good to other people, because one is then no
longer willing to be anything else.71
Becoming truly good to other people, moreover, is more than merely not
doing wrong by them. In fact, as the Theaetetus digression draws to a close Plato
points out the importance of understanding the gap between godlikeness and its
opposite: those who pursue cleverness and gain instead of likeness to God do so
thinking that they are pursuing happiness, when instead they are guaranteeing
the unhappiness of their life. And notice the response that is called for when we
see such people: we are not to feel wrath at their injustice and impiety, but to
see them for what they are—misguided and ignorant; and instead of dismissing
them as hopeless or beyond our understanding them, we see them as intelligible—
they are, after all, only seeking happiness, as all people do—and we reason
with them:
If, therefore, one meets a man who practices injustice and is blasphemous in his talk or in
his life, the best thing for him by far is that one should never grant that there is any sort of
ability about his unscrupulousness; such men are ready enough to glory in the reproach,
67
See Cicero, de Finibus III.16, 20–1, 62–4.
68
See Nicomachean Ethics IV.3, esp. 1123a29–1125a16, 1124b18–23 with 1124a26–b6.
69 70
Republic IV, 442e–444a, esp. 442e4–443a11. Gorgias 507a7–c3.
71
Whether or not this is a completely successful or satisfactory account of the linkage between
virtue as a state of the soul and virtue as a feature of one who acts well toward others, however, is a
different and controversial matter, as Sachs (1963: 141–58) has famously pointed out. For present
purposes, I shall leave that issue aside. What matters most at present is that there is no reason to think
that Plato, in construing virtue as likeness to God, was therefore indifferent to how a virtuous person
actually conducted himself in relation to other people.
162 The Philebus: Part 1
and think that it means not that they are mere rubbish, cumbering the ground to no
purpose, but that they have the kind of qualities that are necessary for survival in the
community. We must therefore tell them the truth—that their very ignorance of their true
state fixes them the more firmly therein. For they do not know what is the penalty of
injustice, which is the last things of which a man should be ignorant. It is not what they
suppose—scourging and death—things which they may entirely evade in spite of their
wrongdoing. It is a penalty from which they cannot escape. . . . [namely] the deepest
unhappiness. This truth the evildoer does not see; blinded by folly and utter lack of
understanding, he fails to perceive that the effect of his unjust practices is to make him
grow more and more [unhappy]. (Theaetetus 176c–177a2)
Even here, when we imagine a godlike person regarding his opposite, we are to
see his response as one of understanding and concern.72 And this, Plato says, is
why we try to engage such a person in philosophy, which can, at least, show this
person his ignorance (177a2–b7), which is after all what keeps him from seeing
what he needs to see most (176e4–177a2). This is why philosophers must be
involved in the lives of other people: all people need to find happiness. Nor is it
surprising that Plato should conclude his discussion of likeness to God on this
note, since Plato also believes it is in the nature of the gods to care about every
detail of human life, as they are completely good and therefore caring.73 So far
from taking us away from other people, likeness to God brings us back to them
and enables us to see them with new eyes.
The fresh perspective on Plato that understanding the Stoics can afford us also
demands a reassessment of the commonplace depiction of Plato as ‘other-
worldly’. In fact, even the very ‘this-worldly’ Aristotle also insists that rationality
or wisdom is valuable for its own sake, which is just the view that likeness to God
is meant to pick out in Plato’s moral philosophy. We can see this in Aristotle’s
discussion of practical wisdom in Nicomachean Ethics VI.12–13, as well as in his
discussion of the human function in Nicomachean Ethics I.7.
After raising a number of puzzles in VI.12 about what value we can attach to
philosophic and practical wisdom, the first point Aristotle makes is this:
Now first let us say that in themselves these states must be worthy of choice because they
are the virtues of the two parts of the soul respectively, even if neither of them produces
anything. (VI.12, 1144a1–3)
And he says this again in the next chapter:
. . . with the presence of the one quality, practical wisdom, will be given all the virtues. And
it is plain that, even if it were of no practical value, we should have needed it because it is
the virtue of the part of us in question. (VI.13, 1144b36–1145a4)74
Nor should it really surprise us that Aristotle makes such claims about the value
of practical wisdom, or rationality. For one thing, in Nicomachean Ethics I.5 and
72
See Epictetus, Discourses I.28 and Seneca, On Anger II.6–10 for the Stoic idea that wrongdoers are
blinded by their ignorance, and warrant our understanding and compassion rather than our wrath.
73
Laws X, 901c8–903a9.
74
See also IV.3, 1125a11–12, where Aristotle claims that the possession of good things that are not
of value merely for their usefulness (t kal ka› karpa) is characteristic of the self-sufficient person.
The Philebus: Part 1 163
I.8 Aristotle insists that happiness consists not in the possession of anything, as if
value somehow attached to things themselves, but rather in activity; this is
because happiness consists not in what happens to us, or in our circumstances,
or in our belongings, or even in our attributes, but in our activity in relation to
all those things. For this reason, Aristotle says that it is ultimately virtue that
determines our happiness (I.10, 1100a31–b11); for, as Plato also says in the
Philebus, it is the rational activity of virtue that brings order and harmony to all
of the various aspects of our lives. For Aristotle, then, things are not good all by
themselves, but our rationally integrating them into a well-proportioned life is
good—it is ‘the virtue of the part of us in question’, namely our capacity for
practical rationality.
Furthermore, Aristotle thinks that this rationality is worth choosing for its
own sake because that is what our fulfillment as rational beings consists in. We
find this idea again in I.7, in the so-called ‘function argument’:
Presumably, however, to say that happiness is the chief good seems a platitude, and a
clearer account of what it is is still desired. This might perhaps be given, if we could first
ascertain the function of man. . . . [If ] we state the function of man to be a certain kind of
life, and this to be an activity or actions of the soul implying a rational principle, and the
function of a good man to be the good and noble performance of these, and if any action is
well performed when it is performed in accordance with the appropriate excellence
[retn]: if this is the case, the human good turns out to be activity of the soul exhibiting
excellence [retn], and if there are more than one excellence [reta‹], in accordance with
the best and most complete. (I.7, 1097b22–25, 1098a12–18)
This is a controversial argument, but what seems clear is that Aristotle thinks
that for us living well must be understood as living well as humans, and thus as
beings of theoretical and practical rationality. As Christine Korsgaard puts it:
This is what the function argument is all about: Aristotle thinks that we cannot have a
good life unless our potential for true practical reasoning is actualized. The connection
between function and virtue means that this potential cannot be realized without the
moral virtues. The moral virtues are just those qualities that actualize our potential for
rationality: they make us human beings.75
Practical wisdom infiltrates and brings order to one’s emotions, desires, pleas-
ures, and pains, and as such is the kind of rationality that being fully human
amounts to. For Aristotle, the value of being fully human—of being happy as a
human being—is not one value among others; it is the value that makes the
value of anything else for us possible. The rationality that our humanity so
consists in, then, must be good for us, just for its own sake.
This should, of course, remind us of the view we have located in Seneca and,
I have argued, in Plato in connection with likeness to God, namely that only by
valuing virtue as what determines happiness do we really identify with our
nature and mature as rational persons. It should be clear that the thesis that
75
Korsgaard (1986: 278).
164 The Philebus: Part 1
rationality is valuable for its own sake is anything but an otherworldly one; it is,
in any case, this-worldly enough even for Aristotle.76
Plato’s embracing likeness to God as a conception of virtue does not entail his
holding an otherworldly conception of virtue as his critics have recently com-
plained. Not only does that entailment fail to hold in the case of Seneca’s account,
but also the reasons that Seneca is able to avoid otherworldliness are reasons that
are open to Plato as well—for this is what we find in the Philebus, where Plato, like
Seneca and the other Stoics, understands virtue as a kind of rationality that brings
order to our lives, and is the very special cause of goodness on which all other
good things depend. Hence Plato, like Seneca, is able to understand likeness to
God as a way of acting rationally in the world as we find it, in a way that makes the
rationality with which one acts good for its own sake. On our best evidence, then,
this is Plato’s understanding of likeness to God.77
It should also be clear that we do not have to embrace an ancient cosmology
or theology—we need not embrace any particular cosmology or theology, for
that matter78—in order to take seriously the gist of the thesis that virtue is
likeness to God. Indeed, even for Seneca the moral force of becoming like God is
not so much that doing so is a way of preparing for an afterlife as it is that doing
so constitutes the fulfillment of our nature and our full maturity as rational
agents. We can thus extract this idea from the cosmology and theology in which
it happened to arise, and recognize it as a way of becoming a good human being.
Nor in doing so do we make this idea any less radical. Indeed, I do not
pretend that the idea that rationality is valuable for its own sake is an easy one,
or that it raises no serious questions. It is a thesis to be reckoned with, to be sure.
But that is just the point: it is a thesis that we must reckon with, and can take
seriously. Unlike some mystical, mysterious, or otherworldly notion that cannot
even get on the table for our serious consideration, the thesis that an agent’s
highest good consists in the rationality with which she acts and lives is a
decidedly this-worldly one that is worth our attention.
76
To be sure, Aristotle takes this view to have different implications than Plato and the Stoics do.
In particular, Aristotle famously maintains that excellence as a rational person is not sufficient for
happiness, if significant misfortune should befall the person (I.9, 1100a4–9; I.10, 1100b22 ff.). While
Aristotle’s view is praised today almost universally as more intuitively plausible than the view that
virtue is sufficient for happiness, our comparison of Aristotle’s account of the causal role and value of
rationality in the good life with the account we find in Plato and the Stoics makes it perhaps clearer
why among the ancients Aristotle was, in fact, in the minority in denying the sufficiency of virtue for
happiness. It may also explain why Aristotle struggles so uncomfortably when he tries to say just
how the excellent but unlucky do stand with respect to happiness and its opposite (I.10, 1100b22–
1101a21). The problem, in short, is that Aristotle is attracted both to the directive conception of
happiness, as in the function argument (I.7), and to the additive conception, as when he insists that
certain projects are necessary for happiness and that events of fortune can enhance or maim happiness
(see I.8–10). (And it is for this reason that Antiochus’ attempt to unify the Aristotelian position with
the Platonist and Stoic positions is doomed to fail, as Cicero argues it is in de Finibus V.) These,
however, are issues for another time.
77
And in having to rely on our best overall evidence for Plato’s understanding of likeness, all views
are on an equal footing.
78
Nor, for that matter, are the differences in theology between Plato and the Stoics of any
particular consequence in this context.
The Philebus: Part 1 165
Likeness to God does real work in Plato’s ethics, and work that we can find
intelligible and serious: for Plato it offers a way of thinking about virtue as
rational activity that is valuable for its own sake. The best way to understand
the associated talk of ‘escape’—in Plato, as in Seneca—is not as withdrawal
from the world, but as a radically transformed set of priorities with which one
engages the world. That is a thoroughly ethical position, rather than the absence
of one. It is also thoroughly humane, an account not of how we throw off what
we are, but of how we make what we are the best that it can be. And it is an
account of the kind of good that wisdom is, an unconditional good that brings
goodness about in other things, by intelligently leading and directing our
behavior—including our attitudes, and our affective attitudes—with respect to
those things.
Likeness to God gives us an account of rational incorporation and of how
wisdom makes the proper ‘use’ of things in our life, by leading and directing our
behavior with respect to them. What is more, it does so in a way that allows us to
demonstrate what otherwise may have seemed impossible: that pleasure can be
necessary for happiness, even if virtue and virtue alone is what determines
happiness. The account of rational incorporation that emerges from Plato’s
Philebus, I argue in the next chapter, shows that the pleasure (or, as in the case of
the Stoics, the ‘joy’) characteristic of the virtuous life is part of a healthy affective
life, which is, in turn, part of happy human life as a whole. Such pleasure, then,
will be necessary for happiness, because it is part of virtue, and virtue determines
happiness. And that is an interesting development indeed.
6
The Philebus, Part 2:
Pleasure Transformed, or How the
Necessity of Pleasure for Happiness
is Consistent with the Sufficiency of
Virtue for Happiness
If pleasure is a conditional good, as Plato argues that it is, then it does not
determine happiness, it does not increase or complete happiness, and it does not
determine its own place as a good in one’s life. The distinction between con-
ditional and unconditional goods, after all, is a distinction in terms of the power
to benefit. Virtue is an unconditional good because it is ‘such as to benefit’,1 and
in fact nothing else is such as to benefit, or could be, since only virtue—practical,
intelligent agency—gives the direction that being benefited requires. In that case,
it seems that there is nothing that pleasure could add to happiness that virtue
had not already achieved, and so, evidently, we should conclude that pleasure is
not necessary for happiness.
It is therefore striking that Plato should insist unambiguously in the Philebus
that pleasure is necessary for happiness after all. Early in the dialog, Socrates asks
his companion Protarchus ‘whether any one of us would choose to live in
possession of every kind of intelligence, reason, knowledge, and memory of all
things, while having no part, neither large nor small, of pleasure or of pain,
living in total insensitivity to anything of that kind’ (21d9–e2). Not surprisingly,
Protarchus recoils from such a life. So too does Socrates, who asserts that the
best life must be found in a combination of intelligence and pleasure (21e–22a),
since neither the life of pleasure without intelligence nor the life of intelligence
without pleasure is sufficient or choice-worthy (22b), so that neither can be a
happy life (see 20d ff.). Plato’s reason for making this claim is sensible: being
affectless is inconsistent with human happiness, even if it should turn out to be
1
The phrase is from Arius Didymus, summarizing the similar Stoic position; see Stobaeus,
Anthology II.5d.
The Philebus: Part 2 167
consistent with a god’s (22c–d).2 And Plato never goes back on this claim, but
even repeats it toward the dialog’s end as one of the defining constraints on
Socrates and Protarchus’ joint search for the human life that is complete, choice-
worthy, and supremely good (60d–61a).3
Now what Plato concedes is really not striking at all: pleasure is a part of life,
and any conception of a good life as a whole will have to make it part of the good
life. What seems striking is that Plato should concede it, if he is, in fact,
a proponent of the directive conception of happiness. For, on that conception,
happiness is determined by the good direction of the whole of one’s life, that is,
by the agent’s goodness expressed across all dimensions of her life, and not by
the goodness of her life’s various ingredients, since their goodness, it turns out,
is really a matter of the agent’s goodness where such things are concerned.4 It
seems odd, then, that certain ingredients, and pleasure in particular, should be
upgraded as indispensable for a happy life after all, which seems to suggest that
pleasure is one of the things that makes us happy and our lives good.5 Once Plato
accepts that pleasure is necessary for happiness, it is hard to see how he could
deny that it has its own power with respect to happiness, even if that power
functions only in a virtuous person.
Notice, however, that this apparent tension rests on the assumption that since
pleasure is one of the ingredients or dimensions of one’s life, it must therefore be
distinct from the agent’s goodness where pleasure is concerned, in much the sort
of way that an agent’s wealth is distinct from the agent’s own goodness where
her wealth is concerned. But I think the Philebus makes clear Plato’s view that
pleasure is actually part of the agent’s own goodness, because her goodness
consists in, among other things, the sorts of attitudes she has and perspectives
2
I am thus puzzled by the claim of Hampton (1990: 65), that ‘although the divine life of pure
intellect is not a viable option for humankind, we should nevertheless strive to approximate this ideal
as far as our human nature will allow’. I have no idea what such an ‘approximation’ would come to,
or why we should take Plato to be recommending it.
3
He repeats it in the Laws: ‘Human nature involves, above all, pleasures, pains, and desires, and no
mortal animal can help being hung up dangling in the air (so to speak) in total dependence on these
powerful influences. That is why we should praise the noblest life—not only because it enjoys a fine
and glorious reputation, but because (provided one is prepared to try it out instead of recoiling from
it as a youth) it excels in providing what we all seek: a predominance of pleasure over pain throughout
our lives. That this result is guaranteed, if it is tried out in the correct manner, will be perfectly
obvious in an instant. . . . But if we assert that we want anything outside this range [of the prepon-
derance of pleasure over pain], we are talking out of ignorance and inexperience of life as it is really
lived’ (V, 732e4–733a6, d4–6).
Does this passage suggest not merely the necessity of pleasure for happiness but also some form of
psychological hedonism? Annas (1999: 137–45) says that this passage (and II, 662e8–663b6) says only
that we all begin prizing pleasure, but as reason distinguishes and shapes pleasures reason itself
becomes the determining factor in happiness. However, the Athenian nowhere suggests that we stop
reasoning in the sort of way that he describes here. Irwin (1995: 344) takes this passage to say only that
we do not want the preponderance of pain over pleasure. But it is not clear why the Athenian should
need to argue for such an obvious observation. We shall return to this passage in the next chapter.
4
This point emerges on the account of rational incorporation from the previous chapter. See also
Stobaeus, Anthology II.11q.
5
In fact, it is just this sort of view that Irwin (1995: 336) attributes to Plato in the Philebus.
168 The Philebus: Part 2
she adopts in the various dimensions of her life, and her pleasure is itself just
such a crucial attitude and perspective. When Plato says that pleasure is
necessary for happiness, then, he does not mean that good character could never
be enough for happiness without pleasure. Rather, as the dialogue unfolds he
reveals that pleasure is actually a part of good character as a whole, the product
of reason’s transforming all dimensions of the self. Since good character, or
virtue, is this sort of whole, pleasure is necessary for happiness, because virtue is
sufficient for happiness.
So the key to understanding Plato’s position, I think, is to be found in his
analysis of the nature of pleasure and how it functions in a person’s life, since
this will tell us in precisely what sense pleasure is ‘necessary’ for the good life.
I shall argue that in Plato’s Philebus the pleasure of a virtuous character is
necessary and important for happiness because it is a necessary and important
part of that character, which, in turn, is what determines happiness.
6
Cf. D. Frede (1993: xviii–xvix), (1992: 444), (1985: 172); see also Hackforth (1945: 16 n. 1), who
unfortunately overlooks the dynamics of the disagreement between Protarchus and Socrates on this
point.
The Philebus: Part 2 169
But look, might you not have some need of knowledge, intelligence, and calculation, or
anything else that is related to them?
How so? If I had pleasure I would have all in all!
And living like that you could enjoy the greatest pleasures throughout your life?
Why should I not? (21a8–b5)
Socrates does manage to persuade Protarchus that such a life—a life of
pleasant sensations only—would be too incomplete to be a happy life (21b–d),
but now the question is whether it is pleasure or reason that is the ‘cause’ (a!tion,
22d4) of the goodness of the life that mixes the two, and Protarchus maintains
that that cause is pleasure (22d1–4). In fact, Protarchus concedes that the life of
pleasure would be incomplete without intellect only on the grounds that intellect
enables one to remember past pleasures and to plan for future ones (21c–d); on
his view, reason is necessary for happiness only because pleasure is. Con-
sequently, while Protarchus denies that pleasure is always enough to make a life
happy, no matter what else is going on in that life, and concedes that certain
background conditions must be met, none the less he clearly believes that when
they are met it is pleasure that makes the happy life happy.
And third, Protarchus believes that pleasure is such as to benefit by its very
nature—it need not be differentiated before it can be beneficial. On his view,
however disgraceful the source of one’s pleasure from may be, this says nothing
about the value of the pleasure itself. Pleasure may accompany activities of very
different ethical quality, but the value of the pleasure itself never varies. For
pleasure, there simply are no better and worse ethical qualities at all:
[You, Protarchus,] say that all pleasant things are good. Now, no one contends that
pleasant things are not pleasant. But while most of them are bad but some good, as we
hold, you nevertheless call them all good, even though you would admit that they are
unlike one another if someone pressed the point. What is the common element in the
good and bad pleasures that allows you to call them all good?
What are you saying, Socrates? Do you think anyone will agree to this who begins by
laying it down that pleasure is the good? Do you think he will accept when you say that
some pleasures are good but others are bad?7
But will you grant that they are unlike each other and that some are opposites?
Not in so far as they are pleasures. (13a8–c5)
This claim of Protarchus’ is quite revealing. When I enjoy a walk in the
country, for instance, we might describe that pleasure either as the pleasure I get
from my walk in the country, or as the pleasure of my walk in the country. On
the former, the pleasure is understood as a sort of sensation produced in me by
this activity, but which is strictly distinct from my activity, and which in prin-
ciple may have been produced in me by any of a number of different activities.
But on the latter the pleasure consists in how I take in these surroundings, how
7
Recall that Callicles’ hedonism was abandoned shortly after he conceded that some pleasures are
good and others bad, as this is to concede that pleasure is a conditional, extrinsic good. See Gorgias
499b ff., discussed in Ch. 2.
170 The Philebus: Part 2
they fill my senses, the emotions I have about being here, how interested I am in
what I am doing now, and so on, and therefore such a pleasure is possible for me
only by my taking a walk in the country.8 Here we see the connection between
Protarchus’ belief that pleasure is a simple sensation, and his belief that pleasure
need not be differentiated. Since, on Protarchus’ view, pleasure is the same thing
regardless of what occasions it, so that the temperate and intemperate are simply
getting the same thing from different sources, he must understand pleasure as
some kind of sensation or feeling. And since pleasure is simple in that way, there
is no more differentiation for it to admit of than there is for a tickle in one’s foot,
even if in a good human life pleasures must operate according to patterns that
require awareness, memory, and planning.
Protarchus’ view therefore represents a form of the additive conception of
happiness. He recognizes that pleasure gives no direction to one’s life—a life of
pleasure alone, he admits, would be as directionless as a clam’s life (21c–d)—and
even concedes that pleasure must be given some sort of direction by one’s agency
(21b–c), but this does nothing to keep pleasure from being the primary deter-
minant of happiness, in his opinion. Happiness, on his view, consists in the
ingredients added into one’s life—in this case, pleasures (at least if reason is also
present)—rather than its direction. And so Protarchus thinks that pleasure is
necessary for happiness because pleasure determines happiness, so that virtue
could never be enough for happiness.
However, while Socrates agrees that pleasure is necessary for happiness, he
must not think that it is necessary in the same way that Protarchus does, because
Socrates proposes to show Protarchus that reason, not pleasure, is what is
responsible for making the happy life happy:
. . . now I am not arguing that [the life of] reason ought to get first prize over and against
the combined life [sc. of reason and pleasure]; we have rather to look and make up our
minds about the second prize, how to dispose of it. One of us may want to give credit for
the combined life to reason, making it responsible (a!tion), the other to pleasure. Thus
neither of the two would be the good, but it could be assumed that one or the other of
them is its cause (a!tion). (22c7–d4, emphasis in original)
Plato suggests that, although both reason and pleasure may be necessary for
happiness, it is important to understand the complex internal relations9 that
may hold between reason and pleasure within the complete, happy life. Not all
of the necessary conditions for happiness are on an equal footing, Plato suggests,
because only some of them are also responsible for happiness. Socrates and
Protarchus agree about that, but disagree over whether it is reason or pleasure
that has this responsibility, and this question can be decided only by an
investigation into the nature of this notion of responsibility or ‘cause’, and how
reason and pleasure each stand in relation to it. Plato’s strategy will be to argue
that pleasure is a kind of attitude with complex connections to our underlying
8 9
Cf. Plato, trans. Waterfield (1994: xxii). I owe this phrase to Korsgaard (1983: 193).
The Philebus: Part 2 171
values, priorities, and conceptions of ourselves, and as such that pleasure has a
role to play in one’s life, so that one must ask whether it is playing the right kind
of role in her own life.10 Consequently, pleasure is good not by its nature, but
only when it is an appropriate kind of attitude, and therefore its goodness
depends on the direction that reason gives it. And, in that case, it will be reason
and not pleasure that is the ‘cause’ of the goodness of the good life, just as
Socrates says it must be (22c–e). Moreover, pleasure will be necessary for
happiness inasmuch as it is part of the whole self that reason directs and
structures.11
10
Cf. Gosling and Taylor (1982: 135): ‘The importance of [the dissimilarity of pleasures] is
as follows: . . . the problem for someone wishing to live a good life is not how to produce as
much as possible of a single product, but rather how to select from and blend into a harmonious
whole opposing and dissimilar elements among which are opposing and dissimilar pleasures.’
11
Hence, while I agree with Carone (2000) that Plato does not mean to demote pleasure to the
status of a remedial good (something merely to be dealt with, like an annoying neighbor), I do not
agree that pleasure can be an intrinsic good in the Philebus, much less that the Philebus is consistent
with hedonism. It is just this point about the radical differences in roles between pleasure and virtue
within the good life that is crucial to their placement in the value schema of the Philebus, and I think
that Carone overlooks the importance of this difference.
172 The Philebus: Part 2
Plato captures these facts about wholes and their structure by dividing all
being in four ways. Things like cakes Plato calls ‘mixtures’ (25b–26d, 27d–28a),
a classification that reflects the importance of the internal relations within them:
they are ‘mixtures’ of their constituent matter and the structure that obtains in
that matter, and in virtue of which they are what they are. This ‘matter’ Plato
calls the ‘unlimited’ or ‘indeterminate’ (24a–25a, 28a), reflecting the fact that
they have no direction or structure of their own, with respect to the complete
mixture:
Check first in the case of the hotter and colder12 whether you can conceive of a limit, or
whether the ‘more and less’ do not rather reside in these kinds, and while they reside in
them do not permit the attainment of any end. For once an end has been reached, they will
both have been ended as well.
Very true.
We are agreed, then, that the hotter and the colder always contain the more and less.
Quite definitely.
Our argument forces us to conclude that these things never have an end. And since they
are endless they turn out to be entirely unlimited. . . . Wherever [such attributes] apply,
they prevent everything from adopting a definite quantity; by imposing on all actions the
qualification ‘stronger’ relative to ‘gentler’ or the reverse, they procure a ‘more and less’
while doing away with all definite quantity. (24a7–b8, c3–6)
The structure that must obtain in the unlimited in order for it to constitute a
mixture, Plato calls ‘limit’ (see 25a–b, d–26c):
But look now at what does not admit of these qualifications but rather their opposites, first
of all ‘the equal’ and ‘equality’ and, after the equal, things like ‘double’, and all that is
related as number to number or measure to measure: If we subsume all these together
under the heading of ‘limit’, we would seem to do a fair job. Or what do you say?
A very fair job, Socrates. (25a6–b4)
Having limit is more than just having some quantity or proportion or other
determinate characteristic, just as ‘equality’ is not any chance ratio, but the
kind of ratio that makes two things equal. More generally, having limit is having
the right sorts of characteristics with respect to a determinate standard, namely
the being of some mixture: in our example, the eggs always have some quantity
or other, and always have some proportion or other relative to the milk, but
their having limit in this case is their having the quantity and proportion
the cake requires of them.13 Likewise, being unlimited is not to be without any
12
Notice, then, that the ‘unlimited’ is not only physical stuff but also the properties of stuff. Plato’s
general point seems to be that anything can be classified as unlimited so long as its being in relation to
some standard must be brought about in it by something else. Notice, then, that anything called
‘good’ in this category must be an extrinsic, or conditional, good.
13
As in the previous chapter, I am here indebted to Irwin (1995: 324 f.), who offers the helpful
analogy of water being brought to the right temperature for the purpose of making tea.
The Philebus: Part 2 173
Right.
But what about what is made and what comes into being, will we not find the same
situation, that they also do not differ except in name?
Exactly.
And isn’t it the case that what makes is always leading in the order of nature, while the
thing made follows since it comes into being through it?
Right. . . .
We therefore declare that the craftsman who produces all these must be the fourth kind,
the cause, since it has been demonstrated sufficiently that it differs from the others?
It certainly is different. (26e1–27a7, b1–3, emphasis in original)
Plato’s fourfold division shows not only that there are different dimensions
within a thing, but also that they stand in complex relations to one another and
contribute to the being of the whole in very different ways. This observation
applies even to one’s life, Plato says: the best life may be a life of pleasure and
reason, but pleasure and reason stand in very different relations to the life—the
‘mixture’—of which they are parts. Pleasure is part of the ‘unlimited’ in this
mixture, since it does not by its nature possess any determinate direction or
proportion in relation to life as a whole. That ‘limit’ must be brought about by
reason, which is the ‘cause’ of the mixture, and thus not one ingredient among
many but the intelligent agency that makes that life what it is:
Do not think that we have engaged in an idle discussion here, Protarchus, for it comes as a
support for the thinkers of old who held the view that reason is forever the ruler over the
universe.
It certainly does.
It also has provided an answer to my query, that reason belongs to that kind which is the
cause of everything. But that was one of our four kinds. So there you already have the
solution to our problem in your hands.
I have indeed, and quite to my satisfaction . . .
By now, dear friend, we have arrived at a satisfactory explanation of the class that reason
belongs to and what power it has.
Quite so.
And as to pleasure, it became apparent quite a while ago what class it belongs to.
Definitely.
Let us firmly keep it in mind about both of them, that reason is akin to cause and is part of
that family, while pleasure itself is unlimited and belongs to the kind that in and by itself
neither possesses nor will ever possess a beginning, middle, or end. (30d6–e4, 31a1–10)
As Socrates says, a central question of the dialogue has now been answered:
reason and pleasure are both necessary conditions for happiness, but they have
radically different roles in the good life, and only reason is responsible for—the
‘cause’ of—the goodness of the good life. Since what it means to bring ‘limit’ to
pleasure in order to make it part of a harmonious whole—as well as what sort of
part pleasure will be, and thus in what sense it is necessary for the whole—will
depend on what sort of thing pleasure is, Plato turns now to an analysis of
pleasure.
The Philebus: Part 2 175
Our argument forces us to conclude that desire is not a matter of the body. . . . By pointing
out that it is this memory that directs [the living creature] towards the objects of its
desires, our argument has established that every impulse, desire, and the rule over the
whole animal is the domain of the soul.
Very much so. (34e9–35b8, 35c6–7, d1–4)
Desire, then, is not bare need, but the recognition of need. A very young baby
may become parched and experience pain as a result, but without the recog-
nition that that pain is a desire for drink, the baby will have the painful need for
drink but will not experience the desire of ‘thirst’, as older children and adults
do.15 Desire is a pain that is about a lack, and directed specifically at what (the
agent judges) will satisfy it. And so pleasures and pains are, we might say,
concern-laden:16 to be pained is to be pained at some state of affairs in so far as
one takes it to be unsatisfying, unfulfilling, or inadequate; and to be pleased is to
be pleased at fulfillment, to enjoy some state of affairs as satisfying for the agent,
given the needs the agent takes himself or herself to have.
15
See D. Frede (1993: xliv).
16
For the notion of affective states as concern-laden, I am greatly indebted to the work of Roberts
(2003).
17
The sense of ‘false’ in which Plato takes all these pleasures to be false is a matter of great
controversy, and not only in recent years (e.g. Damascius tells us of ancient disagreements on this
score; Lectures on the Philebus, xx 166–72). Gosling (1975: 212, cf. 213) accuses Plato of ‘rank equi-
vocation’ on multiple senses of falsity (cp. Plato, trans. Waterfield (1982: 25)), but D. Frede (1993: xlv)
is surely right that the equivocation is deliberate and innocuous (see, e.g., 41a); see also (1992: 442 f.).
18
I am persuaded that D. Frede (1985: 171 ff.), (1993: xlv–liii) presents the best account of this kind
of false pleasure; see also Penner (1970); D. Frede (1992: 444–6). To trace this long-standing debate,
see esp. Gosling (1959), (1961), (1975: 215–19); Kenny (1960); McLaughlin (1969); Dybikowski
(1970); and Hampton (1987), (1990: 54 ff.); see also Tenkku (1956: 193); Plato, trans. Waterfield
(1982: 24); and Sayre (1987: 64 f.).
19
Carone (2000: 275) brings out this point nicely. This is also what we should expect given Plato’s
thesis that pleasure is a response to something qua (perceived as) satisfying. Recall also that, as we saw
in our discussion of the Republic in Ch. 4, Plato understands certain pleasures as intentional states
characteristic of different kinds of persons and their ways of living, depending on what the person
thinks is most important in life.
The Philebus: Part 2 177
such, they can also misrepresent their objects. We can see this point in the
psychological account of pleasure, provisional and compressed though it is, that
Socrates offers:
Let us try to achieve more clarity about what we said concerning pleasure and judgment. Is
there something we call judging?
Yes.
And is there also taking pleasure?
Yes.
But there is also what the judgment is about?
Certainly.
And also what the pleasure is about?
Very much so.
But what makes a judgment, whether it judges rightly or not, cannot be deprived of really
making a judgment.
How should it?
And what takes pleasure, whether it is rightly pleased or not, can obviously never be
deprived of really taking pleasure.
Yes, that is also the case.
But what we have to question is how it is that judgment is usually either true or false, while
[according to you, Protarchus,] pleasure admits only truth, even though in both cases
there is equally real judgment and real pleasure. (37a1–b8)
And are not the pictures of the true judgments and assertions true, and the pictures of the
false ones false?
Certainly. (38e9–39c6)
Plato begins by distinguishing pleasure from belief with the vivid metaphors
of the painter and the scribe. The ‘scribe’ writes down statements which are,
evidently, in the form of sentences in the indicative voice, since they assert, and
thus assert either truly or falsely. They are also the content of belief or assent (as
opposed to speculations one entertains without yet assenting, say), since they are
the result of a concurrence of ‘memory and perception’ with ‘other impressions
at a particular occasion’. The ‘painter’, on the other hand, puts into images what
the scribe writes down. I think part of the point of portraying the painter as
painting from the sentences that the scribe writes, at second hand, rather than
from the things themselves, is that that these illustrations are, in the first
instance, not about the things that cause or occasion them, but about how one
takes those things to be. They are about things that the mind has already begun
to represent to itself. To return to our earlier example, the pleasure of a walk in
the country is the product not of my surroundings themselves, but of the way in
which I take my surroundings in, the attitudes I form about them, and so on.
These ‘pictures’, then, illustrate not the country itself, but the country-as-I-take-
it-to-be, given a host of further peculiar facts about me. This also means that we
are not the passive recipients of such pleasures, but the active producers of them,
even if we are rarely aware of the act of producing them. Perhaps the pleasure of
sweet taste is caused in one simply by the candy, say, but the pleasure of a walk
in the country depends ultimately on what attitudes the agent brings to the walk.
Of course, beliefs are not passively formed, either, but are the work of a
‘scribe’, and the ‘sentences’ that form their content are also of the agent’s own
making. Why, then, is a painter needed at all—if it is pleasing that such-and-
such is the case, why shouldn’t the scribe simply write down that it is? We might
say that the scribe cannot write down the pleasure because a sentence is not a
feeling or a ‘glow’, as a pleasure is. But this seems to be the wrong reply, since
feelings and glows are not pictures, and do not represent as Plato thinks pictures
can. Moreover, one need not have a belief that such and such is the case in order
to have a glow over contemplating it; daydreams and fantasies will do just as
well. But neither should we say that these pictures are really only beliefs of
another sort. To be pleased is to be pleased that something is the case, but being
pleased is not a matter of coming up with yet more sentences about pleasing
things. It is one thing to believe that something satisfies a longing and another to
view it through the lens of satisfaction, as it were. After all, notice that the
painter does much more than report. He produces original works with a sig-
nificance of their own. This is, I take it, precisely why one should introduce a
painter rather than yet another scribe to bring into vivid relief not merely the
nature but indeed the significance of some state of affairs for a viewer. The
paintings do not merely tell us more than the writings do. It is by ‘painting’
The Philebus: Part 2 179
them within ourselves that we overlay our experience, so to speak, with the vivid
shape and color that our concerns lend. Pleasure goes beyond taking things to be
such and such, to ascribing to them a value and power that our deeper concerns
invest in them.
And so the painter’s act is a matter of focusing one’s attention and one’s
emotions on a state of affairs in a concern-laden way. Somewhat less metaphor-
ically,20 my enjoyment of something is my representing it to myself as something
that does—or, for that matter, will—meet my concerns. We can see this way of
thinking about the painter’s work if we look at Plato’s account of anticipatory
pleasures. According to Plato, these pictures are not only about the present and
past but also about the future (39c–d), and the pictures that we have about those
states of affairs that we believe will obtain are pleasures of anticipation (39d–40a):
And is not everyone, as we just said, always full of many hopes?
Certainly.
There are, then, assertions in each of us that we call hopes?
Yes.
But there are also those painted images. And someone often envisages himself in the
possession of an enormous amount of gold and of a lot of pleasures as a consequence. And
in addition, he also sees, in this inner picture himself, that he is beside himself with
delight. (40a3–12)
Where exactly are we to locate the pleasure of anticipation within this whole act
of anticipation? This question has aroused much controversy, and I do not wish
to dwell too much on that controversy here.21 I think it is reasonably clear,
however, that the pleasure in question is the representation to oneself of a future
state of affairs that one believes will obtain and will be satisfying. On this
account, the pleasure of anticipation is the pleasure that something will be the
case, placing the state of affairs one anticipates under a description, and thus the
enjoyment of the anticipated state of affairs in terms of that description. Such
pleasure represents the world, as belief does, but, unlike belief, it represents the
world in a more actively concern-laden way.
An example may help to illustrate. Suppose that I set my heart on owning a
Jaguar, dreaming of the thrill of speeding along, being the envy of my neighbors
and friends, increasing my sex appeal, and so on. But suppose that one day I stop
dreaming about Jaguars, and set about acquiring one, perhaps taking a higher-
paying job, working harder and longer hours, saving relentlessly, and so on.
As this plan begins to come together, I no longer dream about the Jaguar that
I might have, but anticipate the Jaguar that I now am certain I shall have. Now
I have articulate beliefs (‘Soon I shall own a Jaguar’, ‘Soon I shall be speeding
along’, etc.), and the ‘scribe’ is able to record those beliefs. Of course, I attach
20
Nor is it surprising that metaphor cannot be removed from this account of emotion and
pleasure entirely. After all, if we could say in a sentence what more an emotion presents to us than a
simple belief does, we should not need anything more than simple beliefs in order for our minds to
21
operate as they do. For a good discussion see D. Frede (1985: 165–71).
180 The Philebus: Part 2
special significance to the content of those beliefs, and thus regard them in a
vivid light: not only do I believe that I shall have the Jaguar, but I also ‘see’ the
Jaguar in my future as a source of pride and joy for me, as something that will do
for me all those things I have wanted a Jaguar to do. The thrill of speeding along,
the pride of being envied, the excitement of being sexier, and so on, are the
images and colors with which the ‘painter’ inside me depicts my beliefs about
having my Jaguar. And that ‘painting’—that way of construing what I take to be
the facts—is itself a pleasure of anticipation.
It is important to distinguish this pleasure from other sorts of pleasures that
might be involved in anticipation. For one thing, the pleasure of anticipating the
Jaguar is not the pleasure that I anticipate the Jaguar will bring me. The pleasure
I think I shall have in the future while I speed along in the Jaguar, for instance—
my being ‘beside myself with delight’ in the future—is, of course, one of the things
painted into the picture, but the pleasure that I have here and now is the pleasure
of anticipating that future. Nor is anticipatory pleasure the feeling or ‘glow’
derived from the act of anticipating. It may feel good to anticipate that pleasant
future—to ‘revel’ in it—but, again, reveling does not require belief, as opposed to
fantasy. These pictures are not daydreams about some imaginary or possible
future (‘Wouldn’t it be nice to have a Jaguar!’) but ways of viewing or construing a
future that we think shall obtain, in terms of some active interest we take in them
(‘Tomorrow I shall have a Jaguar—and then how satisfied I shall be! ’).22
Notice now that anticipatory pleasures do especially well at illustrating an
important general feature of pleasures, regardless of tense. As Dorothea Frede
has noted, focusing on present rather than anticipatory pleasures can conceal the
fact that ‘what is enjoyed in the present is not the thing itself, but the thing as
conceived of by the person’.23 In the example above, the cause of my pleasure is
not the Jaguar per se, but the meaning that I ascribe to the Jaguar. And, although
my pleasure is not simply a belief that the Jaguar has such significance, my
pleasure of anticipating the Jaguar does constitute a way of asserting the special
significance the Jaguar has for me.24 My pleasure does not report on the Jaguar’s
significance, but overlays the Jaguar with a significance I take it to have, given my
concerns regarding it.25
22
See D. Frede (1985: 171–3), (1993: xlviii) for discussion and defense of this interpretation;
cf. Thalberg (1962: 67 f., 73 f.). Con. Gosling (1959: 52), (1961: 44), (1975: 215–19), whose view is
criticized in Kenny (1960), both of whom are criticized in McLaughlin (1969).
23
D. Frede (1993: xlviii), italics in original. See also (1985: 165–79).
24
Nor is there any particular reason to think that pictures cannot assert, even if they cannot assert
discursively. As Wittgenstein pointed out, while images do not represent anything in their own right
(a picture of a man on the side of a hill, e.g., could represent either a man ascending or a man
descending the hill), still nothing keeps us from using such drawn figures to represent and assert, any
more than we are kept from using written figures to represent and assert (the black marks on this
page, after all, do not assert anything in their own right, either).
25
It is also worth pointing out that, although these concerns must necessarily be mine, they need
not all be about me; I can have concerns about my child’s welfare, e.g., and thus be pleased at
anticipating a prosperous future for my child. There is, at any rate, nothing in Plato’s analysis that tells
against this.
The Philebus: Part 2 181
26
I offer this gloss with some reservation, as Plato offers no gloss on the notion of falsity here that
distinguishes between this case of falsity in which the anticipated thing does not yield the anticipated
benefits, and the different case in which the anticipated state of affairs does not come about at all, and
the yet further case in which the anticipated state of affairs does obtain, but is not really satisfying for a
being like me, even if I happen to find it satisfying (the sort of mistake that Plato depicts in people
who get what they think is satisfaction, without ever getting genuine satisfaction; see Republic IX,
584c ff., discussed in Ch. 4). However, I shall focus on the first kind of case here, as it is a simpler case
than the third (and I think the results of analyzing the first case should apply readily to the third as
well), and because it does more than the second case to highlight the concern-ladenness of anticip-
atory pleasure, which is what we should expect given Plato’s analysis of desire.
182 The Philebus: Part 2
27
This idea will be familiar from Republic IX, 580d ff., discussed in Ch. 4.
28
This is a most important detail, since Plato is not content to say merely that pleasure is an
adverbial attribute of the pleasant activity, but more specifically that it is a particular kind of rep-
resentation to oneself of the enjoyed activity. I shall say more about this below.
29
See also D. Frede (1993: xliv f.).
The Philebus: Part 2 183
But if you take that portion of them by which they appear greater or smaller than they
really are, and cut it off from each of them as a mere appearance and without real being,
you will neither admit that this appearance is right or dare to say that anything connected
with this portion of pleasure or pain is right and true.
Certainly not. (41d11–42c4)
This is a breathtakingly quick discussion of these false pleasures, but a few
things are fairly clear. For one, the falsity obtains as a result of comparisons of
more proximate pleasures and pains with less proximate ones, and somehow is
caused by the distortion of ‘distance’ (41e–42a). Socrates does not expand on the
notion of ‘distance’ in this context, but presumably, whereas in the case of
eyesight the distance is distance in space, in the case of pleasures and pains the
distance would be distance in time, as for instance when one compares a
pleasure today with a pain or pleasure tomorrow. For another, whereas the first
type of pleasures were false inasmuch as the ‘scribe’ wrote falsely (i.e. one made a
mistake of fact) and hence the ‘painter’ painted falsely (one enjoyed as fact
something that was only an illusion), here the pleasure is somehow false on its
own, and not because of false belief (42a–b). Finally, the estimation of pleasure
that Socrates has in mind is not simply how much one enjoys something, but
how much one enjoys it in comparison with something else, such as some other
pleasure, or a concomitant pain, and it is the comparison—the ‘how much
more’—that makes the pleasure false (42b–c).
It is clear, then, that the falsity involves some exaggerated estimation of
pleasures relative to pains and other pleasures, but the details are very sketchy.
Many commentators understand Socrates to be speaking of exaggerated esti-
mations of future pleasure, owing to the proximity of one’s current situation.30
To return to our earlier example, I may over-estimate the pleasure I expect from
my Jaguar, given the sharpness of my current desire for it. This reading is
motivated by Socrates’ restatement of his earlier point about the soul’s desiring
the condition opposite to the actual condition of the body (41b–d), which may
suggest that anticipation of a future pleasure is again what he has in mind. Thus,
for instance, J. C. B. Gosling argues that this second kind of false pleasure is a
special type of the first: it obtains, he says, when one is in distress, anticipates
pleasure, and exaggerates that pleasure because of the current distress.31 Yet on
this view these false pleasures are not false ‘in a different way’ from the previous
false pleasures, after all, but are a species of them, being based on false belief. An
even greater disadvantage of this kind of approach, however, is that it makes
30
See Gosling (1975: 219 f.); and Mooradian (1995), for different versions of this reading;
cf. D. Frede (1993: xlviii f.).
31
Alternatively, Mooradian (1995) argues that this kind of falsity occurs when a pleasure gives rise
to a false opinion, unlike the first kind in a which false opinion gives rise to a false pleasure (cf. 42a);
rather, one conceives of a future pleasure, enjoys the act of contemplating it, and tacitly concludes to
an exaggerated estimation of that pleasure, owing to a disparity between the future pleasure and the
current enjoyment of contemplating it. However, this reading requires us to introduce the pleasure
derived from the act of anticipating—the feeling of reveling in the anticipation, say—as having a
causal role that seems alien to Plato’s analysis thus far.
184 The Philebus: Part 2
32
Gosling (1975: 219), to his credit, recognizes this difficulty.
33
From Seinfeld, ‘The Glasses,’ Thursday 30 September 1993, 9.00 p.m., NBC. D. Frede (1992: 447)
cites the (far more sophisticated) example of Esau, who in the pangs of hunger ‘was induced to
overrate the worthwhileness of filling himself with a dish of lentils to the point where he thought the
pleasure was worth the price of his primogeniture, that is, the future pain of its loss’; and she correctly
observes that ‘not only does pleasure have its price, we enjoy it as having a price.’
34
I thank Bill Oberdick for this point.
The Philebus: Part 2 185
the sort of case that Plato has in mind here. (3) But suppose that I do know that
drinking so much tonight will have a cost tomorrow that I think—correctly—is
not worth paying; if I then choose to keep drinking despite the cost, it is no
longer available to me to enjoy the drinking as having a certain manageable cost,
much less as having no cost at all. Perhaps, then, I shall not really enjoy tonight’s
drinking very much; or I might employ the Seinfeld strategy, and simply block
the thought of the cost as a cost to me, that is, the ‘me’ that is here and now, in
order to enjoy the drinking as if cost-free to me, or at least try. Only in that way
can I enjoy it ‘by that much more’, that is, as if it actually were greater than what
will be incurred or forgone tomorrow. This falsity stems not from a false belief
about my future states, but from a sort of self-deception embodied in tonight’s
enjoyment. It is, then, this third kind of case that I think Plato has in mind here.
Notice what all of these cases illustrate: enjoying is typically ‘enjoying as’, and
often what follows the ‘as’ is a specification of how much one enjoys what one is
doing relative to the costs of what one is doing in terms of earned pains or
forfeited pleasures.35 How much I enjoy something often depends on my
estimation of the cost of the enjoyment, even if I am not consciously aware of
my having made any such estimation (and usually we are not; that is part of why
Seinfeld’s observation is humorous, since it reveals the absurdity of that
estimation once it is made conscious). They also illustrate how pleasures differ as
estimations do. The blissfully ignorant pleasure is innocent and carefree,
requiring no balancing of conflicting emotions about what is happening tonight
and what will happen in the morning. The calculating pleasures, by contrast, are
more complex, requiring just that sort of balancing to appease the conflicting
emotions, and the disassociating pleasures are not only complex but compli-
cated, as they block those conflicting emotions.
Since each pleasure represents the enjoyed activities in terms of a certain
estimation of their worth for the agent over time, an essential part of the
enjoyment is to represent the object of the enjoyment as having a certain value
relative to cost. But, of course, it is possible to misrepresent the enjoyment as
having that value relative to that cost, and thus that much of the enjoyment—
considered in this way as a representational state—can be said to be false,
because it misrepresents what one will want over time. And its falsity should
worry us if we are concerned to think of ourselves primarily as continuing agents,
as ‘Night Guy’ does not. Bad enough are those pleasures that rest on mistaken
estimations, placing the wrong kind of significance on one’s anticipated future.
35
It is more likely, then, that Socrates restates the point about the cohabitation of pleasures and
pains (41b–d) not to direct the argument once again to anticipation of pleasure but simply to show
that the pleasures he has in mind obtain in the context of some pain to which they are connected, for
instance, as the pleasure is enjoyed as having a minimal price in future pain, and consequently is seen
as having a greater relative proportion to that pain. This view is also taken by Waterfield (Plato, trans.
Waterfield 1982: 105 n. 1 ad 42b). Cf. D. Frede (1993: xlix), who notes that in this kind of case
pleasure is enjoyed ‘as having a certain size and price’ (emphasis in original); and D. Frede (1992:
446–8). This interpretation also makes the mistake in judgment analogous to that described at
Protagoras 356c–d.
186 The Philebus: Part 2
Even worse are these pleasures that rest on unrealistic, deluded, and self-
deceived estimations, ignoring the relevance of one’s future altogether.
Perhaps the greatest advantage of this way of understanding this second class
of false pleasures is that it gives Plato an especially strong response to the notion
that pleasures determine happiness. Pleasures are intimately bound up with our
ability to think of ourselves as continuing agents who can represent their present
activities to themselves in terms of their meaning for one’s future. Many pleas-
ures, in fact, just are such representations of our activities. Consequently, here
again we see that pleasure has a role to play in one’s life. Pleasure is not good by
its nature—how could just any representation, however unrealistic, of the
meaning of one’s activity be good by its nature?—but becomes good only if it
plays the sort of role that makes sense for it. Notice, then, the connection
between this analysis of pleasure and Plato’s thesis that reason is the ‘cause’ of
the goodness of the good life: what makes for goodness in one’s life is always
what gives every dimension of it the right kind of direction and the right kind of
role, in this case by grasping a reasonable account of one’s real interests are, and
thus of what is, in fact, worth what.
The third kind of false pleasure, Plato says, has an even greater falsity than
the first two (42c). It is rather disappointing, then, that they are ‘false’ in the
sense that they are not really pleasures at all. These ‘pleasures’ are what some
people confuse with a state without any perceived change or motion (42c–43d),
a state of mere absence of pain. Since this state is static and not dynamic,36 it
cannot really be a pleasure, but people only imagine that it is (43e–44a):
It has by now been said repeatedly that it is a destruction of the nature of [animals]
through combinations and separations, through processes of filling and emptying, as well
as certain kinds of growth and decay, that gives rise to pain and suffering, distress, and
whatever else comes to pass that goes under such a name.
Yes, that has often been said.
But when things are restored to their own nature again, this restoration, as we established
in our agreement among ourselves, is pleasure.
Correct. . . .
If in fact nothing of that sort took place, I will ask you, what would necessarily be the
consequence of this for us? . . .
This much is clear, Socrates, that in such a case there would not be either any pleasure or
pain at all. . . .
So we end up with three kinds of life, the life of pleasure, the life of pain, and the neutral
life. Or what would you say about these matters?
I would put it in the same way, that there are three kinds of life. . . .
Now, imagine three sorts of things, whichever you may like, and because these are high-
sounding names, let us call them gold, silver, and what is neither of the two.
Consider it done.
36
More precisely, we should say that it is static from our perspective, since Socrates concedes to
the view that nothing is ever static, but always changing and moving. This does not affect his case, he
says, since pleasure obtains only when the changes and motions are perceived by us (42d–43d).
The Philebus: Part 2 187
Is there any way conceivable in which this third kind could turn out to be the same as one
of our other two sorts, gold or silver?
How could it?
That the middle kind of life could turn out to be either pleasant or painful would be the
wrong thing to think, if anyone happened to think so, and it would be the wrong thing to
say, if anyone should say so, according to the proper account of the matter?
No doubt.
But we do find people who both think so and say so, my friend.
Certainly.
And do they really believe they experience pleasure when they are not in pain?
They say so, at any rate.
They believe therefore that they are pleased at that time. Otherwise they would not say that
they are.
It looks that way.
But they hold a false judgment about pleasure, if in fact freedom from pain and pleasure
each have a nature of their own.
But they do have their own. (42c9–d8, e7–8, 11–12 , 43c13–d3, e1–44a11)
The basic idea here is fairly clear: pleasure is not the same as the absence of pain,
and so those who think that the life of absence of pain is a life of pleasure are
mistaken. What is much less clear, however, is what follows from that basic idea.
Surely he means to show what he had suggested earlier, that a person can think
that she is experiencing pleasure but be mistaken (36e).37 Plato’s argument
shows that, but what is the importance of showing that, here?
Strangely, Plato does not draw a conclusion from this analysis, but moves
immediately to the analysis of the final kind of false pleasure, through a
notoriously mysterious transition about unnamed proponents of a false theory
of pleasure (44b–d). It would not be wise, then, to press Plato’s analysis of the
third class of false pleasures too far, for the next kind of false pleasure is clearly
more interesting to him. But for all that, we should be able to see how thinking
about this kind of false pleasure might contribute to the overall evaluation of
pleasure in which it appears.
Of course, Plato ought not to think that because some alleged ‘pleasures’ are
actually non-pleasures, some bona fide pleasures are therefore false. That would
be like thinking that because ‘false pregnancies’ are false, for instance, it follows
that some actual pregnancies are false,38 or that some kinds of knowledge are
false, on the grounds that some things that we think we know are not really true
after all. Now Plato’s argument would be easier if he were to treat this sort of
false pleasure as, say, the pleasure of anticipating a state of equilibrium as if it
were a kind of pleasure, when, in fact, it is not.39 This would make the third class
merely a special case of the first class, of course, but at least in that case the false
anticipatory pleasure would be an actual pleasure, whose falsity Plato has pre-
pared us for. But while Plato makes a similar move in Republic IX,40 such a move
37
For a good discussion of these issues, see D. Frede (1992: 448).
38 39
For this analogy, see D. Frede (1993: xlix). This is suggested by Gosling (1975: 220).
40
See 583c ff., and my discussion of this passage in Ch. 4.
188 The Philebus: Part 2
is conspicuously absent from the present passage.41 What point is Plato making
here about actual pleasures?
I think that his point is a modest but important one, namely that we
have something to learn from those who treat as supremely valuable a thing or
state about which they are fundamentally mistaken. Of course, there is nothing
more worrisome, ethically speaking, about thinking that the absence of pain is
pleasure, than about most other false beliefs about psychology or anything else.
The worry is that people might give this condition pride of place in their lives,
on the grounds that it is the greatest pleasure and as such worth pursuing. These
people would be pseudo-hedonists, as it were: they do not actually pursue
pleasure, but they think that they do—in fact, they seek what they seek on the
grounds that it is pleasure, and that is their mistake. And so the pseudo-hedonists
do not merely have a false belief about psychology, but live their lives as they do
on the basis of that false belief. And so, at any rate, here again the main point
seems to be that goodness is not to be found simply in what one takes to be
fulfilling and meaningful, but only in what really is. Here again, then, Plato
appears to give the direction of one’s life—and a realistic perspective on that
direction—a central place in understanding the nature of happiness. This is, at
any rate, the most I think we can say with any confidence about this class of
pleasures. None the less, it is most interesting that we can say even that much.
The fourth and final class of false pleasures42 that Plato discusses are the ‘most
intense’ ones (44d–45a), which involve a mixture of pleasure and pain. The most
intense physical43 pleasures, Socrates says, are mixed with pain: the greater, and
hence more painful, the preceding desire, the more intense the pleasure of satis-
fying the desire (45b). These kinds of experiences are evidently cases of satisfying-
while-lacking, such as satisfying thirst while it is strong, being warmed while one is
shivering, satisfying sexual desire while it is highly excited, and scratching while
one itches (see 45b–46a). These experiences, Socrates says, are so intensely pleasant
because they are ‘impure’, that is, mixed with enough pain to ‘spike’ them, as it
were, but little enough that there is still a preponderance of pleasure (45e–46b).44
Plato discusses the nature of this ‘mixture’ of pleasure and pain in far more
detail in his analysis of intense pleasures of the soul (47d–50e). Unfortunately,
41
Perhaps, however, Plato’s focus is not on the ‘pleasure’ that they pursue as a goal—which is not
pleasure at all—but on the pleasure taken in the pursuit of that goal. In that case, the false pleasure
would be the pleasure of believing that one’s mode of life is supremely pleasant, when in fact it is
not. This would, of course, bring Plato’s analysis of this pleasure right in line with his critique in
Republic IX of other modes of life that are valued as supremely pleasant, when in fact they are not. But
I think that this passage of the Philebus is too indeterminate for us to affirm this interpretation of it
with much confidence.
42
I follow D. Frede (1993: l) in considering the mixed pleasures as kinds of false pleasures. See also,
Irwin (1995: 329).
43
Although, strictly speaking, pleasures belong only to the soul, because desires do (35c–d), Plato
none the less distinguishes between pleasures that arise primarily through the body, primarily through
both the body and the soul, and primarily through the soul (see 31b ff.).
44
It is a well-established point that these pleasures are more or less equivalent to those prized by
Callicles in the Gorgias. See Ch. 2 for discussion.
The Philebus: Part 2 189
45
However, Plato’s account of comedy may have resonated at least somewhat better with those for
whom what we now call Greek Middle Comedy was paradigmatic, since the plots of such comedies
rely almost formulaically for climactic comic effect on the reversal of fortune of some ridiculous
character (often a procurer, swaggering soldier, cantankerous old man, or the like) who ‘gets it in the
end’ in some hilarious and usually ironic way. This sort of plot, and its frequency, can be seen both in
the surviving plays of Greek Middle Comedy, such as those of Menander, and in the later Roman
comedies which revived many of the plots of such earlier comedies, especially those of Plautus.
Consequently, in Plato’s time comic laughter seems to have been primarily a ridiculing form of
laughter. In fact, being ridiculous and thus worthy of derision is the basic sense of t¿ gelo·on, which is
what Plato is proposing to analyze (48c4). (On t¿ gelo·on see Stewart (1994). Consider also, e.g., the
mocking, ridiculing laughter directed at Thersites, and even Hephaestus, in the Iliad.) But I cannot
pursue this issue here.
46
In thinking about this passage I have benefited from discussions with Matt Evans.
47
I think that it is far preferable to understand fqnov as malice, and not as envy as some scholars
do, esp. Strauss (1966: 5); and Benardete (1993: 201 f.). Our ridiculing laughter at a fraudulent pander
who is tricked and humiliated, say—a staple of Greek Middle Comedy—surely does not presuppose
that we envy him, as though we regard him as better or better off than we are. Indeed, Strauss (1966:
5) himself recognizes that this is not a generally adequate account of ridicule in comedy contemporary
to Plato, but claims that it does capture the Clouds: Aristophanes depicts Socrates as ridiculous,
Strauss says, because he is ‘envious of his wisdom’. See also Benardete (1993: 201 ff.). But even this
seems to me a heroic stretch of the imagination at best. Worse, it treats the comic playwright as the
malicious one, whereas Plato discusses the malice of the comic spectator.
48
See D. Frede (1993: lii), who takes Plato to mean that we would not enjoy watching others’
follies committed in ignorance unless we harbor ‘a need to see them make fools of themselves’, a kind
of ‘Schadenfreude’, where this need ‘is a kind of pain’. I prefer Frede’s view to that of Hampton (1990:
67) and A. E. Taylor (1972: 74), that for Plato our laughter is based on our identification with, and
empathy for, those at whom we are laughing (as Hampton puts it, that our laughter springs from
‘some recognition that we also share the delusions of those walking the boards’); ridiculing laughter,
and the associated ill-will that Plato means to draw our attention to here, is surely in tension with such
empathy and identification.
190 The Philebus: Part 2
bear them,49 for a crucial part of what we enjoy in their misfortune just is that
it happens to them. Since comic laughter is unjustified enjoyment of others’
misfortunes, and thus is malicious, it presupposes that we bear them some
painful ill-will, and so comic laughter is ‘mixed’ with pain.
At present, we are less concerned with how well or badly this account fares as a
psychological analysis of comic laughter than with what this analysis of malicious
delight shows about pleasure and pain. Notice that the pain of ill-will does not
merely accompany the delight at misfortunes, but makes that delight the sort of
delight that it is; such delight is the delight of satisfied ill-will. Consequently, these
kinds of pleasures are ‘false’ in the sense that they are metaphysically impure,
intimately depending on the presence of their opposite.50 But what follows from
the fact that such pleasures have that sort of metaphysical status?
Again Plato does not say; but we should notice a couple of interesting features
of his discussion of these false pleasures. For one thing, this discussion leads
once again into thinking about pleasure within the context of a whole life.
Plato claims that these most intense, mixed pleasures are praised by many as the
most worthy objects to spend one’s life pursuing (47b), even though the pain on
which these intense, mixed pleasures are based arises from a disturbed psy-
chological or physical condition—indeed, the most intense pleasures would have
to be found in a worthless condition of body and soul (45e).51 That Plato is
49
It is interesting to note how this treatment of fqnov differs from Aristotle’s. Plato treats fqnov
as a pleasant emotion that presupposes a pain, whereas Aristotle treats fqnov simply as a painful
emotion. Fqnov, Aristotle says, is pain at the good fortune of others like us (Rhetoric II.10). This is
connected to another difference, namely that Aristotle is concerned with fqnov in the sense of ‘envy’,
rather than ‘malice’. See Eudemian Ethics II.3, 1221a–b and Nicomachean Ethics II.7, 1108b, in which
envy is discussed as a vice of excess of pain (felt at others’ deserved prosperity), opposed to the
unnamed vice of deficiency of pain (not felt at any prosperity), on the one hand, and to the virtue of
indignation as a mean of pain felt at undeserved prosperity, on the other. Plato, however, typically
thinks of fqnov as malice rather than envy; cf., e.g., Apology 18d, 28a, Gorgias 457d. (See Damascius,
Lectures on the Philebus x 201, who says in regard to 48b that one who enjoys friends’ misfortunes is
picairkakov, while the one who is annoyed at their prosperity is fqnerov. Clearly, Damascius took
Plato to be discussing malice, and not envy, at 48b, and chose very different vocabulary from Plato’s in
order to clarify Plato’s point.) However, Aristotle does note that envy has a correlative pleasure: if the
envious person is pained at the good fortune of equals, then he will also be pleased at their bad fortune
(Rhetoric II.10). fqnov can have both of these senses, depending on whether it is a pain, as primarily
interests Aristotle, or a pleasure, as interests Plato. This suggests that fqnov manifests itself either as a
pleasure at misfortunes or a pain at good fortunes; what both Plato and Aristotle notice about the
emotion of malice is that it always presupposes some single state of soul, namely ill-will toward others,
and Plato claims that this state is always a distress. Hence, fqnov is a ‘double’ emotion: the painful ill-
will itself (as at 48b, 50a), and the manifestation of the ill-will either as pleasure (malice, as at 47e, 49d)
or pain (envy). This understanding of malice allows Plato to notice that malice is a pleasure mixed
with pain, that is a pleasure of enjoyment which presupposes a pain of ill-will. It also brings malice in
line with the other ‘mixed’ pleasures, which are pleasures one can enjoy only because one also has
some kind of pain (e.g. itching or hunger; see 46c–47d).
50
I think that this fact about Plato’s analysis answers the legitimate worry of Gadamer (1983) that
fqnov qua pleasure is separable from fqnov qua pain, such that the pleasant version of the emotion
need not be mixed with the painful version—in which case it would be unclear why, if one side of
fqnov is pleasant, that pleasure must contain pain just because the other side of fqnov is painful.
51
Cf. D. Frede (1993: li), (1992: 450), who claims that Socrates’ point about mixed pleasure is
quasi-medical, i.e. that such pleasures rely on disturbed physical conditions. Although Plato makes
The Philebus: Part 2 191
denying these pleasures the value they are thought to have is obvious, when
one thinks about value in the context of one’s life as a whole: how could
something have that kind of value, when its presence depends upon the
breakdown of one’s physical and psychic condition? Indeed, the discussion has
ironically come full circle: whereas we began thinking about pleasure as valuable
for its ‘experience’, we now find that when its experience is most intense, its
value is most questionable!52
At this point it is important to return to Protarchus, and ask what sort of
impact this analysis of false pleasures has had on him. We find a rather
remarkable development. At first, although Socrates had been able to persuade
Protarchus that some forms of pleasure can be false, Protarchus was none the
less confident that such falsity could have nothing to do with the value of such
pleasures, understood as kinds of experience or sensation (41a–b). In fact, in
response to Socrates’ claim that the falsity of the first class of false pleasures is
what their badness consists in (40e), Protarchus had retorted:
What you say is quite the opposite of the truth, Socrates! It is not at all because they are
false that we regard pleasures or pains as bad, but because there is some other grave and
wide-ranging kind of badness involved. (41a1–4)
As we have seen, Protarchus originally held that a pleasure could never be
bad, however false it is; perhaps some further sort of badness might attach to
such a pleasure, but qua pleasure such a pleasure itself could never be bad.
Rather than resolving this issue straightaway, however, Socrates merely recog-
nized Protarchus’ objection, and moved on to discuss further sorts of false
pleasures (41a–b). Clearly, his discussion of them is meant to expose what is
wrong in this sort of objection.53
Interestingly, at the end of their discussion of the second class of false pleas-
ures, Protarchus actually agrees with Socrates that the pleasure we over-estimate
is false (42c), without repeating his familiar refrain that the value of pleasure
remains untouched despite its falsity. Why does he make this change? We might
think that Protarchus goes along with Socrates simply because the issue of the
value of such pleasure is left aside in the discussion of its epistemic status. But
this point during his discussion of specifically physical pleasures, he extends the point to the condition
of the body as well as the soul, and so presumably this is meant as a fully general point about all mixed
pleasures.
52
See Plato, trans. Waterfield (1982: 19 f.), who takes Socrates to be offering a reductio ad
absurdum: the most intense pleasures, which the hedonist should take to be best, require the presence
of pain, which the hedonist takes to be bad; the best pleasures according to the hedonist, then, should
be excluded from the hedonist’s life. Although this is an interesting argument, Socrates himself does
not suggest it. My own view is not that Socrates offers such a reductio, but that he wants to draw
attention to the crucial fact that pleasure cannot be accepted as the good without thinking about what
place it is capable of occupying within the good life.
53
And this is a reasonable way for Socrates to proceed, since what Socrates must do is not offer a
tidy refutation, but dig in and change Protarchus’ mind. For it is not enough simply to show
Protarchus that pleasure can be worthless, but he must also show him how that can be the case. I thank
George Rudebusch for this way of putting the point.
192 The Philebus: Part 2
that cannot be the reason, for Protarchus is the one who raised the point about
the value of pleasure in the first place, in response to the point about its epi-
stemic status (37e–38a); so if the point does not get raised here, that is pre-
sumably because Protarchus does not feel moved to raise it again. What is more,
after their discussion of false pleasures, Protarchus eventually goes on to claim
that ‘a great absurdity seems to appear, Socrates, if we posit pleasure as a good’
(55a9–11)! Clearly, Protarchus no longer thinks of pleasure in the same way.
Once we recognize that pleasure is a kind of perspective, and can be an
unrealistic perspective on one’s projects, we also see that we can think of the
value of pleasure as untouchable only by failing to comprehend ourselves fully
as continuing agents with lives to construct, in which pleasure can take a better
or worse role. The gradual54 change that Plato depicts in Protarchus, I think,
mirrors the change he means to make in us, as we begin to see that our
evaluation of pleasure must be connected to our conception of ourselves as
continuing agents living a whole life, and this begins slowly to change our
evaluation of pleasure itself.55 Pleasure is not a simple sensation but a complex
way of representing its object in terms of an agent’s values. As such, the falsity of
false pleasures does indeed infect their value (cf. 38a–40e).
I think that Plato’s point here is important and insightful. Consider a rather
poignant scene from the popular movie The Green Mile. The story is set in a
prison, and ‘the Green Mile’ is prison slang for its death row, which has a pale
green floor. One of the inmates, Del, is a feeble man but has made several friends
among the guards, and when the time for his execution draws near, the guards
try to keep him from finding out before necessary by devising a plan to get him
off the Green Mile while they do a dry run of the rather complicated execution
procedure. Now Del has adopted a mouse he found in his cell and trained it to
do simple tricks, and so the guards stage a mock demonstration before certain
54
While Protarchus does undergo a significant change in his attitude toward pleasure, we should
not expect his ‘conversion’ to be much more than partial or preliminary. See D. Frede (1993: lxv); see
also (1992: 427 f., 432).
55
As Annas (1999: 155) notes, there is congruence on this point in the Gorgias and the Philebus; for
in both Plato argues that, ‘Pursuit of pleasure unrestrained by the virtues turns out to be a kind of
floundering, a pursuit of local satisfaction at the cost of overall coherence.’ (See also Ch. 2 and my
discussion of Gorgias 494c ff.; cf. Irwin (1995: 331).) Irwin (1995: 329, cf. 327 f., 333–5) also sees
Plato’s strategy as drawing our attention to thinking about lives, not just experiences: ‘Plato’s
task . . . [is] to show that there is something clearly bad about each of these lives [corresponding to the
four kinds of false pleasure] and that a hedonist cannot identify what is bad about them.’ He also
notes astutely that hedonist responses to his discussions of false pleasures—e.g. that the pleasure is
distinct in being and value from the mistake associated with them—would be of no help in fending off
this strategy: ‘The account of false anticipatory pleasures suggests the general form of Plato’s objection
to the different sorts of false pleasures. In order to have false anticipatory pleasures, we must suffer
from some recognizable defect . . . We are justified in preferring to be free of this defect, and so the sort
of life that cannot exist without the defect cannot be the best life. . . . If we could have a life that
contained pleasure without the cognitive defect involved in false anticipatory pleasure, then we would
have reason to prefer that life over the one containing false anticipatory pleasure; but the hedonist
requires us to say that the two lives are equally good. This is the basis of a legitimate objection to
hedonism’ (330). I think that Irwin is correct, but for a dissenting view see Carone (2000: esp. 271 ff.).
The Philebus: Part 2 193
56
I am reminded here of Robert Nozick’s famous ‘experience machine’ thought experiment, in
which one is given the option of experiencing anything one wishes, for life, but only if one plugs into a
machine that generates those experiences while the viewer does nothing (see Nozick (1974: 42–5)).
I think that Plato—like the rest of us—would agree with Nozick that the only response is to decline such
an offer: it matters that the world in which we live be a real one, however pleasant a fake one may be.
194 The Philebus: Part 2
57
See D. Frede (1993: liv) for a good discussion.
The Philebus: Part 2 195
which presents its own puzzles. One is the non-relativity of the beauty of
beautiful objects of true pleasure, and the other is the purity of true pleasures,
understood as their independence from perceived desire.
Socrates gives as an example of ‘relative’ beauty certain shapes that are
beautiful not in their own right but only in so far as they go together to compose
a further figure which is itself beautiful. The beauty of those shapes is
‘borrowed’, as it were, from the beauty of the whole figure they compose. Other
shapes, however, are beautiful in their own right. A circle, for instance, is
beautiful full stop, and not in virtue of composing into a greater whole that
is beautiful (51c–d). Since Plato has in mind things that are forever beautiful in
themselves and by their nature, he must not think of beauty as a subjectively
perceived quality, such as ‘pleasing to the eye’, but as some sort of objective,
permanent feature of a shape, such as its being proportional or symmetrical,
although the precise details here must remain highly conjectural.
We may also wonder how this idea is connected to the second, concerning the
‘purity’ of the pleasures caused by such objectively beautiful things. This is not
helped by the fact that Plato speaks of more than one type of purity in this part
of the dialogue. After discussing the purity of the objects of true pleasures, Plato
then shifts to the purity of the pleasure taken in these objects, as he says that
pleasures of smell and learning are pure because they are not (necessarily)
dependent on any sort of prior pain (51e–52b). Apparently, the purity of the
object has something to do with the purity of the pleasure taken in the object, but
what exactly?
The connection will become clearer if we return to the objectivity of beauty.
The fact that a pleasure is independent of pain, Plato says, is what makes it
pure—unadulterated by its opposite—and therefore true, in the sense of being a
genuine form of pleasure, in the most proper and strict sense, as the purest shade
of white is the most genuine shade of white (52c–53c). So just as true whiteness
is found in the purest, rather than the largest, white sample, so too the truest and
best pleasure is found in the purest, rather than the most intense, enjoyment
(53a–c). Consequently, because naturally beautiful objects—objects with a ‘pure’
or genuine beauty, a beauty that is their own—depend on no pain of desire in
order to bring us pleasure, the pleasure they bring us is therefore pure and
genuine as well, being independent of any pain.
Interestingly, pleasure again seems to emerge as a rather special kind of
representing, which can work in two directions. On the one hand, it can project
beauty onto things by taking them to have some sort of power to satisfy the
desires it is aware of; for instance, I may take pleasure in acquiring a Jaguar, but
only because I desire the Jaguar, and thus attribute to it a value which, absent
such desires, it does not have on its own. In this sort of case, the pleasure comes
not from the Jaguar per se, but from the Jaguar as I desire it; its ‘beauty’—its
power to please and satisfy—is therefore not its own. On the other, pleasure can
also detect the beauty and value in a naturally beautiful or valuable object itself,
independent of any perceived lack in terms of which to construe the object. On
196 The Philebus: Part 2
Plato’s view, the beauty of a simple, beautiful shape, color, sound, or scent is not
projected onto them, but detected in them, since they have a power to please
that is not conditioned on a prior desire in terms of which we construe them.58
Where does this leave us? Again, Plato could be more helpful, but I do think
that two points emerge from this discussion. One is that pleasure gains direction
as it becomes more realistic, finding beauty and value in things inasmuch as they
really are beautiful and valuable. What we need is not simply to go around
attributing beauty and value to anything, but to be in the right kind of contact
with what beauty and value there really is. And that is to say that pleasure has a
role to play and a direction to take, a direction which must come from reason.
The other, which Plato now discusses, is that giving pleasure a certain kind of
pride of place in one’s life can actually threaten one’s ability to construct the life
of a genuine agent, and thus is out of sorts with human nature. He begins his
argument for this point as follows:
Have we not been told that pleasure is always a process of becoming [gnesiv], and that
there is no being [o˝s‹a] at all of pleasure? There are some subtle thinkers who have tried
to pass on this doctrine to us, and we ought to be grateful to them.
What does it mean? . . .
. . . What is really meant is that all things are either for the sake of something else or they
are that for whose sake the other kind comes to be in each case [t¿ mn " neka tou tØn ˆntwn
st< e‹, t¿ d< o crin kstote t¿ tin¿v " neka gignmenon e› g‹gnetai]. . . . Take on the
one hand the generation [gnesin] of all things, on the other their being [o˝s‹an].
I accept this pair from you, being and generation.
Excellent. Now, which of the two do you think exists for the other’s sake? Shall we say
that generation takes place for the sake of being, or does being exist for the sake of
generation? . . .
By heavens, what a question to ask me! You might as well ask: ‘Tell me, Protarchus,
whether shipbuilding goes on for the sake of ships or whether ships are for the sake of
shipbuilding,’ or some such thing. . . .
[Very well.] I hold that all ingredients, as well as all tools, and quite generally all materials,
are always provided for the sake of some process of generation. I further hold that every
process of generation in turn always takes place for the sake of some particular being, and
that all generation taken together takes place for the sake of the existence of being as a
whole.
Nothing could be clearer.
Now, pleasure, since it turns out to be a kind of generation, comes to be for the sake of
some being.
Of course.
But that for whose sake something comes to be ought to be put into the class of the things
good in themselves, while that which comes to be for the sake of something else belongs in
another class, my friend.
Undeniably.
58
Whether their beauty is thus independent of the existence of agents to perceive this beauty, or
whether this beauty is identical to their power to cause perceptions of just these types in agents, is
another matter, and one that I shall leave aside for present purposes.
The Philebus: Part 2 197
59
e.g. this is the premise of Roy Underhill’s immensely enjoyable PBS show, The Woodwright’s Shop,
in which he demonstrates how to work with wood using only antiquated tools and methods.
60
For this example, see Gosling and Taylor (1982: 73).
198 The Philebus: Part 2
our desires need to be unified under a final end, that is, a goal of being a certain
kind of person, of being whole.61 Someone whose goal is the life of pleasure has
no goal after all. Unfortunately, Socrates says, it is just this mistake that many
people make:
It is true, then, as I said at the beginning of this argument, that we ought to be grateful to
the person who indicated to us that there is always only generation of pleasure and that it
has no being whatsoever. And it is obvious that he will just laugh at those who claim that
pleasure is good.
Certainly.
But this same person will also laugh at those who find their fulfillment in processes of
generation.
How so, and what sort of people are you alluding to?
I am talking of those who cure their hunger and thirst or anything else that is cured by
processes of generation. They take delight in generation as a pleasure and proclaim that
they would not want to live if they were not subject to hunger and thirst and if they could
not experience all the other things one might want to mention in connection with such
conditions.
That is very like them.
But would we not all say that destruction is the opposite of generation?
Necessarily.
So whoever makes this choice would choose generation and destruction in preference to
that third life which consists of neither pleasure nor pain, but is a life of thought in the
purest degree possible.62
So a great absurdity seems to appear, Socrates, if we posit pleasure as a good. (54d4–
55a11)
The mistake that worries Plato about this way of valuing pleasure is a mistake
about self-conception: what matters in life is the way in which one intelligently
constructs a life, a future, and a self by one’s actions and goals, in a way that will
fulfill one’s deepest needs as a human, and the view that pleasure makes one’s
life happy cannot make sense of that. To locate one’s good in pleasure rather
than in concerns and aims that give one’s life direction is to adopt concerns and
aims that have no direction—to satisfy this desire, and then that one—and thus
to give up on a conception of one’s self as an agent who acts for a purpose, who
has a life as a whole, and a self, to construct. It is to fail to see that desire needs a
direction. Moreover, one can fail to recognize that pleasure also needs a dir-
ection in one’s life, a direction that it does not give itself. Indeed, this is a failure
61
Cp. the similar objection that Plato makes at Gorgias 492d ff. that centering one’s existence
around pleasure is to give up on the idea of becoming someone in favor of repeating an aimless cycle
of need and satisfaction.
62
This does not mean, however, that a pleasureless life is a preferable life for us, or would be
preferable for us if it were possible. Con. D. Frede (1993: 66 n. 2 ad 55b–c). Now Socrates’ mention of
the pleasureless life at 55a does refer to the life of the gods, which he mentioned at 22b–c. But I think
that Socrates’ point is that people who value pleasure as a good would be unable to explain what the
goodness of the gods’ life could possibly consist in, since on their view generation and destruction is
good for its own sake, so that the gods’ life must be missing some crucial good.
The Philebus: Part 2 199
to recognize that one’s whole life needs a direction, which pleasure cannot give.
Pleasure as Plato understands it can be adopted as one’s ultimate aim in life only
at the cost of surrendering the notion of a direction that embraces the whole self.
It turns out that the life governed by the pursuit of pleasure really is a clam’s life
after all.
And this is why Plato turns his attention to ‘true’, ‘pure’ pleasures, which exist
only as long as one does not become agitated about acquiring their objects. To
see this, notice that it cannot be just the object of a pure pleasure that makes it
pure. The simple pleasure of enjoying the sweet fragrance and flavor of good
wine can, after all, become anything but simple. When people develop strong
cravings for such experiences, what they enjoy is not the beauty of the wine itself,
but the more intense pleasure of satisfying their craving for it. In such cases, the
craving itself has become integral to the pleasure, and thus to the entire pursuit.
Such a pleasure is, therefore, no longer true, on Plato’s view, because the same
object is now enjoyed not for what it is itself but qua object of craving. This
illustrates, I think, the key difference between true and false pleasures: false
pleasures can elevate neediness itself to the status of a kind of goal, and true
pleasures cannot. The difference between them, then, is the place one gives them
among one’s concerns, and thus in one’s life. And so the problem with hedonism
is not that it makes some pleasures central in one’s life rather than others, but
that what it makes central in one’s life is something that robs one’s life of its
direction, by one’s very act of making it central.63
63
Consequently, even an alleged ‘hedonism of true pleasure’ would fare no better on Plato’s view.
The key to salvaging hedonism, on Plato’s view, would not be a matter of identifying the right family
of pleasures, since Plato’s worry is that hedonism is structurally unfit as a form of eudaimonism, since
it embodies a fundamental confusion about the nature of human goals.
200 The Philebus: Part 2
a kind of good behavior and good attitude. This is what we mean by rational
incorporation in the case of such psychic goods as pleasure.64
Plato explores the idea of rational incorporation as he comes at last to con-
sider what sort of mixture the good life is. He begins by examining the types of
reason that belong to the good life, arguing that there are many different kinds
of knowledge and reasoning, differing in terms of their purity and precision.65
Of these, the truest and purest is the science of dialectic, which is about what is
real in the most absolute sense, and which thus deserves the title of ‘intellect’ and
‘reason’ (57e–59d). It is important to see what Socrates thinks knowledge or
intelligence is like, in order to understand how and why it plays the role it does
in the ‘mixing’ of the good life. For pleasure is mixed into the good life only after
all forms of knowledge and reason, and even then only by their permission
(62d–63e), since knowledge and reason have the greatest affinity to goodness
(60b). In this mixture, as in all mixtures, the nature of its goodness consists in
measure and proportion, as well as beauty, excellence, and truth (64d–65a):
[A]ny kind of mixture that does not in some way or other possess measure or the nature of
proportion will necessarily corrupt its ingredients and most of all itself. For there would be
no blending in such cases at all but really an unconnected medley, the ruin of whatever
happens to be contained in it.
Very true.
But now we notice that the force of the good has taken refuge in an alliance with the nature
of the beautiful. For measure and proportion manifest themselves in all areas as beauty
and virtue.
Undeniably.
But we did say that truth is also included along with them in our mixture?
Indeed.
Well, then, if we cannot capture the good in one form, we will have to take hold of it in a
conjunction of three: beauty, proportion, and truth. Let us affirm that these things should
be treated as a unity and be held responsible for what is in the mixture, for its goodness is
what makes the mixture itself a good one.
Very well stated. (64d9–65a6)
What is clear here66 is that the goodness of the good life consist in the beauty,
proportion, and truth that are manifest in all aspects of that life, that is, its order
and proportion toward which an intelligent agent organizes the various aspects
of a life into a good life. Plato thus ranks reason and pleasure relative to one
64
And we can say the same about pains, as well: the capacity to find something grieving and
disturbing is as important a part of human existence as the capacity to find something enjoyable. Plato
seems to say as much in the Laws: ‘Pleasure and pain, you see, flow like two springs released by nature.
If a man draws the right amount from the right one at the right time, he lives a happy life; but if he
draws unintelligently at the wrong time, his life will be rather different’ (I, 636d7–e3, emphasis
added). I shall return to this passage in the next chapter.
65
Plato first distinguishes two basic branches of knowledge, the ‘practical’ kinds and the kinds
involved in education and learning (55d), the latter being purer than the former. Moreover, within
each of these branches are two further groups, which also differ in purity (55d–57a), but with which
we need not concern ourselves now.
66
See Sayre (1987) for a closer (but controversial) discussion.
The Philebus: Part 2 201
67
This is important, because Socrates needs to show more than that the contribution of reason to
the good life is merely different from that of pleasure; see Gosling (1975: 224 f.); see also Plato, trans.
Waterfield (1982: 33), for related concerns; Annas (1999: 152 f.); Irwin (1995: 325); Hackforth (1945:
68
134, 138). Cf. Gosling (1975: 225f.); Gosling and Taylor (1982: 135).
69
Cp. the Phaedo, in which certain pleasures are to be omitted from the life of virtue because they
serve to ‘rivet’ the soul to the body, frustrating its pure, rational activity. See chapter 3.
70
Hackforth (1945: 128), notes that the personification of reason and pleasure suggests a har-
monious cohabitation within a balanced whole, rather than an imposed modus vivendi.
71
I accept the view that there are five, rather than six, items identified and ranked at 66a–d. For the
view that there are five, see D. Frede (1993: lxvi); Gosling (1975: 224). For the view that there are six
(the sixth being the necessary pleasures) see Damascius, Lectures on the Philebus x 253 (reporting the
view of Syrianus); Hackforth (1945: 139, 140 n. 3); Plato, trans. Waterfield (1982: 34).
72
Cf. the point I made in Ch. 3, that Plato in the Phaedo is hostile not toward pleasure per se, but
toward pleasure inasmuch as one fails to act rationally in relation to it.
202 The Philebus: Part 2
It is important to recognize that those pleasures are ‘the true and pure pleas-
ures’ and ‘the pleasures of health and of temperance and all those that commit
themselves to virtue’. As we have seen, what makes a pleasure true or false is the
place one gives it among one’s concerns, and thus in one’s life. Notice, first, that
Plato thinks that pleasure can be given the right kind of place; there are reasonable
pleasures, and so pleasure is a conditional good. More than that, some pleasures
are actually inseparable from virtue: the pleasures of temperance, for instance, are
clearly not the pleasures in relation to which temperance acts, but the pleasures of
being a temperate person, and more generally the pleasures of virtue are the
pleasures that are characteristic of a virtuous person. As we have seen, pleasures
are value-laden attitudes, and so to be virtuous is to have healthy and realistic
values, and to enjoy one’s life in ways that reflect those healthy and realistic
values. This has the important consequence that virtuous people do not merely
have a ‘handle’ on their pleasures, but have been changed and transformed in
their pleasures, so that their pleasures are a part of their healthy and reasonable
outlook on themselves and their real interests. Pleasure follows goals, and where
goals are transformed, so too is pleasure. My reasonable desiring is one aspect of
virtue, just as is my treating others reasonably, and the same will be true of my
being pleased reasonably—it just is one expression of my wisdom and reason,
and thus one aspect of my virtuous activity. Enjoying my life in a virtuous way is
one kind of being virtuous. It is the product of my reason and wisdom bringing
order into my desires and capacities for pleasure.73 Human virtue consists in
reason’s informing with order and ‘limit’ the otherwise unlimited materials of the
self as a whole (see 64e), including one’s desires, emotions, and pleasures.74
Pleasure therefore has a very different role to play in the good life than we—
and Protarchus—might have originally thought. And understanding this role
will enable us to explain how it is that pleasure is necessary for happiness, despite
being only conditionally good: it is necessary not as an indispensable ingredient
in addition to reason and virtue, but as a part of virtuous character as a whole.
This is so because virtue is the perfection not merely of one part or dimension of
the self but of the whole self, and pleasure is part of the self—in fact, it is a very
73
Taking the pleasures of the virtuous life as being generated as reason brings order upon the soul
also avoids the possible worry that the good life will contain pleasures of becoming virtuous, but not of
being virtuous (see Annas (1999: 156 f.); cp. the similar worries of Gosling and Taylor (1982)
regarding Republic IX, which I discussed in Ch. 4). For being virtuous, on my view, consists in a
constant living in accordance with reason. The Philebus, then, is amenable to the idea that pleasure
supervenes on the happy life.
74
Ficino, The Philebus Commentary I.34, also argues for the unity of pleasure and wisdom, and
says that other Platonists had argued thus as well. Since our happiness, and thus our final end, must be
one thing and unified, pleasure and wisdom must therefore be unified. That they are unified is the
view, he says, of Porphyry and Plotinus, since the pleasure of understanding can scarcely be dis-
tinguished from the act of understanding itself (quoniam voluptas intelligentiae vix ab ipsa distinguitur,
425); see also Damascius, Lectures on the Philebus xx 87–8. They become unified as together they seek
the good. When the soul grasps the good through the intellect, the result is wisdom; when the soul
retains that grasp through the will, the result is pleasure; and this condition in the whole soul is the
happiness of the human life. This view suggests that reason structures the soul, and a certain pleasure
is itself part of that structure.
The Philebus: Part 2 203
special part of the self, in which one’s deepest values and concerns find their
affective expression. Pleasure is not merely something that we should have the
right attitudes about, as for instance wealth is, but actually one of the very
attitudes that we take toward other things. It is therefore always a part of one’s
character, either for better or for worse, and so we cannot give a complete
account of virtue unless we take into account the pleasures of the virtuous
character that ascribe value to things in rational ways. Pleasure transformed is
part of the good life, not because virtue is not enough for the good life, but
precisely because virtue is enough. Pleasure transformed, like every aspect of the
transformed self, is necessary for happiness because that is the kind of whole that
virtue is.
One of Plato’s central aims in the Philebus is to take seriously the thesis that:
(1) Pleasure is necessary for happiness, because pleasure has a power with respect to happiness
that virtue does not have, such that happiness is incomplete without it.
This thesis, a version of the additive conception of happiness, is embodied in
Protarchus’ initial position, and in much popular thought. Plato argues against
it on the grounds that the power to determine happiness is the power to provide
good direction within one’s life, in all of its dimensions, and that is a power that
pleasure does not have, but which intelligent agency does. This is the point of
Plato’s claim that pleasure is among the ‘unlimited’, inchoate material of a good
life, while reason is the cause that makes a good life good. Moreover, it is in this
sense that pleasure is a conditional good, and intelligent agency an uncondi-
tional good.
However, Plato does hold that pleasure is necessary for happiness since
pleasure is a part of the self to be transformed and rationally incorporated into
the life of virtue. Consequently:
(2) Pleasure is necessary for happiness, because the pleasure of a virtuous life is necessary for a
virtuous life, and a virtuous life determines happiness.
In fact, the thesis that virtue determines and suffices for happiness actually
requires the thesis that pleasure is necessary for happiness—so far from being in
tension with it—given Plato’s understanding of rational incorporation and the
holistic nature of virtue.75
75
I think that these two ways of thinking of the necessity of pleasure (or rather, ‘joy’) for happiness
are also evident in Arius Didymus’ discussion of the e˝pqeiai. On the one hand, Arius says that while
virtue is necessary for happiness, ‘joy and good spirits’ are not (Stobaeus, Anthology II.6d). But, on the
other, Arius also classifies joy and good spirits among ‘good things’ (II.5b, 5c, 5g, 5k), and even claims
that being joyful is a morally perfect action (II.11e); this line of thought is clearly related to the Stoic
view that joy and good spirits are concomitants of virtue (Diogenes Laertius, Lives VII.94, 116–17), in
which case being a joyful person is part of what it is to be a virtuous person (cf. Seneca, Letters to
Lucilius 23.3–5). The Stoics never take seriously the idea that the virtuous life could be affectless—in
fact, quite the contrary (see Diogenes Laertius, Lives VII.117)—and since such a life cannot include
unreasonable affections (pqh), it must include reasonable affections, or the e˝paqe·ai. In that case,
however, it would seem that joy is necessary for happiness after all. The simplest explanation of this
apparent tension, I think, is that what Arius in fact denies is that the e˝pqeiai are necessary as
204 The Philebus: Part 2
Notice too that if rational incorporation rules out thesis (1), it also rules out:
(3) Pleasure is necessary for happiness, because, lamentably, we cannot do without it.
On this thesis, pleasure would be rather like an annoying neighbor, to borrow
Olympiodorus’ example (Commentary on the Phaedo 4.3), to whose presence one
must simply resign oneself as unavoidable. But Plato does much better than this,
by offering a compelling psychological analysis of pleasure which demonstrates
not merely that pleasure requires a limit but also what kind of limit pleasure is
capable of receiving, portraying inchoate pleasure as transformable and capable
of coming to adopt limit within itself, given proper guidance, as a child is capable
of maturing and coming to accept for himself the sort of direction his parents
now seek to instill in him. Thesis (3), by contrast, holds that pleasure can only be
managed and contained, as a wild animal can be tamed and taught to act, but
only in ways that it never understands, much less accepts for itself. Children can
be transformed into mature adults but, with beasts, one must simply gain and
keep the upper hand. But to treat pleasures as something for me to get an upper
hand over ignores the fact that my pleasures are part of me, and as such they are
part of the worth of my character, and indeed of my very identity.
Plato’s moral psychology is crucial for understanding what place he takes
pleasure to have in the good life. I have argued here for a new way of under-
standing what this place is, that makes sense of both Plato’s insistence that
pleasure is only conditionally good, and his insistence that pleasure is necessary
for the good life. This understanding has allowed us to see a unified and
coherent ethical view of pleasure in Plato, avoiding both hedonist and asceticist
interpretations, and making sense of the centrality and holism of virtue in
Plato’s ethics. None the less, while Plato’s ethical evaluation of pleasure is quite
promising, and while the sort of psychological analysis he provides in the
Philebus does seem to support it, still it also seems that Plato was attracted to
other psychological models as well, which do not. It is to this issue that we now
turn in earnest, in the final chapter.
producers of happiness, as if they had some power of their own with respect to happiness, without
which virtue is insufficient for happiness; I do not think that he means to deny that the happy life is a
joyful life. Rather, on Arius’ view, virtue is such as to benefit, and I think that joy is among those
things with respect to which he says virtue brings about benefit. In that case, Arius denies the necessity
of joy for happiness in the sense of thesis (1) above, but not in the sense of thesis (2).
7
Pleasure, Value, and Moral Psychology in
the Republic, Laws, and Timaeus
In his allegorical novel The Great Divorce, C. S. Lewis figuratively depicts the
transformation of the various aspects of people’s lives by spiritual enlighten-
ment. One character in his story is burdened with a lizard that represents his
passion, a depiction intended to illustrate how ugly and deformed this area of his
psyche has become. While the man wishes to be rid of the lizard and its tyranny
over him, still he cannot bring himself to let it go, which he sees as giving up
that part of himself altogether, and he cannot imagine his life without it. Once
he does give it up, the lizard passes away, only to be transformed into a beautiful
horse, and the man discovers the beauty of which he never knew his passion was
capable. He does not get rid of his passion, nor does he merely gain the upper
hand over something that remains a lizard. Instead, he becomes free as his
passion changes from a tyrannical master over the rest of his psyche to a willing
and cooperative partner. This allegory is meant to illustrate that becoming
morally mature is not to lose any of the aspects of one’s humanity, or to
diminish them and subordinate them to some other aspects, but to effect their
transformation into new, different, and beautiful things that form a part of one’s
new life as a whole and integrated being.1
Lewis seems to understand the conformity of an integrated person’s passions
to her practical intelligence as a kind of agreement: the passions do not retain
their former character, only under tighter rein, but take on a new character
altogether; and while in Lewis’s allegory that character remains an animal
character, its change is clearly intended to depict that the transformed person in
the allegory now has an entirely different perspective on his passions, which now
work in different, healthier ways. The change from lizard to horse also shows a
change from slavery to one’s passions—as the lizard forces the man where it
wants by sinking its claws into him—to a freedom secured not by forceful
control of a naturally unwilling servant, but by a leadership over a willing cohort
that, like a good horse, will follow as one directs it. Consequently, Lewis seems to
1
See Lewis (1946: 98–103). I thank Mark LeBar for bringing this work and its relevance to my
attention. Compare this sort of transformation to the transformation within the virtuous person from
the pqh to the e˝pqeiai in Stoic psychology and ethics.
206 The Republic, Laws, and Timaeus
embrace what I shall call the agreement model of psychic conformity, and to
reject the competing control model. On the control model, the passions may
conform to reason, but they never change their character so as to cooperate with
reason, just as a trained lion conforms to the commands of a tamer whose
direction it is never capable of internalizing and cooperating with. If Lewis had
adopted this model, he would have depicted the emotional change not as a
change within his passion itself, but only in the man’s ability to keep the upper
hand over something alien that still continues to resist him.
Clearly, the agreement model is a more attractive and hopeful model of the
relation between reason and the affective areas of the soul within a mature,
virtuous agent. It offers the possibility of real change: of being free at last of
harmful and tyrannical desires, wayward emotions, and disturbing impulses, and
of taking hold of a new way of living. And it will also account for much of our
experience, since we do change and grow into new people with new thoughts
about who we are and what matters to us. A mature adult, after all, does not
merely have greater control over an awkward emotional life that is still essentially
what it was in youth. She has a new emotional life that is more complex, and that
reflects her more mature way of reasoning and reflecting. However, the control
model also seems true to our experience, as, despite these changes, we often find
ourselves still struggling with the same desires, emotions, and impulses we have
so long wished to be rid of, and unfortunately it can also reinforce the despair and
discouragement we sometimes feel as these struggles seem time and again to come
to naught. How, then, should we choose between these two very different models
of our moral development? Or, if we cannot do without either model, how should
we reconcile them into a unified account of moral development?
These are hard questions for philosophical psychology. However, at present I
do not wish to argue for one model over the other, but to show that these two
models sit side by side in Plato’s work on psychology, that Plato does not
reconcile them to one another, and why this lack of reconciliation matters for
his analysis of pleasure within his ethical framework. It should be clear by now
that Plato’s ethical analysis of pleasure—resting as it does on the notion of
rational incorporation, and on pleasure’s capacity to become a part of one’s very
excellence of character—requires the agreement model of moral maturity and
psychic integration, and is in tension with the control model. As we saw in the
previous chapter on the Philebus, Plato argues that pleasure is a conditional good
capable of rational transformation as part of the virtuous perspective, and thus
offers a supporting psychological model on which pleasure is a value-laden
attitude or perspective, which changes as one’s conception of one’s self and one’s
central concerns changes. However, in other dialogs this sort of agreement model
of psychic integration will appear alongside the opposing control model, calling
into question whether Plato really does have a unified psychology to support the
notion of rational incorporation after all.
I shall argue in this chapter that these two models appear together in Plato for
the simple reason that each captures, in its own way, aspects of our psychology
The Republic, Laws, and Timaeus 207
emotions as kinds of pleasures and pains, and we shall see below that Plato does
so in the Laws as well; accordingly, the Alcinous tells us that for Plato pleasure
and pain are the genera of which the emotions are species.4 For another, we have
also seen in the Philebus that desire is connected to pleasure inasmuch as
pleasure construes its objects in terms of their perceived ability to fill our lacks.
And as we saw in Chapter 4, Plato claims in the Republic that the emotional and
desiring parts of the soul have their own characteristic pleasures, which also
attach to ways of life in which the concerns of those parts of the soul are made
one’s central concerns in life as a whole. Consequently, if pleasure can be
transformed by virtue, then our emotions and desires must be capable of
rational transformation as well.5 Are they?
4
See Alcinous, Handbook of Platonism 32.2.
5
Because of the close connections between pleasure, pain, emotion, and desire, henceforth in this
chapter I shall sometimes refer to them en masse as ‘passions’.
6
See Gill (1996: 245–60) for an excellent discussion of the agreement and control strands in the
psychology of the Republic; see also Gill (1985: esp. 21–4). Annas (1981: 116 f.) connects this tension
to a similar tension in Plato’s account of the relation between classes in the ideal city.
7
This should remind us of the comparison of reason and emotion to a charioteer and his
well-mannered horse at Phaedrus 253d–257b, as well as the rider and noble horse of The Great
Divorce.
The Republic, Laws, and Timaeus 209
incorporate and adopt that direction, and thus be transformed by reason.8 And,
of course, this is what we mean by the agreement model of reason and emotion.
(3) However, Plato also compares the emotional part of the soul to a wild,
unruly lion set to attack (Republic IX, 588e–589d), and reason to a man that
must tame it (IX, 588d):
‘Make a model, then, of a creature with a single—if varied and many-headed—form,
arrayed all around with the heads of both wild and tame animals, and possessing the
ability to change over to a different set of heads and to generate all these new bits from its
own body.’9
‘That would take some skilful modelling,’ [Glaucon] remarked, ‘but since words are a
more plastic material than wax and so on, you may consider the model constructed.’
‘A lion and a man are the next models to make, then. The first of the models, however, is
to be by far the largest, and the second the second largest.’
‘That’s an easier job,’ he said. ‘It’s done.’
‘Now join the three of them together until they become one, as it were.’
‘All right,’ he said.
‘And for the final coat, give them the external appearance of a single entity. Make them
look like a person, so that anyone incapable of seeing what’s inside, who can see only the
external husk, will see a single creature, a human being.’
‘It’s done,’ he said. (Republic IX, 588c7–e2)
Notice the importance of the shift from the sheepdog to the lion: while sheepdogs
are capable of working very closely with shepherds, and indeed of working at
a rather sophisticated level of self-direction under the shepherd’s guidance, lions
(and indeed snakes, to which Plato also likens this part of the soul at IX, 590b) are
incapable of entering into such genuinely cooperative relationships with tamers.10
A shepherd chooses a certain breed of dog because of its natural cleverness and
cooperation, and thus gives it direction by calling upon its tendencies and
capacities as a sheepdog, but one can direct a lion only by overpowering its natural
tendencies. Sheepdogs cooperate by learning what they are to do; at best, lions
conform by being broken. The characterization of the emotional part as a lion,
then, presents the control model of reason and emotion.
And so, Plato in one moment suggests that the emotional part of the soul has
an inner logic and a capacity for an intelligence of its own, and thus is capable of
8
It is this agreement which Plato invokes in his account of self-discipline at 442c–d. Indeed, in his
enthusiasm over this idea he includes the desiring part in this agreement as well, to which it seems ill
suited, as we shall see in the next subsection. See also N. White (1979: 129). The relation between
reason and emotion is so close that Penner (1978: 108–16) has argued that they should not be treated
as separate parts; but con. Cooper (1999a: 203–6), who argues that reason and emotion (or ‘spirit’)
can conflict in the Republic, as is especially evident in the behavior of Odysseus (Odyssey X, ll. 17–18)
to which Plato refers at 441b, 390d.
9
We shall return below to the many-headed monster, which is meant to represent desire.
10
Indeed, N. White (1979: 235) suggests that in this passage we should not understand ‘the spirited
and appetitive parts of the soul as actually agreeing, in some quasi-rational way, to taking less than
they really want, like a small child who is argued into grumblingly accepting less than a full portion of
cake. Rather, Plato believes, desires can be trained (largely by not being overindulged) so that they
simply become less insistent.’
210 The Republic, Laws, and Timaeus
being directed as it develops as the kind of psychic impulse it naturally is, and in
another that emotion is a naturally brutish force that must be broken and
forcibly suppressed. Clearly, these are two very different models of the relation
between reason and emotion, and while each model captures some part of our
experience, to offer now the one and now the other just is to lack a unified
model of the soul.
Perhaps, however, the tension between the agreement and control models in
the Republic is merely apparent. For instance, we might say that images like that
of taming a lion are meant to model only the process of educating the emotional
part, and not the relationship that then holds between reason and the emotional
part once the latter has been educated. Alternatively, we might say that the
taming images are meant to model the relationship between reason and emotion
in vicious (or immature) souls, and the alliance images the relationship in the
virtuous soul.11 Unfortunately, things are not so easy. For one thing, Plato says
that the emotional part as a whole is a lion, but lions once tamed are still lions,
and not sheepdogs, much less human partners.12 Consequently, even if these
images portray only the process of educating desire and emotion, we are still left
wondering how something with a lion’s nature could ever arrive at a relationship
of agreement with reason at the end of that process. But, more than that, these
beastly images are applied to both the vicious and the virtuous soul, since the
comparison of the parts of the soul to a human, a lion, and a monster is
introduced to illustrate the inner workings of the virtuous soul just as much as
those of the vicious soul:
‘. . . [O]ur words and behaviour should be designed to maximize the control the inner
man has within us, and should enable him to secure the help of the leonine quality and
then tend to the many-headed beast . . . Now, do you think the reason for the traditional
condemnation of licentiousness is the same—because it allows that fiend, that huge and
many-faceted creature, greater freedom than it should have?’
‘Obviously,’ [Glaucon] said.
‘And aren’t obstinacy and bad temper considered bad because they distend and invigorate
our leonine, serpentine side to a disproportionate extent?’
‘Yes.’
‘Whereas a spoilt, soft way of life is considered bad because it makes this [sc. leonine] part
of us so slack and loose that it’s incapable of facing hardship?’
‘Of course.’
‘And why are lack of independence and autonomy despised? Isn’t it still to do with the
passionate part, because we have to subordinate it to the unruly beast and, from our
earliest years, get the lion used to being insulted and to becoming a monkey instead of a
lion—and all for the sake of money and to satisfy our greed?’
‘Yes.’ (IX, 589a6–b2, 590a5–c7)
The difference between virtuous and vicious, then, is a difference in the hierarchy
between the parts, and not, evidently, in the nature of the parts themselves.
11
I thank Ellen Wagner and Eric Brown for suggesting these readings in conversation.
12
I thank Julia Annas for this way of putting the point.
The Republic, Laws, and Timaeus 211
Notice also that the comparison of reason and emotion to allies (IV, 440a–b, d, e)
is offered to explain the dynamics of a soul in which sharp conflict still exists
between desire and the other parts, as is the ‘sheepdog’ analogy (440d). The
agreement and control models, then, simply do not correspond to the distinc-
tion between mature and immature souls, or to that between virtuous and
vicious souls.
Consequently, it is important to recognize that the issue here is not how
one’s emotional capacity is trained, but whether it is, upon training, capable of
adopting a rational perspective. Do emotions come to agree with reason,
through becoming ways of viewing the world as an extension of reason? Or do
emotions come to conform to reason through control or containment? As we
mature, do the emotions develop as better ways of viewing the world? Or is
maturity a greater ability to control something that remains estranged from us
(cf. afiscr d t ˛p¿ t gr‹} t¿ #meron doulo¸mena, 589d2–3)?13 Curiously,
Plato seems to answer ‘yes’ to all of these questions.14
Moreover, it seems unlikely that Plato overlooked the difference between
these models. On the contrary, he seems to have relied on that difference, as the
agreement and control models appear in different contexts in the Republic. First,
when Plato models the relation between reason and emotion with respect to the
third part of the soul, desire, he depicts them as allied partners. For instance,
after recounting the grim story of Leontius, who had become angry with himself
for wanting to look at the corpses of executed prisoners, Socrates says:
‘. . . what [this story] suggests . . . is that it’s possible for anger to be at odds with desires,
as if they were different things.’
‘Yes, it does,’ [Glaucon] agreed.
‘And that’s far from being an isolated case, isn’t it?’ I asked. ‘It’s not at all uncommon to find
a person’s desires compelling him to go against his reason, and to see him cursing himself
and venting his passion on the source of the compulsion within him. It’s as if there were two
warring factions, with passion fighting on the side of reason. But I’m sure you wouldn’t
claim that you had ever, in yourself or in anyone else, met a case of passion siding with the
desires against the rational mind, when the rational mind prohibits resistance.’
‘No, I certainly haven’t,’ he said. (IV, 440a5–b8)
13
These questions raise further questions about one’s identity: if the parts of my soul can function
as allies, then it seems that all of the parts can function rationally together, and that all of them can be
‘me’. But if some parts are brutish, incapable of being informed by reason, but must instead be
controlled, then they may all conform, but they do not work together, and some of them seem less
really ‘me’. See also Annas (1999), ch. 6.
14
And that within the same dialogue, so we cannot explain the appearance of these two models as a
developmental shift. Nor is their coexistence confined to the Republic; as we shall see below, they recur
also within the Laws, as well as between the psychology of the Philebus and that of the Timaeus.
Consequently, even if we concede that Plato shifts from a model of the soul as unitary to a model of
the soul as parsed, as well as from a more ‘pedantic’ model of moral education in which one’s beliefs
are changed to a more ‘musical’ model in which one’s desires and emotions are habituated inde-
pendent of pedantic training of one’s reasoning (see Vlastos (1991: 86–8); Penner (1992: 125 f.,
128 f.)), still this does nothing to resolve the present tension. Nor is it clear that such a concession
would admit the sorts of sea changes in Platonic psychology that developmentalists speak of, but that
is a controversy for another time.
212 The Republic, Laws, and Timaeus
There is a conflict, but here it is between desire, on the one hand, and reason and
emotion allied, on the other. From the perspective of the desire that opposes
reason, then, Plato thinks that reason and emotion appear as a joint force. Plato
makes a similar point later, in book IX:
‘So the alternative position, that morality is profitable, is equivalent to saying that our
words and behaviour should be designed to maximize the control the inner man has
within us, and should enable him to secure the help of the leonine quality and then tend to
the many-headed beast as a farmer tends to his crops—by nurturing and cultivating its
tame aspects, and by stopping the wild ones growing.’ (IX, 589a6–b3)
Here we see not only the opposition of reason and emotion against desire (the
‘many-headed beast’) but also a hint of the inherent conflict—like that between
a man and a lion—between reason and the emotional part considered not from
desire’s perspective, but within their relation to each other. In fact, the relation
between reason and emotion themselves seems quite like their joint relation to
desire:
‘Things are acceptable when they subject the bestial aspects of our nature to the human—
or it might be more accurate to say the divine—part of ourselves, but they’re objectionable
when they cause the oppression of our tame side under the savage side [t mn kal t ˛p¿
t nqrp}, mllon d !swv t ˛p¿ t qe‹} t qhridh poionta t
v f¸sewv, afiscr d
t ˛p¿ t gr‹} t¿ #meron doulo¸mena].’ (IX, 589c8–d3)
Evidently, from the point of view of reason, both the emotional and the desirous
parts are ‘bestial’, and both are to be subjugated. So far from being unaware of the
difference between these ways of modeling the relations within the soul, then,
Plato seems to exploit those differences to capture the nature of those relations as
they appear when viewed from different perspectives within the soul. Plato’s
account of the soul is not unified, and he even seems to find its disunity useful.
Surely Plato offers this Janus-faced account because the emotional part of the
soul itself does seem Janus-faced, and Plato captures that fact about it by
switching between two different models of reason and emotion.15 Indeed, this is
a fact about emotion that any adequate treatment of emotion must take into
account.16 For instance, Aristotle also attests to the Janus-faced nature of the
15
We should also note that Plato amplifies the Janus-faced nature of the emotions for himself, by
committing at the outset to a sharp division between reason and emotion as distinct parts of the soul.
Plato therefore struggles because, if emotion is capable of agreeing with reason, then emotion must be
able somehow to share reason’s perspective; but if emotion is not reason, then how can it share
reason’s perspective—would it not have to be a kind of reason to do that? See also N. White (1979:
126), who also comments on a similar problem in relating reason and desire (124). By distinguishing
parts of the soul in terms of their conflict with one another, Plato puts himself in a very bad position
to account for the agreement that he insists often holds between reason and the emotional part of the
soul, while keeping them distinct parts.
16
Nussbaum (1994: 379 f.) captures this fact about emotion especially well: ‘We want to give [grief,
e.g.] a seat that is specifically human, and discerning enough, complex enough, to house such a
complex and evaluatively discriminating response. . . . But then it will need to be very much like
reason: capable of the same acts of selection, evaluation, and vision that are usually taken to be the
works of reason. . . . But . . . if it is true that emotion’s seat must be capable of many cognitive
The Republic, Laws, and Timaeus 213
emotions, and anger in particular, noting: on the one hand, that anger is based
on judgments, is situated within an understanding of such complex matters as
social position, manners, and adequate rectification, and tends to arise, terminate,
and alter in intelligible ways; but, on the other, that anger can change and even
terminate independent of any change in what the anger is about, and in general
that anger tends to be ‘short-sighted’.17 Moreover, it is because Plato thinks
of the emotions in these two ways that such diverse thinkers as Galen and
Chrysippus—the former portraying conflict between reason and emotion as a
battle between a rational force and an irrational force, the latter as vacillation
between two perspectives on what one has reason to do—could both later claim,
with some reason, to be heirs of Plato.18 But, of course, to say that Plato presents
these two models deliberately and even with philosophical motivation is not to
say that they constitute a unified theory of emotion (Aristotle does not offer a
unified theory of the two faces of emotion, either). Plato depends on the
agreement model to underwrite the rational incorporation of emotion and
desire, and thus of pleasure; but with such a disjointed psychological account,
Plato’s hold on the agreement model becomes tenuous.
less thirsty for it than I was before. Likewise, I can also reason with my desires in
a way that I cannot reason with my appetites. I may decide that I prefer, all things
considered, to abstain from the iced tea (perhaps my doctor has warned me
about caffeine), and so shift my desire to something else, or at least immobilize
it, but I cannot do the same with my thirst itself, except by quenching it.
In fact, Plato himself makes just these observations about appetite. Hunger and
thirst, for instance, he analyzes as hunger for food and thirst for drink simpliciter,
as opposed to thirst and hunger for good (or hot, or cold) food and drink (437d–
439b), in order to capture the familiar and often tragic fact that having nothing
good to drink available, or having reasons not to drink, does nothing to stop one’s
thirst.19 But where does this leave desire? On this account, although appetite is not
simply a pain of needing, but a pain that has an intentional object, none the less
appetite also seems to have little to do with the sorts of advanced concerns in
terms of which agents are able to desire such things as complex plans and even
whole ways of life, and enjoy such plans and ways of life as meeting their desires.20
By treating basic physical needs such as raw thirst and hunger as representative
of desire in general (¯lwv tv piqum‹av), lumping them together with ‘wishing’
and ‘wanting’ (t¿ qlein ka› t¿ bo¸lesqai, 437b8), Plato ends up with an
unhappy, heterogeneous amalgam instead of a coherent psychic part.21
This analysis presents more problems for Plato than its mere inelegance.
It actually conflicts with how Plato thinks desire really works. For example,
consider Leontius’ morbid curiosity, which seems to work as a desire rather than
as an appetite:
‘. . . Leontius the son of Aglaeon was coming up from the Piraeus, outside the North Wall
but close to it, when he saw some corpses with the public executioner standing near by. On
the one hand, he experienced the desire to see them, but at the same time he felt disgust
and averted his gaze. For a while, he struggled and kept his hands over his eyes, but finally
he was overcome by the desire; he opened his eyes wide, ran up to the corpses, and said,
‘‘There you are, you wretches! What a lovely sight! I hope you feel satisfied!’’ ’
‘Yes, I’ve heard that story too,’ [Glaucon] said.
‘Now, what it suggests,’ I said, ‘is that it’s possible for anger to be at odds with the desires,
as if they were different things.’
‘Yes, it does,’ he agreed. (IV, 439e7–440a7)
19
Cf. Vlastos (1991: 87).
20
Notice that although Plato starts with appetites (hunger and thirst, specifically) in his analysis of
desire in the Philebus (34d ff.), his focus there is on an appetite’s necessary orientation toward an
object, a point he then extends to more sophisticated desires as well, arguing eventually that desire is
always set within a set of concerns and a conception of the self; and so there he seems to avoid either
conflating desires with, or reducing them to, appetites. By contrast, in the Republic Plato begins with
the same similarity between desire and appetite, but develops it in the opposite direction, making
desires seem equivalent in scope and sophistication to mere appetites.
21
Thus, although it might be tempting to treat the desiring part as a purely biological capacity
(and who thinks that raw hunger can be directed by reasons?), we must see that it is not just that,
but an amalgam of biological drives, and other, more complex, kinds of desires. Notice also that in
books VIII and IX those who follow the desiring part represent not one kind of life, but three very
different kinds (more on this below). On this amalgam see Annas (1981: 125, 129–31, 139–42);
Cooper (1999a: 195–9).
The Republic, Laws, and Timaeus 215
Now Plato denies that appetites always result in actions aimed at satisfying them,
although an appetite can be one reason among many for taking some course of
action (see 439a–b). And in principle Leontius might have ceased desiring to
look at the corpses without having satisfied that desire, if he had decided that, say,
he simply could not spare the time to stop and look, even though such a decision
would not cause him to stop feeling curious. So even if we say that Leontius has a
curious appetite, still what actually moves him seems to be a curious desire, that is,
a desire to satisfy his curiosity, all things considered, and so Leontius’ action is a
case of desire at work, not merely appetite. Of course, we might say that Leontius
was angry with himself not only for having a desire to satisfy his curious appetite
but also for feeling such curiosity in the first place; but then Leontius must take
himself to have no good reason for feeling curious, and therefore that he needs a
reason to feel curious—and in that case even his initial curiosity seems much
more like a desire than an appetite, after all.22 Consequently, Plato seems to offer
Leontius as an example not merely of wanting conflicting things, but of deciding
badly between conflicting reasons, but that is a point that Plato’s analysis of desire
as merely a form of appetite cannot support. And that analysis presents an even
more serious problem for Plato’s discussion of the ‘mercenary’ life in books VIII
and IX, a life spent seeking money in order to satisfy one’s desires (580d–581a).
Plato clearly believes that the mercenary life has its own distinctive type of plan
and conception of the good, and it is difficult in the extreme to see how appetite,
as Plato defines it, could ever take that kind of lead.23 Plato focuses on appetite,
when what we really need to understand—and what he really wants to talk
about—is desire.
Moreover, while Plato recognizes that the third part of the soul has many
diverse ‘manifestations’, and treats it as one thing only by focusing on its ‘most
powerful and prevalent aspect . . . because of the intensity of our desires for
food, drink, sex, and so on’ (580e1, 3–4), still this diversity within the third part
threatens Plato’s entire tripartite model of the soul. For one thing, it seems that
the third part must be split into further parts, since desires are not merely
distinct from appetites, but can actually conflict with them. In fact, this is
apparent in Plato’s own example of the thirsty person who desires not to drink
(439c–d), as well as from the common experience of being hungry and desiring
not to be, or of having a strong sexual appetite when one desires not to (or vice
versa). Plato glosses this sort of conflict as a conflict between reason (or, in other
cases, emotion) and the third part of the soul, but this only serves to expose a
further threat: each part of the soul, on Plato’s view, has its own desires and
pleasures (see 580d), but it is difficult to see how Plato could then avoid
the possibility of conflict among desires within the same part. For instance,
Leontius’ anger seems to be based on a conception of himself—more precisely,
on a desire to be a certain kind of person—that he finds out of line with his
22
Notice that one can intelligibly become angry with oneself for having drunk or eaten the wrong
thing or in the wrong way, but not for being thirsty or hungry in the first place.
23
See also Annas (1981: 129 f.).
216 The Republic, Laws, and Timaeus
desire to gawk at the corpses;24 but, of course, this illustrates that a person may
be undecided and uncertain about who he is or wants to be, and may therefore
form conflicting desires based on different half-formed conceptions of himself.
It would be entirely ad hoc to insist that such conflicting desires must be located
in separate parts of the soul, since each of these desires seems to be the same
basic kind of desire as that on the basis of which Leontius becomes angry
with himself, and which seems to characterize the emotional part of the soul
generally.25
The second thing to notice about Plato’s discussion of desire in the Republic is
his representation of desire not as a kind of animal at all—not even a wild one—
but as something hideous and unearthly: while Plato depicts emotion as a lion
tamed by reason, he depicts desire as a many-headed monster, a hydra to be
conquered by the human with the lion’s help (IX, 589a–b).26 Not only does this
depiction seem to rule out any sort of partnership between reason and desire,
even a ‘partnership’ forged and sustained by force, but it is also difficult to miss
the point that, on this view, my desires are not really part of who I am—after all,
Plato thinks we need not merely beastly but unearthly images to represent
them—and so my desires must be beyond transformation as part of my good
character as a whole. In fact, the ‘human’ in the model of the soul controls desire
not even as one would an animal, but as one would a plant, by ‘pruning’ some of
the monster’s heads and ‘cultivating’ others (589b). There is a world of differ-
ence between training a partner, a dog, or for that matter a lion to do as one
wishes, and ‘training’ a vine to grow where one wishes, which suggests that
desire is a completely non-rational force that can be reckoned with only by
non-rational means.
This point about desire is especially clear in the case of the ‘wild’ desires. The
differences between the wild desires and between them and the ‘tame’ ones is
evident in Plato’s subdivision of the desiring part of the soul, and of the three
types of person who identify with the desiring part, in books VIII and IX (see esp.
VIII, 547c–IX, 576b). Plato first divides desires into ‘necessary’ and ‘unnecessary’
desires (558d–559d; cf. 554a), and then further divides the unnecessary desires
into merely unnecessary desires, on the one hand, and wanton and ‘lawless’ desires
on the other (571b). The ‘mercenary’ or ‘oligarchic’ person, Plato says, lives for
the sake of his necessary desires; these desires either cannot be gotten rid of
altogether, such as the desire to eat life-sustaining food, or are beneficial for us to
satisfy, such as the desire to eat fortifying food. The ‘democratic’ person, by
contrast, lives for the sake of his unnecessary desires, that is, desires that can be
24
I am persuaded on this point by Annas (1981: 128).
25
It is perhaps not surprising, then, that the Stoics, who took emotions and desires to be types of
perspectives on one’s reasons for acting, glossed psychic conflict as a kind of indecision about one’s
best reasons for acting, all things considered. The importance of this point makes it somewhat
alarming, however, that Aristotle should be so blasé about the parts of the soul as he is at Nicomachean
Ethics I.13, 1102a26–32.
26
Cp. Plato’s likening of the desiring part of the soul to an ignoble, stupid, and reckless horse in
the Phaedrus.
The Republic, Laws, and Timaeus 217
gotten rid of, at least through training and regimen (such as the desire to eat a
large, complex diet), or that do us no good, or even harm us, when we satisfy
them; these also tend to be more expensive than the necessary desires, so that the
‘democratic’ man is typically profligate. Finally, the ‘dictatorial’ person is ruled by
his wanton desires, such as desires for outrageous forms of sex or crime, as are
aroused in dreams unless one possess a moral, philosophical mind (571b–572b).
Now it seems clear that the ‘wild’ desires of 589b include the wanton, frenzied
desires, and probably at least some of the merely unnecessary desires. And surely
the whole point of classifying certain desires as ‘wild’ is to suggest that there is
nothing one can do with them, aside from eradicating them altogether.27
But what about the ‘tame’ desires—are they subject only to control and
domination? That is not so clear. Evidently the ‘tame’ desires include the
necessary desires, which Plato calls the ‘better’ desires in his discussion of the
mercenary person (554d–e), and it is important to notice the role of these
‘better’ desires in controlling the wild, ‘lawless’ desires:
‘. . . [S]ome of the unnecessary pleasures and desires strike me as lawless. We probably all
contain these pleasures and desires, but they can be kept under control by convention and
by the cooperation of reason and the better desires (tØn beltinwn piqumØn met lgou).
Some people, in fact, control them so well that they get rid of them altogether or leave
only a few of them in a weakened state, but they remain stronger and more numerous in
others.’ (IX, 571b4–c1)
Here Plato says that the better desires actually work alongside reason (met lgou)
to control the worse, wild desires. Likewise, although the plant analogy makes
desire a non-rational force as much as the hydra analogy does, none the less the
plant analogy also brings with it much gentler language, speaking of ‘nurturing’
and ‘cultivating’ (trfwn ka› tiqase¸wn) the tame desires. Moreover, a couple of
pages later Plato speaks not of three parts of the soul but of only two (590c ff.),
bundling the emotional and desirous parts together, and in some places even
seems to speak of a person’s ‘tame side’ as including the better forms of both
emotion and desire, along with reason (591b). Consequently, the ‘tame’ desires
seem to be in the same position with respect to reason that emotion is: just as
reason and emotion are allies from the perspective of desire as a whole, so too
reason and ‘tame’ desires are allies from the perspective of the ‘wild’ desires.
However, from the perspective of reason itself, the tame desires still look
beastly, even more so than the emotions do. Even a monster that has been
‘tamed’ is still a monster, and this way of modeling desires makes it impossible,
evidently, for Plato to show that desire allies with reason out of agreement and
rational incorporation, instead of merely conforming. For the tame desires
conform to reason as the wild desires do not, but this does not tell us whether
their conformity is a matter of agreement or of control, and the inherently
27
This is clearly the point of portraying such desires as the savage heads of a hydra, as well,
recalling the image of Heracles chopping the heads off the hydra and cauterizing the necks to stop
them from growing back.
218 The Republic, Laws, and Timaeus
beastly, monstrous, and even plant-like nature that Plato’s model attributes to
desire makes its agreement with reason most unlikely.28 And yet Plato also tries
to bring desire and reason into agreement and cooperation, suggesting that our
desirous part is in its good condition just in case the better desires follow with
the leadership of reason.29 As with reason and emotion, then, Plato offers two
distinct models of the relation between reason and desire, and so far from
unifying those two models, again leaves it most unclear how they ever could be
unified. And again Plato seems to find the disunity of the account helpful for
capturing different features of desires as they appear from different angles.
Here, too, it is important to remember that this portrayal of desire is not
restricted to the desires of immature or vicious persons, but applies to mature,
virtuous persons as well. Plato does not say that worse desires are monsters and
better ones are not, but that the desirous part as a whole is a monster, having
better and worse heads—and even a monster’s ‘better’ head is still a monster’s
head. Rather, Plato’s two models of the soul correspond to two different bodies
of psychic phenomena—its potential for intimate harmony and its potential for
sharp conflict—both of which Plato seeks to capture, but for which he has no
unified psychological theory.30
more fully because, first, his entire inquiry is shaped at the outset by defining the
parts of the soul in terms of the conflicts between them; second, he thus lacks the
means to account for the agreement that he none the less thinks naturally obtains
between reason and emotion and, it turns out, certain desires as well, despite their
beastly and monstrous nature; and third, he focuses his analysis of desire as a
whole on basic, unreflective appetites.31 And so notice also that where Plato’s
psychological account becomes less able to account for the rational incorporation
of emotion and desire, and thus of pleasure, it is also more independently
problematic. It seems, then, that in the Republic Plato wants and needs most to
develop an agreement model of psychic harmony, and has better reasons to do
so,32 but is hindered in doing so by a more problematic control model of the soul
which he neither reconciles with the former nor sees his way clear to abandon.
This means that Plato’s psychological account in the Republic offers only partial
support for his account of the transformation and rational incorporation of
pleasure within the virtuous soul that has emerged from our reading of Plato.
None the less, it is worth noticing that that part of his account that does not offer
such support is also the part that presents a score of independent problems for
Plato. What works best in Plato’s account of the soul, then, is also what gives the
most support to his notion of rational incorporation; and so rational incorporation
does not rest on a unified line of Platonic thought, but it does rest on the inde-
pendently more promising line of thought within a disjointed account. Moreover,
the tension within the psychological account of Plato’s Republic reveals what sorts
of problems we must surmount in order to sustain a promising analysis of the
rational incorporation of pleasure, even where it fails to surmount them itself, and
for even that much it is an indispensable work in philosophical psychology.33
31
For this last point cf. Annas (1981: 139–41). It is also worth noticing that his analysis of emotion
focuses specifically on a particularly fierce emotion, anger.
32
Recall that, as we saw in Ch. 4, Plato’s account of virtue as psychic harmony requires the parts of
the soul to work in sufficiently sophisticated ways so that they can agree with and endorse the rational
direction that reason brings to one’s life (see also Republic IV, 442c–d). Note also that Plato’s assertion
in the Republic that those who have been properly trained in virtue will stand by their training (see
esp. III, 401e–402a, VI, 485d) seems far more tenuous if emotions and desires always retain their
inherently unruly character but are contained and controlled, as this relation seems much less stable
than a relation of agreement between reason and transformed emotions and desires. Here I have
benefited from Brown (2004), who takes the sufficiency of good training for good behavior to be an
empirical generalization, but does not suggest any particular model of the soul on which such a
generalization would be based.
33
It is also, I think, a pioneering work, in so far as it seems to have motivated both later Platonist
psychology and Stoic psychology, two main rival theories of the soul in the ancient world.
220 The Republic, Laws, and Timaeus
of Plato’s psychology in the Republic is due simply to the absence of any more
detailed analysis of the actual processes by which humans do, or could, develop
into a greater moral maturity and concord between the various motivating
forces within the self. Here the Laws becomes especially relevant, since it is
particularly concerned with the moral development of persons within the civic
community. The Laws even recommends itself as the primary textbook for
understanding the moral basis of their community and its institutions,34 and
explores specific methods and social institutions aimed at the moral development
of the population. Perhaps a closer look at the psychology of moral development
will hold some promise of a more unified Platonic moral psychology.
Plato introduces one form of adult moral education that he recognizes is
unconventional, to say the least: drinking parties for soldiers in training. These
parties are necessary not so much as a break from the rigors of training, but as a
form of training itself; for, according to the Athenian stranger, soldiers are
always trained to resist pain and fear, but they are rarely trained to resist
pleasures and confident emotions that take the wrong form (I, 633c–634c). This
is unfortunate, he says, because while soldiers need to be fearless in the face of
the enemy, they also need to be fearful of disgrace and disrepute in the eyes of
their fellows, and thus to be able to resist the pleasant temptations that would
lead them to such disgrace (I, 645d–650b). Moreover, the process of training
soldiers to resist pleasure is very much like the more familiar process of training
them to resist fear: in both cases, soldiers are subjected to stimuli, punished for
the wrong response, and rewarded for the proper one. And, whereas in the more
familiar training soldiers are treated according to their responses to pain, in
drinking-parties soldiers are treated according to their response to the pleasant
emotions that wine produces in them, as it breaks down their inhibitions and
boosts their confidence (I, 647e–650b). Likewise, the point of both forms of
training is to develop the kinds of emotional patterns in soldiers that will
conform to their understanding of their orders, their sense of decency, and their
sense of what it is their duty to do. Of course, Plato does not suppose that such
training will make soldiers into sages, or virtuous persons with fully developed
practical intelligence. None the less, this training does illustrate a basic method
for shaping the emotions, namely their directed habituation.35
Habituation, we should notice, is a non-rational process of training. Through
habituation one learns to avoid disgraceful behavior not by learning arguments
that demonstrate the harmfulness of disgraceful behavior, or what have you,
but by coming to despise and feel disgust at disgraceful behavior. But, although
habituation is a non-rational training process, this is not to say that it must have
a wholly non-rational outcome. There is nothing in this account of habituation
so far to prevent an emotion from having a perspective which, when properly
habituated, is in agreement with reason, even if reason itself must be trained by
34
Laws VII, 811c–812a. For a good discussion of this feature of the Laws, as well as certain
complications involved in it, see Bobonich (1996).
35
I am only too happy to ignore the question whether such training would actually work.
The Republic, Laws, and Timaeus 221
different methods. The crucial question for our purposes, then, is whether
habituation prepares emotions only to be kept in check and under control by
reason, or whether habituation can prepare emotions for agreement with reason
and for being shaped in their inner structure—that is, whether such habituation
prepares our emotions to be ‘smarter’ as the sorts of emotions that they are,
rather than merely under tighter control.
Plato says little about the outcome of the soldier’s training, but his description
of moral training in children suggests that properly habituated emotions do
display their own sort of perspective and understanding. Each of us, Plato says,
has within us a pair of affective psychic forces that move us, namely pleasure and
pain, and in terms of these we define the further psychic forces of fear and
confidence (I, 644c–d). It seems clear, then, that Plato here thinks of pleasure
and pain as emotions, and indeed the two basic emotions in terms of which the
specific emotions are to be defined.36 Moreover, Plato says that the proper
habituation of pleasure and pain is the beginning of all moral development,
since the motivating forces that are forms of pleasure and pain—that is, the
emotions—are attitudes by which we approve and disapprove:
I maintain that the earliest sensations that a child feels in infancy are of pleasure and pain,
and this is the route by which virtue and vice first enter the soul.37. . . I call ‘education’
(paide‹a) the initial acquisition of virtue by the child, when the feelings of pleasure and
affection, pain and hatred, that well up in his soul are channeled in the right courses before
he can understand the reason why. Then when he does understand, his reason and his
emotions agree in telling him that he has been properly trained by inculcation of
appropriate habits. Virtue is the general concord of reason and emotion. But there is one
element you could isolate in any account you give, and this is the correction formation of
our feelings of pleasure and pain, which makes us hate what we ought to hate from first to
last, and love what we ought to love. Call this ‘education’, and I, at any rate, think you
would be giving it its proper name. . . . Education, then, is a matter of correctly disciplined
feelings of pleasure and pain. (Laws II, 653a5–c4, 7–8)
Here, again, we see that the habituation of the emotions is a distinct process
from rational training, and indeed that the former training is a precursor to the
latter, and must commence in children who are not yet ready for more rational
forms of training.38 But it is also clear that the outcome of this process—
virtue—is a ‘concord’ (sumfon‹a) of reason and emotion, in which reason takes
the leading role39 by enabling the agent to understand why the things he has
been trained to find pleasing or disgusting really are so.
What exactly is this concord? Clearly it is not the control or domination of
emotion by reason, but their agreement. For one thing, what properly trained
36
See also Alcinous, Handbook 32.2–3. Con. the psychology of the Republic, on which emotion
apparently belongs to one part of the soul, but pleasure to all three parts.
37
Cf. Alcinous, Handbook 30.3, 24.4.
38
See Gill (1985) for discussion of this feature of Plato’s account, which he argues is connected to
an account of the development of the self as essentially social and cultural.
39
Cf. Stalley (1983: 53, see also 55 f.).
222 The Republic, Laws, and Timaeus
reason adds to the habituated young person is not her first recognition that
some things are bad and others good, but rather a distinctly rational grasp on
the nature of the goodness and badness that she had already been taught to
recognize. Reason is introduced not as bringing moral insight anew, but rather
as confirming and explaining the insight already present within the emotions.
For another, although moral education is complete only when reason and
emotion agree, none the less emotional habituation is its own form of education.
In fact, the Athenian goes on to compare emotional habituation to more
pedantic training, arguing that where only one form of training is present,
emotional habituation yields a better education than pedantic training does:
Now then, take a man whose opinion about what is good is correct (it really is good), and
likewise in the case of the bad (it really is bad), and follows this judgment in practice. He
may be able to represent, by word and gesture,40 and with invariable success, his intellectual
conception of what is good, even though he gets no pleasure from it and feels no hatred
for what is bad. Another man may not be very good at keeping on the right lines when he
uses his body and his voice to represent the good, or at trying to form some intellectual
conception of it; but he may be very much on the right lines in his feelings of pleasure and
pain, because he welcomes what is good and loathes what is bad. Which of these two will be
the better educated musically, and the more effective member of a chorus?
As far as education is concerned, sir, the second is infinitely superior.
So if [we] grasp what ‘goodness’ is in singing and dancing, we have also a sound criterion for
distinguishing the educated man from the uneducated man. If we fail to grasp it, we’ll never
be able to make up our minds whether a safeguard for education exists, or where we ought
to look for it. (II, 654c3–e1, emphasis in original)
While musical training is intended to teach the difference between good and bad
moral character, the student with inferior musical skills and who is inarticulate
about goodness and badness none the less has a better understanding of moral
character than a more technically skilled and articulate student, so long as the
former surpasses the latter in being pleased and pained in the right sorts of ways.
Clearly, emotional habituation is a kind of learning, and it results not merely in
its own form of understanding and insight, but in a form of understanding that
is actually a greater understanding than the outcome of certain more ‘intellectual’
forms of training alone.41 And it is because of this importance of emotional
40
In the surrounding context, the Athenian describes singing and dancing as educational activities
by which students portray different types of moral character with either pleasure or pain. The idea
that the arts are in large measure concerned with education is, of course, familiar from Plato’s dialogs,
but it is important to note that it is no innovation on Plato’s part, but a feature of Greek culture
within which all discussions of art operate. (See also Aristotle, Politics VII.17, VIII.3, 5–7.) Indeed,
Plato’s famous argument in book X of the Republic that artistic representation is remote from genuine
reality is not (as is sometimes thought) an objection to artistic representation per se, but only to the
unreflective acceptance of artistic representation as an educational tool in Greek culture, as the
argument beginning at 602c makes clear; that artistic representation is regularly employed as an
educational tool in Greek culture, Plato takes as given. See also Asmis (1992: esp. 338 f., 352–6); Annas
(1981: 336–44); N. White (1979: 247 f., 252).
41
This is not to say, however, that such emotions are types of belief or judgment. It is extremely
unfortunate that Plato does not take up the question of how exactly they are related to belief, as
The Republic, Laws, and Timaeus 223
education that Plato places so much importance in the Laws on the role that
emotions of pleasure and pain play in one’s life:
Pleasure and pain, you see, flow like two springs released by nature. If a man draws the
right amount from the right one at the right time, he lives a happy life; but if he draws
unintelligently at the wrong time, his life will be rather different. (I, 636d7-e3)42
Moreover, because pleasure embodies a perspective, and when properly
habituated embodies some form of understanding and insight, pleasure thus
affords a criterion for distinguishing appropriate from inappropriate plea-
sures—and thus for assessing artistic efforts to habituate the emotions—since we
can look to the emotional patterns of people of exceptional character to see what
is and is not worth enjoying:43
I am, then, in limited agreement with the man in the street. Pleasure is indeed a proper
criterion in the arts, but not the pleasure experienced by anybody and everybody. The
productions of the Muse are at their finest when they delight men of high caliber and
adequate education—but particularly if they succeed in pleasing the single individual
whose education and moral standards reach heights attained by no one else. This is the
reason why we maintain that judges in these matters need high moral standards: they have
to possess not only a discerning taste, but courage too. A judge won’t be doing his job
properly if he reaches his verdict by listening to the audience and lets himself be thrown off
balance by the yelling of the mob and his own lack of training . . . [This sort of thing is]
equally disastrous for the quality of the pleasure felt by the spectators: they ought to come
to experience more elevated pleasures from listening to the portrayal of characters
invariably better than their own, but in fact just the opposite happens, and they have no
one to thank but themselves. (II, 658e6–659a6, c2–5)
Here again we see that there is no neutral perspective on pleasure, because
enjoyment is a function of the value one places on the object of enjoyment and
thus is a way of endorsing or approving the object. Since people differ so greatly
in their values, they correspondingly differ in what they can appreciate as
pleasant. And only when a person’s values are correct and his passions have been
aligned with those values can a person enjoy the right kinds of things as the right
kinds of things.44
In his discussion of moral development, then, Plato sees pleasure, pain, and
the emotions generally as having a complex inner structure that is first chan-
neled by habituation, and thus prepared to adopt and agree with the direction of
the agent’s reason so that the agent’s motivations and conceptions of goodness
answering such a question should shed much light on the choice between the agreement and control
models.
42
Notice also that this passage does not espouse any form of hedonism, because it makes the place
of pain in one’s life equally important as the place of pleasure, which is as it should be if Plato is
here thinking of pleasure and pain as genera of emotion, and not as objects of pursuit and avoidance.
See also Stalley (1983: 60 f.).
43
For further discussion of the Platonic thesis that pleasures are never perspective-neutral, see
Annas (1999: 145–9). See also Aristotle, Nicomachean Ethics X.5.
44
See Annas (1999: 146, 151); Stalley (1983: 63 f., 65), who is reservedly pessimistic about this point.
224 The Republic, Laws, and Timaeus
either one’s natural character or one’s habituation; likewise, either can be the
source of one’s recognition of that depravity. So this is a conflict not between
emotional propensity and intellect, but between one emotional propensity and
another.
However, not only can these different emotional propensities conflict but
one of them also seems relatively immune to the training of the other, since the
emotional propensities of one’s ‘natural character’ can remain essentially the
same even if one has been successfully trained and habituated to have quite
different emotional propensities.45 The introduction of stubborn natural char-
acter raises a number of questions concerning moral development and psychic
harmony, but what is most significant for present purposes is that on Plato’s
view in the Laws emotions can remain, at some very basic level, recalcitrant and
stubborn, whatever progress one has made elsewhere through emotional
training.
Is there anything that can effect significant change in the emotional pro-
pensities of one’s ‘natural character’? Plato seems to be of two minds about this.
On the one hand, after noting that one can enjoy something one also finds
depraved, he diagnoses this conflict as due to a lack of real conviction within
one’s disapproval of it:
Now, does a man’s enjoyment of bad bodily movements or bad tunes do him any harm?
And does it do him any good to take pleasure in the opposite kind?
Probably.
‘Probably’? Is that all? Surely there must be a precise analogy with the man who comes into
contact with depraved characters and wicked people, and who does not react with disgust,
but welcomes them with pleasure, censuring them half-heartedly because he only half-
realizes, as in a dream, how perverted such a state is: he just cannot escape taking on the
character of what he enjoys, whether good or bad—even if he is ashamed to go so far as to
applaud it. In fact we could hardly point to a greater force for good—or evil—than this
inevitable assimilation of character. (II, 656a7–b7)
Apparently, when one’s disapproval of a thing—due to either one’s habituation
or natural character—is insufficient to keep one from enjoying it, this is because
one’s disapproval is only ‘half-hearted’, and one merely pays lip-service to the
depravity of what one enjoys, rather than taking it completely seriously. While
this suggests that one’s emotional grasp of depravity can be weak and unstable, it
also suggests that it might be strengthened by deepening one’s understanding
of depravity. Here, perhaps, Plato offers some hope of reforming a wayward
natural character through moral education.
Unfortunately, it is not clear that Plato can show how such a reform would
come about. It is unlikely that further emotional training and habituation would be
effective, since Plato has already said that one’s natural emotional character can
remain recalcitrant despite successful habituation elsewhere in one’s emotional
45
In fact, Plato gives no suggestion here that the former type of propensities undergo any type
of training at all.
226 The Republic, Laws, and Timaeus
life. It seems, then, that reform would need to come by strengthening one’s
intellectual grasp of the depravity that one’s emotions now recognize only half-
heartedly. However, the Athenian later claims that reason and even knowledge
can fail to put a stop to such psychic conflict:
So when the soul quarrels with knowledge or opinion or reason [pistmaiv % dxaiv %
lg} nantiØtai], its natural ruling principles, you have there what I call ‘folly’. This
applies both to the state in which people disobey their rulers and laws, and to the indi-
vidual, when the fine principles in which he really believes prove not only ineffective but
actually harmful. It’s all these examples of ignorance that I should put down as the worst
kind of discord in a state and individual, not the mere professional ignorance of a
workman. (III, 689b2–c3)
It is far from clear how an agent’s developed reason46 is, for Plato, to be so
ineffectual a guide to action,47 how it is to obtain despite the discord within the
soul, how it is to be harmful to the agent, and how its presence in the agent
might coexist with the worst kind of ignorance. But it is hard to avoid the
conclusion that in these passages at least some emotions remain recalcitrant
despite the presence of developed reason and emotional propensities.
This is a deep problem within the Laws, since such emotional recalcitrance
seems to have been built into the very psychological model with which Plato
begins his inquiry in the Laws. In Laws I the Athenian paints a notoriously
alarming picture of human agency and motivation: a person, he says, is like a
puppet suspended from strings, which are like the various motivating factors of
the person’s soul. As the Athenian’s conversation with Clinias in this passage is
as difficult as it is important, I include it in its entirety:
Now a while ago we agreed that those who are able to rule themselves are good, and those
who are not are bad.
Yes, that’s quite right.
Well, let’s consider even more precisely just what we mean by this very point. Perhaps
you’ll let me clarify this business for you through an illustration, if I should somehow
be able.
Go right ahead.
Let’s take it that each of us is one, shall we?
Yes.
And he has within himself a pair of contrary and stupid advisors, which we call ‘pleasure’
and ‘pain’?
That’s true.
In addition to these two, he also has opinions about the future, which have the general
name ‘expectation’; but in particular, the expectation of pain is ‘fear’, and the expectation
of its opposite is ‘confidence’. And besides these, there is the reasoning that one of them
46
I say merely ‘developed reason’ because it would be unwise to conclude in this context that by
knowledge etc. Plato means full-fledged philosophical understanding, since his discussion concerns
the development of the average citizen, not the sage.
47
See Stalley (1983: 50–2) for a discussion of akrasia in this passage, which he also connects to the
Timaeus psychology (57).
The Republic, Laws, and Timaeus 227
is sometimes better or worse; and when it becomes the decree of state, it is given the
name ‘law’.
I am just barely following you, but say what comes next as if I were following.
I [Megillus] am in the same situation, as well.
Let’s think about these things in the following way. Let’s suppose that each of us living
beings is the gods’ puppet, put together either as their plaything or for some serious
purpose—we don’t know which. But this we do know, that these passions in us are like
kinds of cords or strings that both oppose us and pull against each other towards contrary
actions, for they are themselves contraries; there virtue and vice stand divided. For the
argument48 says that each one [of us] ought to pull against the other cords, by always
following one of the pulling forces and never letting go of it—and this one is the golden
and holy leadership of reason (which is called in general ‘law’ of state). The others,
however, are stiff and adamant, whereas this one is soft, as it is golden; the others are also
like all sorts of things.49 One ought always to take the side of the finest leadership, i.e.
of law: for inasmuch as reason is fine, but mild and not violent, it needs assistants for
its leadership, so that the golden kind in us might conquer the other kinds. And so this
story of virtue about us being puppets would be complete, and the thought behind ‘self-
superior’ and ‘self-inferior’ would in some way become clearer . . . (644b6–645b3, my
translation)
This passage is sure to raise more questions than it answers. Notice that on this
model the person seems like the patient of all of his motive forces—passion and
reason alike—rather than an agent, because the agent is identified not with any
of the cords, but with the puppet that is merely suspended from them.50 But if
the person is such a patient, then in virtue of what is she to choose the cord with
which she will identify? Plato remarks that the agent must identify and cooperate
with the golden cord if it is to be effective,51 but it is unclear how the person in
this model could initiate action in agreement with the golden cord, since
puppets do not initiate any action at all; puppets receive the action of their
strings, not vice versa. Likewise, it is also unclear how the person so modeled
could exert any control over the alloyed cords.
In fact, the possibility of controlling the alloyed cords is problematic even if
we set aside the worries about a puppet initiating action independently of its
strings. It is far from clear, after all, how the golden cord could exercise any
direction over the alloyed cords, since the pliability of the golden cord makes it
precisely unsuited to exert control over them, stiff and unyielding as they are. In
fact, that seems to be just the point of making the cord pliable: it cannot act as
48
In rendering ` lgov as ‘the argument’ I follow most translators; but see Annas (1999: 142 and
n. 15) for the provocative suggestion that ` lgov is not ‘the argument’ but ‘reason’.
49
It is difficult to know just what this sentence indicates, but I suggest that it returns to the earlier
point in the text that the cords pull in indefinite directions, even against each other. Cp. the image of
the desiring part of the soul in Republic IX as a many-headed, shape-shifting beast; the idea there as
well seems to be that desires and (certain) emotions can run in any direction and take anything as
their object (see also the description of the tyrannical soul).
50
This problem is not often noted; an exception is Stalley (1983: 61). Contrast this model with the
depiction at the end of Republic IX of a person as the amalgam of a small person, a lion, and a many-
headed monster, since in this depiction the agent is identified with the motive force represented by
51
the small person. On this point, see Annas (1999: 143 f.).
228 The Republic, Laws, and Timaeus
the alloyed cords do, and it cannot exert any force over them.52 Now we must, of
course, be cautious of pressing this analogy too far. All analogies are meant to
illuminate just some features of a thing, and not others. What does seem evident,
however, is that calculation, which is subtle and persuasive, is not the sort of
thing that can control passion, which is fierce and demanding. And this is not
merely an artifact of the puppet analogy but also seems to corroborate the
recalcitrance of one’s ‘natural’ emotional propensities in the face of emotional
training and even some sort of knowledge. Such recalcitrance is precisely what
we should expect if the emotions are like stiff iron cords which have neither any
unity of direction within themselves, pulling us in all sorts of directions, nor any
apparent internal complexity and structure that reason can mold and shape into
agreement and partnership, making emotion as unified in direction as reason
itself is.53 The emotions, on this model, seem rough, jerky, and stupid. None the
less, Plato does say that the golden cord can ‘prevail’ over them, and so we
cannot help but see that Plato portrays reason not as shaping emotion, but as
conquering (nikÞ) and controlling it (see 645a4–b1).
Consequently, while Plato’s account of moral development concerns ordinary
citizens instead of sages, none the less his model of human psychology leaves it
unclear how pleasure and pain could ever develop into agreement with reason at
all, since they are portrayed without any internal structure by which reason could
shape and direct them. As in the Republic, so also in the Laws Plato speaks in two
ways about the relation between reason and emotion, that is, between reason, on
the one hand, and pleasure and pain, on the other, without unifying these two
ways of speaking. Plato gives no indication that these two models of the soul are
intended to describe different kinds of person. On the contrary, we have seen that
he speaks in both kinds of ways for people with the same level of emotional moral
development, and indeed he makes a point of highlighting the potential recalcit-
rance of emotion in the case of persons with successfully developed emotional
habits and even developed reason. And as in the Republic, I think that Plato’s
motivation for this Janus-faced analysis in the Laws is the same: Plato recognizes,
on the one hand, that emotion can be educated as a kind of perspective and
insight, and thus must have a complex internal structure, and, on the other, that
emotion can remain stubborn and unmanageable, as if it had no such structure but
simply pulled one by force. Unfortunately, while the Laws does offer a closer look
at moral development and its underlying psychology, we do not find in it a more
unified moral psychology—much less freedom from puzzling analogies. Plato’s
frustration in modeling the human soul as capable of both agreement and conflict,
then, is both deep and pervasive in his works on philosophical psychology.
52
Con. Annas (1999: 143), who suggests that the pliability of the golden cord enables it to deal
with emotions in ways that emotions cannot deal with it, namely by managing, leading, and
manipulating them.
53
The unity of reason’s direction is suggested by its being a single cord made of a single, pure
substance, unlike the emotional cords which are both discordant and alloyed. In fact, the golden cord
receives, in addition to ‘golden and holy’, the further description ‘single-formed’ (monoeid
) in the
Codex Riccardianus, presumably to maintain this symmetry in the text.
The Republic, Laws, and Timaeus 229
To sum up, in the Laws Plato offers the agreement model of reason and emotion
in order to explain the rational incorporation of pleasure within human moral
development. None the less, he also offers the control model, which conflicts with
his account of rational incorporation. And so, again, Plato’s account of rational
incorporation of pleasure in the Laws does not rest on a unified moral psychology.
Again, however, that account does seem to rest on the strand within the moral
psychology of the Laws that is less problematic for independent reasons, since the
control model in the Laws is motivated primarily by the introduction of recal-
citrant natural character, as well as a bizarre and puzzling analogy for reason and
pleasure within the agent, and Plato seems to have given sufficient thought and
development to neither of these attempts to capture the recalcitrance of emotion.
unique kind of perspective on one’s life as a whole, around which one’s life can
be constructed, as well as their ability to cooperate with each other as allies and
partners, considers the workings of these parts from the agent’s point of view,
taken as a whole. Likewise, the puppet model of Laws I is a model of the radically
different kinds of psychic forces that operate within a human, while the edu-
cation model of Laws II shows how reason and pleasure can actually function as
partners within an agent’s perspective on his life and values. So perhaps we have
not two psychologies, but a psychology and a physiology.
Unfortunately, this explanation is far too neat to be true. As we have seen,
Plato moves between the view that reason and emotion are allies and the
view that emotion is forced into submission to reason, not because he moves
between a psychological and physiological level of discourse but because he
looks at their relation now from the perspective of desire facing emotion
and reason as a pair, and now from the perspective of emotion and reason
themselves—two perspectives, but only one level. Likewise, Plato’s pessimism
in Laws II about those who remain emotionally recalcitrant despite proper
emotional habituation comes in a strictly psychological discussion of moral
development.
And there are even deeper problems with this explanation. For one thing, the
physiological and psychological levels of discourse in Platonic philosophical
psychology are far from independent of one another. In fact, Plato’s choices at
the physiological level are usually based on prior commitments about the nature
of the parts of the soul at the psychological level. After all, one reason that Plato
distinguishes desire from emotion on the physiological level as he does in the
Republic is that he is impressed by the conflict between them from the agent’s
point of view, as in the case of Leontius. And, in any case, it is unlikely that this
explanation would be of much help even if it could be made to fit Plato’s
analysis, since the cruder and more inflexible the physiology the more brutish
and recalcitrant the psychology would seem to become. One surely does not
motivate an account of psychic agreement and integration with a physiological
account of psychic forces that are dumb and incapable of listening to one
another in terms that they can share. And so, even if this explanation of Plato’s
two models were correct, Plato would still be left with a gap between these
accounts of the soul, offering nothing to bridge that gap.54
These problems are perhaps clearest in Plato’s Timaeus, which contains
Plato’s most detailed and sustained physiology of the soul. If the Laws leaves it
unclear how the various parts of the soul are supposed to develop into agree-
ment, then the Timaeus leaves it unclear that they ever could.55 But this is not
because the physiological account of the soul in the Timaeus is detached from a
psychological account. On the contrary, that physiology is shaped by Plato’s
54
For an excellent discussion of Plato’s relating these two levels in the Timaeus, and the attraction
that it may have held for Chrysippus, see Gill (1997).
55
For further discussion of the Laws and the Timaeus with respect to moral psychology, see also
Stalley (1983: 47).
The Republic, Laws, and Timaeus 231
commitments about the nature of the soul at the psychological level, where he
focuses exclusively on the control model of the soul.56
Plato’s reliance on the control model at the psychological level in developing
an account of the soul at the physiological level is evident in the way that he
divides and arranges the parts of the soul themselves. In terms that seem to
straddle the psychologies of the Phaedo and the Republic, Timaeus proclaims
that the soul is both divine and corporeal, the latter being divisible into two
parts, namely the ‘ambitious’ part and the ‘appetitive’ part (69c–71e). The divine
soul was created by the Demiurge and placed by the created gods within the
spherical cranium, and a body was constructed as its vehicle (69c).57 Within
this body itself the mortal, mundane soul was placed, and a concomitant of
this mixture of soul with material, fluctuating body is the presence of passions
(42a–b), which are among the dreadful, but necessary, disturbances. These
passions, or disturbances, are cast in the least favorable light possible:
And within the body [the gods] built another kind of soul as well, the mortal kind, which
contains within it those dreadful but necessary disturbances: pleasure, first of all, evil’s
most powerful lure; then pains, that make us run away from what is good; besides these,
boldness also and fear, foolish counselors both; then also the spirit of anger hard to
assuage, and expectation easily led astray. These they fused with unreasoning sense
perception and all-venturing lust, and so, as was necessary, they constructed the mortal
type of soul. (69c7–d6)
Furthermore, the body was arranged so as best to insulate divine soul from
mortal, as mortal soul was placed in the body, separated from the head (the seat
of divine soul) by the neck:
In the face of these disturbances they scrupled to stain the divine soul only to the extent
that this was absolutely necessary, and so they provided a home for the mortal soul in
another place in the body, away from the other, once they had built an isthmus between
them to keep them apart. Inside the chest, then, and in what is called the trunk they
proceeded to enclose the mortal type of soul. And since one part of the mortal soul was
naturally superior to the other, they built the hollow of the trunk in sections, dividing
them the way that women’s quarters are divided from men’s. They situated the midriff
between the sections to serve as a partition. Now the part of the mortal soul that exhibits
manliness and spirit, the ambitious part, [the gods] settled nearer the head, between the
midriff and the neck, so that it might listen to reason and together with it restrain by force
the part consisting of appetites, should the latter at any time refuse outright to obey the
dictates of reason coming down from the citadel. . . . The part of the soul that has appetites
for food and drink and whatever else it feels a need for, given the body’s nature, they
settled in the area between the midriff and the boundary toward the navel. In the whole of
this region they constructed something like a trough for the body’s nourishment. Here
they tied this part of the soul down like a beast, a wild one, but one they could not avoid
56
Moreover, the account of the soul’s physiology in the Timaeus had a long after-life; Alcinous
presents it as the official Platonist view on the matter (Handbook 23); and the psycho-physiology of
the Timaeus is also the basis of Galen’s, in On Hippocrates’ and Plato’s Doctrines; see Hankinson
57
(1991) and (1993); and Gill (1997) for discussion. Cf. Alcinous, Handbook 23.1.
232 The Republic, Laws, and Timaeus
sustaining along with the others if a mortal race were ever to be. They assigned it its
position there, to keep it ever feeding at its trough, living as far away as possible from
the part that takes counsel, and making as little clamor and noise as possible, thereby
letting the supreme part take its counsel in peace about what is beneficial for one
and all. (69d6–70a7, 70d7–71a3)
Notice that Timaeus does not say that the parts of the soul behave as they do
because of their location or seat within human anatomy. On the contrary,
the parts have the physical seats they do because of the way they behave at
the psychological level, luring us toward evil and so forth. It is because of the
psychology of the ambitious and appetitive parts and their passions—their
propensity away from good and towards evil, their foolishness, the difficulty
with which they are guided and the ease with which they are misled, their failure
to reflect and discriminate—that they have the physiology they do, seated away
from reason and separated from it by the ‘isthmus’ of the neck. Plato is clearly
focusing on a control model of reason and the passions to which he is ante-
cedently committed at the psychological level, and then building a physiology of
the soul around it.
And this is just how later Platonists understood the order of explanation
between Plato’s psychology and physiology:
That the soul is divided into three parts corresponding to its potencies, and that its parts
are distributed rationally into their proper places, we will learn from what follows. First of
all, things which are naturally separated are different. Now the affective and the rational
parts are naturally separated, seeing as the latter is concerned with intelligible reality, while
the former is concerned with what is pleasurable and painful. And furthermore, the
affective part is found also in other animals. Then, since the affective and the rational parts
are different in nature, it is proper that they occupy different locations; for they are found
to conflict with one another. But any single thing cannot be in conflict with itself, nor can
things which are in opposition to each other occupy the same place at the same
time. (Alcinous, Handbook 24.1–2)
Alcinous argues that since psychological conflict is a reality, there must be distinct
parts of the soul which occupy different places within the body. That Alcinous sees
conflict on the psychological level as determining the shape of a physiological
theory of the soul is also clear in the cases he calls upon as evidence:
One can see in the character of Medea the spirited element in conflict with reason:
I know what evil I am about to do
But anger overcomes my resolutions.
(Euripides, Med. 1078–9)
And similarly in the case of Laius, when he abducted Chrysippus, we see desire struggling
with reason; for he speaks as follows:
Alas, alas, for mortals this is an evil sent from God,
When one sees the good, but makes no use of it.
(Euripides, Fr. 841 N2)
A further proof of the difference between reason and the affective part of the soul is the
fact that the cultivation of the reason is different from that of the affective part; for the
The Republic, Laws, and Timaeus 233
former is cultivated through teaching, the latter through the training of one’s habitual
behaviour. (Alcinous, Handbook 24.3–4)
The parts of the soul differ in their nature—and thus must differ in physi-
ology—Alcinous argues, because phenomena at the strictly psychological level
demonstrate such a difference: agents’ perception of conflict between reason and
emotion; agents’ conflict between reason and desire; and the different ways in
which agents undergo training of their psychic forces.
Not only the relative arrangement of the parts of the soul but also their own
inner workings bespeak the crudeness with which Plato believes that the affective
parts operate at the psychological level. This is clearest in the case of the
appetitive part, as the control exerted by the ambitious and rational parts over
the occasionally wayward appetitive part is one of forcible restraint (b‹{ t¿ tØn
piqumiØn katcoi gnov, 70a5–6). The appetitive part, Timaeus says, is located
in the belly, furthest away from the head (70d–e), and here are located the
appetites for food, drink, and bodily need in general (70e); this part of the soul is
depicted as a crude beast feeding at its trough (70e–71a). Plato says that the
appetitive part is prone to ‘refuse outright to obey the dictates of reason coming
down from the citadel’ (70a), and a page later that this part of the soul cannot
even ‘understand the deliverances of reason’, but functions instead by dealing
with ‘images and phantoms’ (71a). Plato seems confused here, since presumably
one is not capable of choosing to disobey a dictate that one cannot understand
or register in the first place. However, rather than charge Plato with contra-
dicting himself within a single page, it is more natural to suppose that the
‘reports’ coming down from reason in 70a need not speak in reason’s own terms,
but can be translated into crude images to which the stupid appetitive part can
react. In any event, the account of appetite as incapable of understanding
reason’s dictates is the one that Plato takes forward, and he says that since this
part of the soul pays attention only to images, it is through images impressed
upon the liver that the appetitive part is either frightened or soothed, depending
on the thoughts from the mind that are converted into either frightening or
soothing images in the liver (71b–e).58 The appetites, then, can be forcibly
controlled only by sending them threatening and soothing images.
The utter lack of rational activity in the appetitive part is further underscored
a few pages later, when Timaeus claims that plant life also partakes of this kind
of soul, which is totally without opinion, reasoning, or understanding (77a–c).59
This part of the soul, which partakes of pleasant and painful sensations, as well
as desires, is completely passive, being incapable of initiating either its own
motion or its reaction to motions from without:
We may call these plants ‘living things’ on the ground that anything that partakes of life
has an incontestable right to be called a ‘living thing’. And in fact, what we are talking
58
Cf. Alcinous, Handbook 23.2.
59
This also removes any suspicion that the appetitive soul is capable of being frightened or soothed
on the basis of any reflections or norms of its own. If this kind of soul is possessed also by plants, then
it must operate entirely on brute reaction to external stimuli. Con. Aristotle, who separates the
‘vegetative’ part of the soul from the appetitive and desirous part (Nicomachean Ethics I.13).
234 The Republic, Laws, and Timaeus
about now partakes of the third type of soul, the type that our account has situated
between the midriff and the navel. This type is totally devoid of opinion, reasoning or
understanding, though it does share in sensation, pleasant and painful, and desires. For
throughout its existence it is completely passive, and its formation has not entrusted it
with a natural ability to discern and reflect upon any of its own characteristics, by
revolving within and about itself, repelling movement from without and exercising its own
inherent movement. Hence it is alive, to be sure, and unmistakably a living thing, but it
stays put, standing fixed and rooted, since it lacks self-motion. (77b1–c5)
And in a curious account of transmigration Timaeus later tells us that wild land
animals have come from the souls of men who were completely without
philosophy, and who abandoned the use of their mind to follow the soul in their
chests (91e).60 Throughout Plato’s discussion of the appetitive part, then, it is
difficult to avoid the conclusion that Plato has already decided that this part of
the soul is incapable of rational incorporation.
However, there may seem to be a greater degree of cooperation between reason
and the ‘ambitious part’, or what we have been calling emotion. The ambitious
part of the soul, Timaeus says, is located in the chest, as it is able to listen to reason
and to control the appetitive part, should it be disobedient (70a). Perhaps, then,
the ambitious part of the soul responds not merely to coercion but indeed to
reasons offered by the rational part:61 the ambitious part boils over, Timaeus says,
‘at a report from reason [to lgou paragge‹lantov] that some wrongful act
involving these [bodily] members is taking place—something being done to them
from outside or even something originating from the appetites within’ (70b).
If nothing else, we see here the possibility of giving a physiological account
based on a prior commitment to the agreement model. But the appearance of
agreement between reason and emotion in this passage is seriously complicated,
in at least three ways. First, this image of reports coming from reason to the
ambitious part is presented alongside an image of such reports coming from
reason to the appetitive part as well, and as we have seen the reception of these
‘reports’ by another part of the soul does not imply that that part is capable of
understanding reason in reason’s own terms.
Second, the ambitious part is said to listen to reason in only a very limited
way: when reason reports some wrongful act (either from without, or within the
appetitive part), the spirit boils over, and the heart (seat of ambition) sends
exhortations and threats throughout the body (70b). Now, we might say that
this is only a physiological account that underlies a psychological account that
does operate on reasons.62 But it is worth noting that, while the ambitious part is
susceptible to arousal by the rational part, it is apparently not susceptible to
calming by the rational part. The rational part appears to play no role in the
60
Cf. Alcinous’ claim that affective soul—the part of the soul that experiences pleasure and pain,
and is contrasted with the rational part—is also found in animals (Handbook 24.1). It is also worth
comparing this treatment of the desires in the Timaeus with the Athenian’s description of the stiff and
unyielding cords in the puppet analogy in Laws I.
61 62
See Gill (1997: 268), citing 70b4–5, as well as 70a4–6, b7–c1. See Gill (1997: 269).
The Republic, Laws, and Timaeus 235
63 64
Cf. Alcinous, Handbook 23.2. See Annas (1981: 127 f.); Cooper (1999a: 201–6).
236 The Republic, Laws, and Timaeus
in his companion star, to live a life of happiness that agreed with his character. But if he
failed in this, he would be born a second time, now as a woman. And if even then he could
still not refrain from wickedness, he would be changed once again, this time into some
wild animal that resembled the wicked character he had acquired. And he would have no
rest from these toilsome transformations until he had dragged that massive accretion of
fire-water-air-earth into conformity with the revolution of the Same and uniform within
him, and so subdued that turbulent, irrational mass by means of reason. This would
return him to his original condition of excellence. (42b2–d2)
In the Timaeus, then, a human’s corporeal nature serves primarily as an obstacle
for reason and intelligence: ‘All these disturbances are no doubt the reason why
even today and not only at the beginning, whenever a soul is bound within a
mortal body, it at first lacks intelligence’ (44a–b). Our corporeal nature explains
why we are helpless and irrational at birth; why some of us are consigned to
prolonged reincarnations as ‘lower’ living beings; and why our emotions—
pleasure that drives us to evil, pain that makes us flee what is good, foolish
boldness and fear, stubborn anger, gullible expectation, unreasoning sense
perception, all-venturing lust (69d)—present us so much difficulty. When Plato
invokes these parts of our nature to explain why our reason is handicapped,
intelligent human agency thus goes from being how all the aspects of the self
work in harmony, to how a single aspect of the self works in relation to other
parts which are strictly patients over which one must gain control.
Notice, then, a fundamental tension between the psychology of the Timaeus
and that of the Philebus. In the Philebus, although pleasure is the ‘matter’ of
creative reason in so far as it is not self-directing, and reason is the cause of
‘limit’ or order within one’s pleasure as a dimension of the psyche, none the less
that limit comes about as a kind of order internal to pleasure itself, as pleasure is
rationally altered as the kind of perspective on oneself that it naturally is. On this
view, the quality of one’s agency is found in the partnership of all of the
dimensions of the self. In the Timaeus, by contrast, matter not only lacks self-
direction but also is essentially incorrigible and inflexible, serving always as a
boundary for the potential of reason. Consequently, the quality of one’s agency
is found not in a partnership between intelligence and these other aspects of the
self, since their function by nature is not to serve as partners to intelligence;
rather, that quality is found in intelligence alone, in how it copes with material
aspects of the person with which the person is not properly identified and which
are never rationally incorporated into the whole self. Consequently, in the
Timaeus psychic harmony obtains not between reason and the other parts, but
within reason itself, which now turns out to be multi-dimensional:
Now we ought to think of the most sovereign part of our soul as god’s gift to us, given to
be our guiding spirit. This, of course, is the type of soul that, as we maintain, resides in the
top part of our bodies.65 It raises us up away from the earth and toward what is akin to us
in heaven, as though we are plants grown not from the earth but from heaven. In saying
65
See 69c.
The Republic, Laws, and Timaeus 237
this, we speak absolutely correctly. For it is from heaven, the place from which our souls
were originally born, that the divine part suspends our head, i.e., our root, and so keeps
our whole body erect. . . . [I]f a man has seriously devoted himself to the love of learning
and to true wisdom, if he has exercised these aspects of himself above all, then there is
absolutely no way that his thoughts can fail to be immortal and divine, should truth come
within his grasp. And to the extent that human nature can partake of immortality, he can
in no way fail to achieve this: constantly caring for his divine part as he does, keeping well-
ordered the guiding spirit that lives within him, he must indeed be supremely happy. Now
there is but one way to care for anything, and that is to provide for it the nourishment and
the motions that are proper to it. And the motions that have an affinity to the divine part
within us are the thoughts and revolutions of the universe. These, surely, are the ones
which each of us should follow. We should redirect the revolutions in our heads that were
thrown off course at our birth, by coming to learn the harmonies and revolutions of the
universe, and so bring into conformity with its objects our faculty of understanding, as it
was in its original condition. And when this conformity is complete, we shall have
achieved our goal: that most excellent life offered to humankind by the gods, both now
and forevermore. (90a2–b1, b6–d7)
Psychic harmony as an ethical ideal, on this view, is a harmony among move-
ments—the movements originally upset by the soul’s introduction to a mortal
body (43a–44d)—within reason, which subjugates the other psychic forces, and
not a harmony between reason and those other forces.
Notice this bizarre image of a human agent: a human is identical to a reas-
oning faculty, housed in a cranium, and below this cranium forms an accretion
reaching to the ground. In a manner of speaking, a person does not actually
stand on the ground, but is supported in the air by a growth that extends
downward from him. A person, then, is a reasoning faculty only, and the body—
including, presumably, the psychic functions bound to it—is only an accretion
affixed to it, like the barnacles on a whale. There is no missing the point that
those parts of my nature that are relegated and bound to this corporeal accretion
are not really me. Whereas the puppet analogy in Laws II dissolves the agent into
a collection of distinct psychic forces—a bunch of cords none of which seems to
be the agent—the Timaeus retains the agent and gives her an identity, but only at
the expense of fragmenting that agent and alienating her from some of the
psychic forces that we normally think are an important part of making any
person the person she is. And, whereas in the Republic the agent seems alienated
from some of her psychic forces when viewed from some perspectives but not
from others, the Timaeus simply makes everything but reason foreign to the
agent and is done with it.
7.4 Conclusion
In the dialogues we have examined here, Plato faces a serious problem for any
philosophical psychology that assigns the various motivations, concerns, and
forces within the soul to distinct parts of the soul: once the agent is so fragmented,
238 The Republic, Laws, and Timaeus
we lose the agent as a whole. If the agent is identical to some of her parts and not
others, then what we have is not an agent but only a fraction of one;66 and if the
agent is not identical to any of her parts, then we seem to have no agent at all.
Consequently, if the agent is to be a whole consisting of all of these motivations,
concerns, and forces, then it seems that the agent must be comprised not of
distinct parts, as Plato thinks, but of different modes in which the agent as a whole
deliberates and acts. Because Plato assumes that psychic conflict could occur only
between distinct parts opposing one another simultaneously, and does not
entertain the possibility that psychic conflict could be an agent’s vacillation
between opposing perspectives, adopting now one perspective for herself as a
whole and now another, he does not see any way to avoid dissecting the agent into
distinct psychic parts, not all of which can be the agent herself.67
Unfortunately, without a psychological model of the agent as a whole, Plato
lacks the psychological underpinnings for an account of virtue as the trans-
formation of the agent as a whole, and thus for an account of happiness that is
holistic rather than dimensional, consisting not in one’s flourishing in some
dimension of one’s life but in one’s flourishing as a harmoniously integrated
whole.68 Consequently, Plato offers a compelling ethical and value-theoretical
account of pleasure as a conditional good that is rationally incorporated by
practical intelligence, but lacks an adequate unified psychology of the affective
and rational activities of the soul to underwrite that ethical and value-theoretical
account. Of course, it is not entirely surprising that even so great a thinker as
Plato should struggle in constructing a unified psychology that makes sense of the
Janus-faced nature of pleasure, emotion, and desire, as this is, after all, one of
the deepest problems in all of philosophical psychology. However, understanding
the demands that Plato’s evaluation of pleasure places on a supporting psycho-
logy, as well as the challenges to be faced in constructing such a psychology, will
help to point the way for us as beneficiaries of Plato’s legacy.
66
It is worth noting that this problem also turns up in Alcinous’ discussion of the emotions
(Handbook 32.1), in which he claims that emotions are irrational motions of the soul. On these
grounds, he maintains that the emotions are not really our actions (cf. Annas (1999: 135); Stalley
(1983: 47)), nor under our control (although he shifts between that stronger claim and the weaker
claim that the emotions arise without our wishing). Alcinous does not seem to perceive the tension
between his claim that the emotions are entirely irrational motions of the soul on the one hand, and
his claim that emotions arise in response to good and bad on the other. Thus, although Alcinous
wishes in Handbook 30.3 to portray the emotions and desires as able to internalize a cognitive
structure supplied by reason (even though they cannot supply such structure for themselves), he also
portrays the non-rational parts of the soul as not properly us (32.1). Alcinous, then, like Plato does
not in the end present a coherent account of the nature of the passions and their relation to reason.
On this tension in Plato, see also Annas (1999), ch. 6 (however, Annas does not present this tension as
a phenomenon in Alcinous).
67
It was not in vain, then, that the Stoics would later identify the agent with a single rational
faculty capable of occupying distinct perspectives, each of which represents a ‘turning of the whole
soul’ toward that perspective, and between which the whole soul could vacillate when experiencing
psychic conflict (see esp. Plutarch, On Moral Virtue 446f–447a; Seneca, On Anger I.8.2, 3; Galen, On
the Doctrines of Hippocrates and Plato 4.4.16–18, 24–5).
68
The distinction between dimensional and holistic conceptions of happiness will be familiar from
the discussion with which we began Ch. 4.
EPILOGUE: PLEASURE AND HAPPINESS
IN PLATO’S PROTAGORAS
I wish to close with a word about Plato’s Protagoras, a dialogue that has received
enormous attention in discussions concerning Plato on pleasure. It has received
this attention because toward the end of the Protagoras Socrates discusses a form
of hedonism, on the basis of which he then bases his subsequent argument on
the nature of virtue and action. Since this hedonism facilitates his argument, it is
natural to conclude that Socrates must endorse it. And, of course, this would
mean that Plato, at least at some point in his career,1 was a hedonist.
I think we should be very hesitant about drawing such conclusions, however,
for two basic reasons. The first has to do with considerations external to the
Protagoras. Simply put, if Plato endorses hedonism in the Protagoras, then not
only does he take a position on the value of pleasure which he may abandon in
other dialogs but also he takes a position on the fundamental nature of hap-
piness and value that he certainly does reject elsewhere. As we have seen,
hedonism maintains that happiness depends on our flourishing in one of the
aspects of our life, not on a life’s direction as a whole life, and that the good that
determines happiness is a conditional good that needs direction, rather than the
unconditional good that brings direction. If Plato was, at some point in his
career, a hedonist, then we are faced not merely with a possible change in how
Plato thought about pleasure, but, in fact, with a radical sea change in the entire
framework of his thought on moral philosophy—a shift from an additive to a
directive conception of happiness, and from the view that conditional goods can
determine happiness to the view that only the unconditional good can deter-
mine happiness. The importance of such a shift has usually gone unseen in the
midst of debates over whether the hedonism discussed in the Protagoras can
survive the critique of Callicles’ hedonism in the Gorgias, where so much
scholarly energy has tended to focus. Unfortunately, what proponents of
hedonist readings of the Protagoras have not seemed to appreciate is that even if
the hedonism of the Protagoras should be consistent with the refutations of
Callicles’ hedonism, none the less hedonism requires a very particular view
about the very nature of happiness and of value that is at odds at the most
fundamental level with the view that Plato actually develops, in the Gorgias and
1
Scholars who believe that Plato espoused hedonism in the Protagoras are divided over whether he
ever retracted this hedonism in later dialogs, most notably the Gorgias. For the view that he did, see,
e.g., Irwin (1995: 111–14); cf. (1979: 204). For the view that he did not, see, e.g., Gosling and Taylor
(1982); Rudebusch (1999).
240 Epilogue: the Protagoras
elsewhere. This much should be clear from the preceding chapters. Of course,
philosophers change their minds, even at the most fundamental levels, and there
is no a priori reason to expect Plato to be exempt from such change. The point,
however, is that no proponent of a hedonist reading of the Protagoras has even
appreciated, much less accounted for, such a monumental shift in all of Plato’s
thought in ethics and value theory that such a reading would entail. Nor is this
surprising, as those scholars have simply assumed that Plato must hold one
version or other of the additive conception of happiness, not recognizing the
possibility of the directive conception or its power to explain Plato’s ethics. Once
we have recognized that possibility and its power, however, the case for such a
controversial reading of what is, on any account, a rather puzzling and com-
plicated dialogue seems very much weaker.
The second major strike against the hedonist reading of the Protagoras, in my
view, and what will be our main concern here, is that, on the best understanding
of the Protagoras, we simply do not have to attribute to Plato a commitment to
hedonism in the first place. This view has also attracted its proponents, but, of
course, it has the burden of showing what Socrates is doing in discussing
hedonism if he relies on it to make his argument go through, and yet is not a
hedonist. Notice, however, that one’s personal investment in the premises of an
argument will depend on what one intends for that argument to do: some
arguments we give are intended to demonstrate for others our own line of
reasoning in support of some thesis, while others are intended to demonstrate
for others what seems to follow from their own commitments, whether we share
them or not. Arguments of the latter sort are often called ‘dialectical’ arguments,
and there is good reason to think that Socrates’ argument from hedonism is a
dialectical argument intended to show the deficiency of Protagoras’ position in
Protagoras’ own terms.2 Of course, Protagoras himself is at first reticent to
accept hedonism as a theory of the good (see Protagoras 351c–e), but to argue in
Protagoras’ own terms Socrates need not necessarily appeal only to Protagoras’
actual beliefs, since it will also be enough for Socrates to portray hedonism as a
particularly advantageous position for Protagoras to adopt.3
A number of commentators have defended this sort of reading of the Pro-
tagoras, arguing that hedonism serves as a theory of human motivation and
choice that renders virtuous behavior teachable, and thus motivates Protagoras’
claim to teach it, and at the same time serves to refute Protagoras’ own theory
of the nature of the virtues. But how exactly does hedonism serve to refute
Protagoras? Some scholars have suggested that hedonism promises the teach-
ability of virtue only to yield an implausible conception of virtues such as courage,
say, since the hedonist perspective makes self-sacrifice highly unlikely,4 or since
2
See especially Zeyl (1989); Weiss (1990b); Hemmenway (1996); and McCoy (1998).
3
I shall leave aside the view of some scholars that the dialog is an exercise in deliberately fallacious
arguments directed by Socrates against Protagoras. For such readings of the Protagoras see, e.g.,
Klosko (1979: esp. 129) (whose reading is endorsed by Zeyl (1989: 13)), and Goldberg (1983: 67,
4
116–18, et passim). See McCoy (1998).
Epilogue: the Protagoras 241
5 6
See Hemmenway (1996: 21–2). See Weiss (1990b: 30).
242 Epilogue: the Protagoras
their shared intellectual basis; or he can continue to maintain that the virtues are
sharply distinct and separable capacities without such a basis7—but not both.
Since this dilemma arises from—and makes obvious—Protagoras’ inattention to
the very possibility of teaching what he claims to teach, Socrates thus challenges
Protagoras’ claim to teach virtue, and gives young men hoping to study with
Protagoras the kind of warning that Socrates tried to give the young man
Hippocrates in the dialog’s opening (311a–314c).8
However, in order for Socrates to succeed in posing this dilemma for Pro-
tagoras, Protagoras must find hedonism and the conception of virtue that it
yields attractive and potentially helpful for strengthening the appeal of his claim
to teach the virtues. If the hedonist interpretation of Protagoras’ position makes
it patently implausible, then Protagoras need not worry too much—that
interpretation was not his idea in the first place, but Socrates’. Unless Socrates’
argumentative strategy is confused, his hedonist interpretation of Protagoras’
account of virtue should appear to Protagoras as improving his account in some
important way. The problem for Protagoras, therefore, should not be that
hedonism offers a picture of the virtues he is unwilling to accept. If it does, he
should simply reject hedonism, as he seemed initially inclined to do anyway, and
be done with it.9 Rather, the problem is that teachable virtues would require an
intellectual basis encompassing a more general understanding of good and bad,
and yet Protagoras claims to teach virtues with no such general basis. And he will
not avoid this problem simply by rejecting hedonism, since the hedonic calculus
merely serves to illustrate readily what is surely a perfectly general point about
any intellectual basis for teachable virtues.
So much for a general description of Socrates’ aim in the hedonist argument;
now for a closer examination of it. In order to understand the hedonist argu-
ment itself, we should understand the role that Socrates thinks it has in the larger
argument within which it appears (see 353b), concerning the nature of courage.
Protagoras maintains that courage is completely different (pnu pol& diafron,
349d4–5) from all the other virtues, and that an ‘exceptionally courageous’
person can none the less be ‘extremely unjust, impious, intemperate, and
7
It is a matter of some uncertainty and controversy whether Socrates means to attack the denial of
the reciprocity of the virtues, or the denial of the unity of virtue. For present purposes, we can leave this
controversy to the side.
8
We need not worry, then, that Socrates is pointing out a mere inconsistency. As Weiss (1990b: 29)
rightly notes, ‘It seems unlikely that Protagoras is upset [at the end] merely about losing the match.’ It
is, I think, this worry that motivates the other dialectical readings cited above to locate the problem
for Protagoras in something more than the inconsistency of his position, and instead in the
implausibility of his position once based on hedonism. But if I have described Plato’s goal in the
dialog correctly, then this inconsistency is all he needs to show in order to achieve that goal.
9
Furthermore, it is sometimes argued that the problem that Socrates raises for Protagoras is an
awkward revelation of the true nature of his teaching, which is self-serving and elitist (see esp.
Hemmenway (1996), McCoy (1998)). While this probably is accurate of Protagoras’ teaching, none
the less it is conspicuous that Socrates does very little explicitly to draw attention to this. By contrast,
Socrates in his discussion of rhetoric throughout the Gorgias makes such revelation a central and
explicit theme. I suspect, then, that Plato does not ignore this aspect of rhetoric in the Protagoras, but
none the less has another aspect of it primarily in his sights.
Epilogue: the Protagoras 243
Socrates begins by noting that one barrier to teaching virtue that Protagoras
recognizes is the possibility of akrasia (352b–353a): that a person could be taught
what is good and what bad, but none the less go against his teaching because he is
overcome by a desire to seek pleasure and avoid pain. Not surprisingly, then,
Protagoras denies that such a thing could occur,13 but he recognizes that most
people do believe it is possible to be overcome by pleasure to go against one’s
better judgment. Consequently, Protagoras takes himself to have a considerable
professional stake in the denial of akrasia, if he means to present his teaching as
having an especially effective impact on his students’ behavior.
Here Socrates makes the interesting suggestion that Protagoras may be able to
meet such popular worries about akrasia after all (353c). Socrates suggests first
that ordinary people could be persuaded that so-called bad pleasures are never
bad as pleasures, but only for the painful consequences that eventually follow
them; in that case, ordinary people would be persuaded that pleasures are always
good as such, and that all differences between good and bad really come down to
differences between what is pleasant and what is painful (353c–354e). This is so
because ordinary people have no other criteria than pleasure and pain by which
to call things good or bad (354b), as Socrates notes four times (cf. 354c–355a).
They can be persuaded, then, that something is good when it is pleasant on
balance, and bad when it is painful on balance (355a–c).
Socrates now uses this popular hedonism to construct an argument to dis-
suade ordinary people from the popular belief that akrasia is being overcome by
pleasure to go against the good. Socrates points out that if people were to hold
that it were possible to choose the bad, because one is overcome by something
that is pleasant on balance (355c), then they would have to concede the pos-
sibility of choosing the bad because one is overcome by the good (355c–e), since
we have already supposed they will be persuaded that the pleasant-on-balance is
good and the painful-on-balance bad (recall 355a–c). Now, since akrasia is
understood as the domination of knowledge by pleasure (see 352b–c), an act will
be a genuine case of akrasia only if the agent knows what goodness and badness
are—ex hypothesi, the pleasant-on-balance and the painful-on-balance,
respectively—and how the act in question is a case of such badness. But if the
agent knows that such an action is bad—that is, more painful-on-balance—then
it is ridiculous, Socrates says, that he should choose it on the grounds of being
overcome by its pleasantness.14
13
As Kerferd (1981: 138) notes, we have no external evidence that Protagoras held this view, but
his agreement is understandable since he holds that education is the key to moral problems. Notice
that the sophist Gorgias is also insistent that expertise in matters of right and wrong is inconsistent
with wrong behavior (Gorgias 458e–461b). See also Stokes (1986: 411–12).
14
This argument is, of course, more complex than this fairly simple reconstruction might suggest.
For one thing, it is difficult to determine whether Socrates argues that it is ridiculous to think that a
person who knows an action to be less pleasant (or more painful) than the alternative would, in fact,
do that action, or that it is ridiculous to think that a person would engage in such an action because
overwhelmed by its goodness; see esp. Santas (1966); C. C. W. Taylor (1976: 182–6); Gallop (1964);
Irwin (1995: 83 f.); Russell (2000a: 322 f.). Second, the argument seems to assume that the many
accept psychological hedonism, that is, the thesis that people in fact do what they know to be most
Epilogue: the Protagoras 245
pleasant (or least painful), and it is difficult to see on what basis Socrates thinks they are committed to
that thesis; see esp. Irwin (1995: 82–4); C. C. W. Taylor (1976: 175, 189 f.); Gosling and Taylor (1982:
57 f.); Santas (1966: 18, 20, 22, 29 f.); Russell (2000a: 323–6). And third, the argument also seems to
assume that pleasures and pains are to be assessed and compared solely in quantitative terms, which is
quite a controversial notion; see Richardson (1990); Rudebusch (1989: 27–40); Russell (2000a: 325 f.);
C. C. W. Taylor (1976: 180); Weiss (1990b: 24–6); Stokes (1986: 406); Vlastos (1956: xlii f.); Gallop
(1964: 127); Santas (1966: 30 ff.). But at present we can leave these complications aside and focus on
the gist of Socrates’ argument and what he hopes it will achieve.
15
See Weiss (1990b: 23, 26). Cf. Socrates’ own comment at 345d9–e2: ‘I am pretty sure that none
of the wise men thinks that any human being willingly makes a mistake or willingly does anything
wrong or bad.’
16
And, of course, this could be the case even though the argument purports to defend a thesis—
the impossibility of akrasia—that Socrates himself also maintains, as Aristotle says he does (Nico-
machean Ethics VII.2, 1145b22 ff.).
17
See also Santas (1966: 10 f.). The reading offered here, if correct, would address C. C. W. Taylor’s
worry (1976: 200) that Socrates argues only for the inconsistency of the popular rejection of hedonism
given other popular beliefs, and not for hedonism per se.
246 Epilogue: the Protagoras
many that akrasia can be explained only as ignorance and that the metrtik
tcnh would thus preclude akrasia, then they do so thinking simply that it is an
argument which the many would be unable to reject.
Socrates’ stake in the argument, then, clearly need not go beyond showing
Protagoras that he must base the virtues that he teaches on some form of general
knowledge of good and bad, if he is ever to present a convincing case to the
many for his claim to teach the virtues:
‘What exactly this art, this knowledge is, we can inquire into later; that it is knowledge of
some sort is enough for the demonstration which Protagoras and I have to give in order to
answer the question you [sc. the many] asked us. You asked it, if you remember, when we
were agreeing that nothing was stronger or better than knowledge, which always prevails,
whenever it is present, over pleasure and everything else. At that point you said that
pleasure often rules even the man who knows; since we disagreed, you went on to ask us
this: ‘‘Protagoras and Socrates, if this experience is not being overcome by pleasure, what is
it then; what do you say it is? Tell us.’’ ‘‘If immediately we had said to you ‘ignorance’, you
might have laughed at us, but if you laugh at us now, you will be laughing at yourselves.
For you agreed with us that those who make mistakes with regard to the choice of pleasure
and pain, in other words, with regard to good and bad, do so because of a lack of
knowledge you agreed was measurement. And the mistaken act done without knowledge
you must know is one done from ignorance. So this is what ‘being overcome by pleasure’
is—ignorance in the highest degree, and it is this which Protagoras and Prodicus and
Hippias claim to cure. But you, thinking it to be something other than ignorance, do not
go to sophists yourselves, nor do you send your children to them for instruction, believing
as you do that we are dealing with something unteachable. By worrying about your money
and not giving it to them, you all do badly in both private and public life.’’ This is how
we would have answered the many. Now, I ask you, Hippias and Prodicus, as well as
Protagoras—this is your conversation also—to say whether you think what I say is true
or false.’ They all thought that what I said was marvelously true. (357b5–358a5)
We can now see that the argument about hedonism bridges the gap between
the two discussions of courage by showing that Protagoras is committed to two
things. First, he must say that wrong action is always done in ignorance of the
fact that the action is ultimately harmful; it is not done out of akrasia or passion.
And second, he must claim to correct people’s action by imparting to them the
knowledge by which one can successfully judge benefit and harmfulness.
Accepting these two claims, Protagoras is therefore committed to the idea that
teaching virtue is the teaching of a kind of knowledge: the training he offers
comes about by means of teaching students a skill whereby they can assess
harmful and beneficial consequences and always act accordingly.
Returning to courage, Socrates and Protagoras now agree that the courageous
do not pursue fearsome things, since they know which things are harmful—and
thus fearsome—and which not, and no one pursues what he takes to be harmful
(359c–d). Moreover, cowards who refuse to go to war—when going to war is, in
fact, honorable, good, and pleasant (359e–360a)—must do so out of an expecta-
tion of harm, and so out of ignorance. Consequently, confidence and fear must
Epilogue: the Protagoras 247
each be of two sorts: knowledgeable confidence and fear, which are honorable;
and ignorant confidence and fear, which are disgraceful (360a). So the difference
between the courageous and the cowardly is in their understanding or ignorance
of what things are and are not to be feared.18 The courageous, then, are those
who are confident because they are able to apprehend the overall benefit or
harmfulness of various courses of action. Moreover, one could be a coward
only through ignorance, and so since one is a coward through cowardice,
cowardice must be ignorance (360c). And since ignorance is contrary to
knowledge and wisdom, courage must be a kind of knowledge and wisdom after
all (360d).
Notice the pressures that this argument puts on Protagoras. The notion that
a knowledge of good and evil in general is the basis of courage is in tension with
his position that one could be ‘exceptionally courageous’ and yet be ‘extremely
unjust, impious, intemperate, and ignorant’ (349d). Instead, the basis of courage
would seem to be the basis of all the other virtues as well, suggesting that
they are neither separable from one another nor nearly so sharply distinct in
their natures, despite Protagoras’ initial view.19 On the contrary, courage does
not differ from any other virtue as ears do from eyes, but apparently as the same
man in one situation differs from himself in another.20 Socrates’ argument
about hedonism, then, contributes directly to his refutation of Protagoras’ thesis
concerning courage and the other virtues, for that argument prevents Protagoras
from introducing non-epistemic elements into courage, and bases courage on
knowledge which would seem to form the basis of the other virtues as well.
This, then, is the role of the argument about hedonism in the greater argu-
mentative structure of the examination of courage. The demands of popular
appeal require Protagoras to maintain that knowledge is the most powerful force
in human affairs. Protagoras finds that this puts pressure on him to show the
many that akrasia is really nothing but ignorance of the benefit of virtuous
behavior, and that sophistry cures such ignorance. And this means that
Protagoras must conceive of the virtues and of moral education as based on
knowledge of good and bad generally, but once he has established that con-
ception of the virtues and moral education, he can no longer maintain the sharp
separability of the virtues.21 The argument thus allows Socrates to demonstrate
the tension between Protagoras’ position on courage, on the one hand, and the
demands of his openness in advertising and his professed ability to teach others
to be virtuous, on the other. Consequently, naı̈ve young men such as the
onlooking Hippocrates have learned to be suspicious of such advertising and
18
Cf. Weiss (1990b: 19 f.).
19
Cf. C. C. W. Taylor (1976: 213 f.). Con. Kerferd (1981: 136), who claims that Protagoras could
still maintain that the virtues are all qualitatively different kinds of knowledge.
20
For the analogy see Seneca, Letters to Lucilius 113.24.
21
Notice that it is not clear, however, that Protagoras takes these concessions to heart, or that the
public commitments which force him to make these concessions represent his own sincere beliefs. It is
clear only that Socrates lodges Protagoras between professions he makes about teaching and those he
makes about the virtues. I thank Scott LaBarge for raising this point.
248 Epilogue: the Protagoras
Sedley, D. N., ‘ ‘‘Becoming Like God’’ in the Timaeus and Aristotle’, in T. Calvo and
L. Brisson (eds.), Interpreting the Timaeus-Critias (Sankt Augustin: Academia Verlag,
1997).
—— ‘The Ideal of Godlikeness’, in G. Fine (ed.), Plato 2: Ethics, Politics, Religion, and the
Soul (Oxford: Oxford University Press, 1999).
Seneca, Epistles 1–65, trans. R. M. Gummere (Cambridge, Mass.: Harvard, 1996 (orig.
1917)).
Sherman, N., Making a Necessity of Virtue: Aristotle and Kant on Virtue (Cambridge:
Cambridge University Press, 1997).
Spitzer, A., ‘Immortality and Virtue in the Phaedo: A Non-Ascetic Interpretation’,
Personalist, 57 (1976), 113–25.
Stalley, R. F., ‘Plato’s Arguments for the Division of the Reasoning and Appetitive
Elements within the Soul’, Phronesis, 20 (1975), 110–28.
—— An Introduction to Plato’s Laws (Indianapolis: Hackett Publishing, 1983).
Stewart, Z., ‘Laughter and the Greek Philosophers’, in S. Jäkel and A. Timonen (eds.),
Laughter Down the Centuries (Turku: Turun Yliopisto, 1994).
Stokes, M., Plato’s Socratic Conversations: Drama and Dialectic in Three Dialogues
(Baltimore: Johns Hopkins University Press, 1986).
Strauss, L., Socrates and Aristophanes (New York: Basic Books, 1966).
Strawson, P. F., Freedom and Resentment (London: Methuen & Co., 1974).
Striker, G., ‘Plato’s Socrates and the Stoics’, in P. A. Vander Waerdt (ed.), The Socratic
Movement (Ithaca: Cornell University Press, 1994).
Tarrant, H., ‘The Hippias Major and Socratic Theories of Pleasure’, in P. A. Vander
Waerdt (ed.), The Socratic Movement (Ithaca: Cornell University Press, 1994).
Taylor, A. E., Plato: Philebus and Epinomis (New York: Barnes and Noble, 1972).
Taylor, C. C. W., Translation and Commentary, Protagoras (New York, Oxford: Oxford
University Press, 1976).
—— ‘Platonic Ethics’, in S. Everson (ed.), Companions to Ancient Thought 4: Ethics
(Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 1998).
Tenkku, J., The Evaluation of Pleasure in Plato’s Ethics, Acta Philosophica Fennica, 11
(Helsinki, 1956).
Thalberg, I., ‘False Pleasures’, Journal of Philosophy, 59 (1962), 65–73.
Vlastos, G., Introduction to Plato: Protagoras, trans. B. Jowett (Indianapolis: Bobbs-
Merrill, 1956).
—— ‘Was Polus Refuted?’, American Journal of Philology, 88 (1967), 454–60.
—— Socrates, Ironist and Moral Philosopher (Ithaca: Cornell University Press, 1991).
Waymack, M. H., ‘The Theaetetus 172c–177c: A Reading of the Philosopher in Court’,
Southern Journal of Philosophy, 23 (1985), 481–9.
Weiss, R., ‘Courage, Confidence, and Wisdom in the Protagoras’, Ancient Philosophy, 5
(1985), 11–24.
—— ‘The Right Exchange: Phaedo 69a6–c3’, Ancient Philosophy, 7 (1987), 57–66.
—— ‘A Rejoinder to Professors Gosling and Taylor’, Journal of the History of Philosophy,
28 (1990a), 117 f.
—— ‘Hedonism in the Protagoras and the Sophist’s Guarantee’, Ancient Philosophy, 10
(1990b), 17–40.
—— ‘Killing, Confiscating, and Banishing at Gorgias 466–468’, Ancient Philosophy, 12
(1992), 299–315.
Bibliography 255
Plato as hedonist 11, 13, 14, 47, 60, 64, 71, and dimensions, aspects 46, 48, 50, 64, 68,
73, 75, 77 f., 77 n. 1, 92–101, 127, 167 n. 3, 69, 75 f., 102, 106, 108, 167 f., 186, 200,
171 n. 11, 204, 223 n. 42, 239 f., 248 202 f., 236
Socrates as hedonist 72 f., 248 and episodes 6, 8, 57, 58 f., 59 n. 17, 60 f.,
Hemmenway, S. 240 n. 2, 241 n. 5, 242 n. 9 66, 123, 124 n. 37
Hephaestus 189 n. 45 see also final end; happiness
Heracles 56, 217 n. 27 lives, ‘types’ of 122–7, 129 f., 132, 134, 138,
Heraclitus 118 n. 29 182, 188 n. 41
Hippias 246 Lovibond, S. 157 n. 57
Hippocrates (Protagoras) 247
Homer 189 n. 45, 209 n. 8 Mabbott, J. D. 113, 113 n. 13
Hursthouse, R. 3 n. 4, 70 n. 31, 107 n. 2, McCoy, M. 240 nn. 2, 4, 242 n. 9
134 n. 54 McKim, R. 54 n. 10
McLaughlin, A. 176 n. 18, 180 n. 22
Inwood, B. 15, 155 n. 51 McPherran, M. vii
Irwin, T. 9 n. 15, 13 f., 20 n. 10, 28 n. 38, malice 189 f., 194
30 n. 43, 32 n. 48, 35 f., 41 n. 76, 50 n. 3, Maloney, C. vii
52 n. 4, 53 n. 5, 54 n. 10, 56 nn. 12, 14, Medea 232
59 nn. 17, 18, 61 n. 20, 68 n. 28, 72 n. 34, Menander 189 n. 45
110 n. 6, 111 n. 9, 113, 113 n. 14, 118 n. 28, Mill, J. S. 7 n. 11, 122 n. 33
119 nn. 30, 31, 121 n. 32, 122 n. 34, mind, see ‘divine’ nature
136 n. 56, 145 n. 21, 167 nn. 3, 5, 172 n. 13, de Montaigne, M. 142, 142 n. 11
188 n. 42, 192 n. 55, 201 n. 67, 239 n. 1, Mooradian, N. 183 n. 30, 183 n. 31
244 n. 14 moral development, education, learning,
training 2 f., 5, 81, 87, 108, 117 f., 120,
Jaeger, W. 143 n. 14 141, 141 n. 9, 143 n. 13, 150 f., 157–9,
Johnson, C. 54 n. 10, 55 n. 11 164, 201, 204, 205–7, 210 f., 218 n. 30,
Jowett, B. 77 n. 2 219–29, 228–30, 247, 216 f., 219 n. 32,
225 n. 45, 228, 232 f.
and arts 222–5
Kahn, C. 53 n. 5, 54 n. 10, 55 n. 11, 57 n. 15 and habituation 211 n. 14, 220–5, 228,
Kanaga, M. 8 n. 14, 159 n. 61 229 f., 232 f.
Kant, I. 3 n. 4, 22 n. 17, 23 n. 24, 24 n. 27, ‘mortal’ nature of humans, ‘body’, ‘corporeal’
25 n. 32, 27 n. 36, 107 n. 4 nature 79, 83, 87–91, 97–101, 128,
Kavka, G. 135 n. 55 154–6, 201 n. 69, 231 f., 233–7
Kelly, J. 133 n. 51 myths 75 n. 41
Kenny, A. 176 n. 18, 180 n. 22
Kerferd, G. B. 244 n. 13, 247 n. 19
Kirwan, C. 110 n. 6, 111 n. 8, 113 n. 13 Neoplatonism 77 n. 2, 80–5, 87, 91, 141,
Klosko, G. 240 n. 3 141 n. 6, 143 n. 13
Kolers, A. vii see also Damascius; Olympiodorus;
Korsgaard, C. 21 nn. 11, 12, 14, 15, 22 nn. 16, Plotinus; Proclus
18, 19, 23 nn. 22, 23, 25, 24 n. 30, 25 n. 32, Nozick, R. 193 n. 56
163, 163 n. 76, 170 n. 9 Nussbaum, M. 82 n. 12, 83 n. 14, 86 n. 23,
Kraut, R. 113, 113 n. 13, 116 nn. 23, 25 212 n. 16
Rudebusch, G. vii, 3 n. 6, 9 n. 15, 10 n. 16, soul 26 f., 33, 34, 73 n. 36, 79, 82, 89–92,
14, 50 n. 3, 54 n. 6, 54 n. 7, 56 n. 13, 93–5, 97–103, 104 n. 52, 109 f., 114 f.,
58 n. 16, 61 n. 20, 72 f., 73 n. 35, 125 n. 40, 116 n. 22, 117–24, 132–6, 139, 141,
191 n. 53, 239 n. 1, 245 n. 14 141 nn. 7, 8, 146, 148, 149, 153, 154–6,
Rue, R. 142 n. 12, 143 n. 15 159 n. 63, 159 n. 64, 161, 161 n. 72, 162 f.,
Runia, D. 141 n. 7 173, 175–7, 183, 188 f., 190, 190 n. 49,
Russell, Dan vii 191 n. 51, 201, 201 n. 69, 202 nn. 73,
Russell, Daniel C. 10 n. 16, 41 n. 73, 73 n. 37, 206, 207–38, 243
75 n. 41, 93 n. 31, 96 n. 38, 106 n. 1, analogy to man, lion, and monster 115,
244 n. 14 209 f., 227 n. 49
Russell, E. vii ‘painter’ 177–80, 183
Russell, G. vii parts of 117–120, 121 n. 32, 123, 124, 124 n.
Ryle, G. 73 n. 35 39, 132 f., 135 f., 141, 162 f., 207–19, 221 n.
36, 226–38
Sachs, D. 110 n. 6, 125 n. 40, 161 n. 72 ‘scribe’ 177 f., 183
Santas, G. 244 n. 14, 245 n. 17 see also affective nature; desire; ‘divine’
Sayre, K. 145 n. 21, 176 n. 18, 200 n. 66 nature; emotions; ‘mortal’ nature
Schadenfreude 189 n. 48 Spitzer, A. 77 n. 2, 78 n. 3
Schmidtz, D. vii, 22 n. 20, 135 n. 55 Stalley, R. F. 207 n. 3, 221 n. 39, 223 nn. 42, 44,
Schofield, M. 67 n. 26 226 n. 47, 227 n. 50, 230 n. 55, 238 n. 66
Sedley, D. 93 n. 33, 141 nn. 5, 7, 8, Stephens, W. vii, 111 n. 10
144 nn. 17, 18 Stewart, Z. 189 n. 45
Seinfeld, J. 184 f. Stobaeus 4 n. 7, 35 n. 56, 67 n. 26, 69 n. 29,
Seneca 12, 40 n. 73, 67 n. 26, 82, 82 n. 12, 81 n. 9, 82 n. 11, 148 n. 27, 152 f.,
85 f., 145, 149, 150–9, 162 n. 73, 164 f., 158 n. 60, 166 n. 1, 167 n. 4, 203 n. 75
203 n. 75, 238 n. 67, 247 n. 20 Stoics 3 n. 5, 17 n. 3, 35 n. 56, 41 n. 73, 49 n. 2,
Sherman, N. 3 n. 4, 12 n. 18, 25 n. 32, 67 n. 26, 70 n. 30, 81–3, 81 n. 8, 107 n. 3,
107 n. 4 107 n. 4, 140, 140 n. 2, 145, 150–62,
Simmias (Phaedo) 88 164 nn. 77, 79, 165, 166 n. 1, 205 n. 1,
skill, wisdom/virtue as 28, 30, 30 n. 44, 32 f., 213 nn. 16, 18, 216 n. 25, 219 n. 33,
34 n. 56, 42–3, 48, 49, 49 n. 2, 51, 64, 238 n. 67
65 n. 23, 66, 69, 70, 70 n. 32, 138, ‘choice’ 154 n. 49
144 n. 20, 243 ‘good affections’ 82–4, 82 n. 10, 104 n. 53,
Smith, N. vii, 21 n. 14, 26 n. 34, 28 n. 38, 152, 152 n. 43, 158 f., 203 n. 75, 205 n. 1
29 n. 41, 30 n. 45, 31 n. 46, 32–4, 32 nn. 48, goods 152 f., 156–9
49, 33 n. 51, 34 nn. 53, 55, 56, 35 n. 57, ‘Indifferents’ 83 n. 15
40 n. 70, 41 n. 76, 42 n. 77, 54 nn. 6, 7, ‘Joy’, ‘gladness’ 82, 82 n. 12, 85 f., 152, 158 f.,
70 n. 32, 71 n. 33, 72 n. 34 165, 203 n. 75
Smith, R. vii Passions, emotions 81–3, 158 f., 203 n. 75,
Socrates 8, 9 n. 15, 10, 11, 18, 19, 19 n. 8, 20, 205 n. 1
21 n. 14, 24 n. 26, 25 n. 31, 28 f., 30, ‘Selection’ 151, 154 n. 49
30 nn. 44, 45, 32, 34, 34 n. 56, 36, 36 n. 60, see also Carneades; Chrysippus; Cleanthes;
39, 41, 41 n. 75, 42, 45 n. 84, 49–76, 77–103, Epictetus; Seneca; Stobaeus; Zeno
110, 112 n. 11, 112 n. 12, 113–16, 118–32, Stokes, M. 244 n. 13, 245 n. 14
134–6, 139, 142 f., 144 n. 20, 145–9, Strauss, L. 189 n. 47
156 n. 55, 160 f., 166–72, 174, 177, 182 f., Strawson, P. 5 n. 8
185 n. 35, 186 n. 36, 188 f., 190 n. 51, Syrianus 201 n. 71
191 f., 194 f., 198, 198 n. 62, 200 f., 211,
218 n. 29, 239–48 Tarrant, H. 51 n. 3, 68 n. 28
depicted as joyful 11, 85–7, 92, 101 f. Taylor, A. E. 77 n. 2, 122 n. 34, 189 n. 48
and suicide 79 f., 86 f., 92, 101 f. Taylor, C. C. W. 9 n. 15, 14, 36 n. 63, 50 n. 3,
Soles, David vii 58 n. 16, 59 n. 18, 65 n. 23, 72 n. 34,
Soles, Deborah vii 74 n. 39, 77 n. 1, 82 n. 11, 83 n. 15, 94,
Solomon, J. 37 n. 65 94 n. 34, 96 n. 38, 112 nn. 11, 12, 113 nn.
Sophists, sophistry 241, 245, 247 14, 16, 17, 115 nn. 20, 21, 118 n. 29,
see also Gorgias; Hippias; Prodicus; 127 n. 44, 128 n. 45, 131 n. 49, 171 n. 10,
Protagoras 197 n. 60, 201 n. 68, 202 n. 73, 239 n. 1,
Sophocles 134 n. 52 243 n. 10, 244 n. 14, 245 n. 17, 247 n. 19
272 General Index
Tenkku, J. 9 n. 15, 36 n. 60, 65 n. 22, 73 n. 36, 84, 94, 95, 139, 142, 161, 168, 170,
78 n. 3, 176 n. 18 201 f., 241
Thalberg, I. 180 n. 22 unity of 242 n. 7
Thales 143 value of 22 n. 17, 33, 110–17, 134, 153–7
Theodorus (Theaetetus) 143, 160 and ‘virtuous projects’, ‘good deeds’
Thersites 189 n. 45 26 n. 35, 29 n. 41, 29 n. 42, 32, 33–5,
Thrasymachus (Republic) 116 n. 23, 116 n. 24 34 n. 52, 34 n. 56, 42, 46, 71 n. 32,
Timaeus (Timaeus) 155 n. 54, 231–5 72, 106
transformation of the self 46, 48, 100 n. 48, see also wisdom
102, 108 f., 127, 133, 134 f., 138, 165, Vlastos, G. 21 n. 14, 24 n. 26, 26 n. 34, 37–42,
168, 202, 203, 205 n. 1, 206, 208, 216, 37 n. 64, 39 n. 69, 40 nn. 70, 71, 72,
219, 238 41 n. 76, 54 n. 10, 72 n. 34, 211 n. 14,
214 n. 19, 243 n. 10, 245 n. 14
Underhill, R. 197 n. 59
unitarianism 13 Wagner, E. 210 n. 11
universe, cosmos, as model for human Waterfield, R. 14, 113 n. 13, 123 n. 36, 170 n. 8,
action 98–101, 141 f., 146 f., 237 176 n. 18, 185 n. 38, 191 n. 52, 201 n. 67,
Urmson, J. O. 15 201 n. 71, 218 n. 29
Waymack, M. H. 143 n. 15
Virgil 155 Weiss, R. 54 n. 8, 74 n. 39, 78 n. 3, 96 nn. 38,
virtues of character 3, 10–12, 14, 17 n. 3, 39, 41, 240 n. 2, 241 n. 6, 242 n. 8,
26 f., 26 n. 33, 26 n. 35, 39 n. 68, 41 n. 75, 243 nn. 10, 11, 12, 245 nn. 14, 16,
41 n. 76, 50 f., 53, 55, 64 f., 67–71, 79–87, 247 n. 18, 248 n. 22
94–6, 100 n. 48, 102 f., 106, 109, 119, White, F. 29 n. 41, 73 n. 36,
134 f., 141–4, 147, 153–6, 160, 163 f., White, N. 41 n. 73, 50 n. 3, 59 n. 17,
200–2, 238 112 n. 11, 113, 113 n. 15, 114 nn. 18, 19,
‘artificial consequences’ of 116 n. 26 116 nn. 22, 23, 122 n. 34, 123 n. 36,
‘benefit their possessor’ 136, 212 129 n. 46, 133 n. 51, 207 n. 3, 209 nn. 8,
courage, bravery 67, 68, 79 f., 83, 84, 94, 10, 202 n. 15, 222 n. 40
142, 240–3, 246 f. wisdom 10, 16, 19, 19 nn. 7, 8, 20, 25 n. 32,
and ‘intellectualism’ 19 n. 8, 43 26, 27, 50, 51, 75, 77, 94–7, 99, 127, 135,
justice, ‘morality’ 52 f., 54 f., 56, 68, 83, 84, 137, 138, 139, 146 f., 151, 158, 160, 162 f.,
94, 111 n. 9, 113, 115, 118, 139, 141–3, 165, 202, 202 n. 74, 237, 241, 247
160 f., 212, 241 goodness of 20 f., 22 n. 21, 23, 33 n. 49, 35,
and ‘likeness to God’, ‘godlikeness’ 12, 38, 70, 154, 163, 165
93 n. 33, 139–65 and knowledge 28
and ‘natural character’ 224 f., 228 f. and luck, good fortune 20 n. 9, 30 f.,
‘natural consequences’ of 113 f. 30 n. 45, 34, 48, 153
necessity for happiness 203 n. 75 and success 30 f., 32–6, 34 n. 55, 35 n. 57,
piety, holiness, purity 67, 67 n. 25, 69, 74, 37, 41 n. 75, 42 f., 46, 48, 49 f., 49 n. 2,
142 f., 160 f., 241 70 f., 70 n. 32, 138
Plato’s defense of 112, 112 n. 12, 113 n. 14, and ‘use’ of other goods 17, 19, 27,
116 n. 26, 127, 134–7 27 n. 37, 28 f., 32 f., 44, 46, 48, 108,
pride 160 n. 67, 161 153, 165
and ‘purification’ 89 f., 94, 94 n. 34 see also practical intelligence; virtues
as ‘purification’ 79, 85, 87, 87 n. 24 Wittgenstein, L. 180 n. 24
reciprocity of 241, 242 n. 7, 243, 247 Worthen, T. vii
sufficiency for happiness 159 n. 66,
164 n. 77, 168, 170, 203 f. Zeller, E 77 n. 2
teachability of 240–8 Zeno (the Stoic) 151, 156 n. 55
temperance, self-control, self-discipline, Zeus 146, 154, 154 n. 51
moderation 66 f., 67 n. 26, 68, 79 f., 83, Zeyl, D. 240 nn. 2, 3, 243 n. 12